"Peters, Ellis - Brother Cadfael 04 - St Peter's Fair" - читать интересную книгу автора (Peters Ellis)
St. Peter's Fair
St. Peter’s Fair
St. Peter’s Fair is a grand, festive event, attracting merchants
from across England and beyond. There is a pause in the civil war racking the
country in the summer of 1139, and the fair promises to bring some much-needed
gaiety to the town of Shrewsbury. Until, that is, the body of a wealthy
merchant is found murdered in the river Severn. Was Thomas of Bristol the
victim of murderous thieves? And, if so, why were his valuables abandoned
nearby? Brother Cadfael offers to help the merchant’s lovely niece, Emma. But
while he is searching for the killer, the dead man’s wares are ransacked and
two more men are murdered. Emma almost certainly knows more than she is
telling, as others will soon realize. Cadfael desperately races to save the young
girl, knowing that in a country at war with itself, betrayal can come from any
direction, and even good intentions can kill.
St. Peter’s Fair
The Fourth Chronicle of Brother Cadfael, of the
Benedictine Abbey of Saint Peter and Saint Paul, at Shrewsbury
By
Ellis
Peters
The
Eve of the Fair
Chapter
One
IT
BEGAN AT THE NORMAL DAILY CHAPTER in the Benedictine monastery of Saint Peter
and Saint Paul, of Shrewsbury, on the thirtieth day of July, in the year of Our
Lord 1139. That day being the eve of Saint Peter ad Vincula, a festival of
solemn and profitable importance to the house that bore his name, the routine
business of the morning meeting had been devoted wholly to the measures
necessary to its proper celebration, and lesser matters had to wait.
The
house, given its full dedication, had two saints, but Saint Paul tended to be
neglected, sometimes even omitted from official documents, or so abbreviated
that he almost vanished. Time is money, and clerks find it tedious to inscribe
the entire title, perhaps as many as twenty times in one charter. They had had
to amend their ways, however, since Abbot Radulfus had taken over the rudder of
this cloistral vessel, for he was a man who brooked no slipshod dealings, and
would have all his crew as meticulous as himself.
Brother
Cadfael had been out before Prime in his enclosed herb-garden, observing with
approval the blooming of his oriental poppies, and assessing the time when the
seed would be due for gathering. The summer season was at its height, and
promising rich harvest, for the spring had been mild and moist after plenteous
early snows, and June and July hot and sunny, with a few compensatory showers
to keep the leafage fresh and the buds fruitful. The hay harvest was in, and
lavish, the corn looked ripe for the sickle. As soon as the annual fair was
over, the reaping would begin. Cadfael’s fragrant domain, dewy
from the dawn and already warming into drunken sweetness in the rising sun,
filled his senses with the kind of pleasure on which an ascetic church
sometimes frowns, finding something uneasily sinful in pure delight. There were
times when young Brother Mark, who worked with him this delectable field, felt
that he ought to confess his joy among his sins, and meekly accept some
appropriate penance. He was still very young, there were excuses to be found
for him. Brother Cadfael had more sense, and no such scruples. The manifold
gifts of God are there to be delighted in, to fall short of joy would be
ingratitude.
Having
put in two hours of work before Prime, and having no office in connection with
the abbey fair, which was engaging all attention, Cadfael was nodding, as was
his habit, behind his protective pillar in the dimmest corner of the
chapter-house, perfectly ready to snap into wakefulness if some unexpected
query should be aimed in his direction, and perfectly capable of answering
coherently what he had only partially heard. He had been sixteen years a monk,
by his own considered choice, which he had never regretted, after a very
adventurous life which he had never regretted, either, and he was virtually out
of reach of surprise. He was fifty-nine years old, with a world of experience
stored away within him, and still as tough as a badger—according to Brother
Mark almost as bandy-legged, into the bargain, but Brother Mark was a
privileged being. Cadfael dozed as silently as a closed flower at night, and
hardly ever snored; within the Benedictine rule, and in genial companionship
with it, he had perfected a daily discipline of his own that suited his needs
admirably.
It
is probable that he was fast asleep when the steward of the grange court, with
an appropriate apology, ventured into the chapter-house and stood waiting the
abbot’s permission to speak. He was certainly awake when the steward reported:
“My lord, here in the great court is the provost of the town, with a delegation
from the Guild Merchant, asking leave to speak with you. They say the matter is
important.”
Abbot
Radulfus allowed his steely, level brows to rise a little, and indicated graciously
that the fathers of the borough should be admitted at once. Relations between
the town of Shrewsbury on one side of the river and the abbey on the other,
if never exactly cordial—that was too much to expect, where their interests so
often collided—were always correct, and their skirmishes conducted with wary
courtesy. If the abbot scented battle, he gave no sign. But for all that,
thought Cadfael, watching the shrewd, lean hatchet-face, he has a pretty
accurate idea of what they’re here for.
The
worthies of the guild entered the chapter-house in a solid phalanx, no less
than ten of them, from half the crafts in the town, and led by the provost.
Master Geoffrey Corviser, named for his trade, was a big, portly, vigorous man
not yet fifty, clean-shaven, brisk and dignified. He made some of the finest
shoes and riding-boots in England, and was well aware of their excellence and
his own worth. For this occasion he had put on his best, and even without the
long gown that would have been purgatory in this summer weather, he made an
impressive figure, as clearly he meant to do. Several of those grouped at his
back were well known to Cadfael: Edric Flesher, chief of the butchers of
Shrewsbury, Martin Bellecote, master-carpenter, Reginald of Aston, the silversmith—men
of substance every one. Abbot Radulfus did not know them, not yet. He had been
only half a year in office, sent from London to trim an easy-going provincial
house into more zealous shape, and he had much to learn about the men of the
borders, as he himself, being no man’s fool, was well aware.
“You
are welcome, gentlemen,” said the abbot mildly. “Speak freely, you shall have
attentive hearing.”
The
ten made their reverences gravely, spread sturdy feet, and stood planted like a
battle-square, all eyes alert, all judgments held in reserve. The abbot was
concentrating courteous attention upon them with much the same effect. In his
interludes of duty as shepherd, Cadfael had once watched two rams level just
such looks before they clashed foreheads.
“My
lord abbot,” said the provost, “as you know, Saint Peter’s Fair opens on the
day after tomorrow, and lasts for three days. It’s of the fair we come to
speak. You know the conditions. For all that time all shops in the town must be
shut, and nothing sold but ale and wine. And ale and wine are sold freely here
at the fairground and the Foregate, too, so that no man can make his living in
the town from that merchandise. For three days, the three busiest of the year, when we might do well out of tolls on carts and pack-horses and
man-loads passing through the town to reach the fair, we must levy no charges,
neither murage nor pavage. All tolls belong only to the abbey. Goods coming up
the Severn by boat tie up at your jetty, and pay their dues to you. We get nothing.
And for this privilege you pay no more than thirty-eight shillings, and even
that we must go to the trouble to distrain from the rents of your tenants in
the town.”
“No
more than thirty-eight shillings!” repeated Abbot Radulfus, and elevated the iron-grey
brows a shade higher, but still with an urbane countenance and a gentle voice.
“The sum was appointed as fair. And not by us. The terms of the charter have
been known to you many years, I believe.”
“They
have, and often before now have been found burdensome enough, but bargains must
be kept, and we have never complained. But bad years or good, the sum has never
been raised. And it falls very hard on a town so pressed as we are now, to lose
three days of trade, and the best tolls of the year. Last summer, as you must
know, though you were not then among us, Shrewsbury was under siege above a
month, and stormed at last with great damage to the town walls, and great
neglect of the streets, and for all our efforts there’s still great need of
work on them, and it’s costly labour, after all last summer’s losses. Not the
half of the dilapidations are yet put right, and in these troublous times, who
knows when we may again be under attack? The very traffic of your fair will be
passing through our streets and adding to the wear, while we get nothing to
help make good the damage.”
“Come
to the point, Master Provost,” said the abbot in the same tranquil tone. “You
are come to make some demand of us. Speak it out plainly.”
“Father
Abbot, so I will! We think—and I speak for the whole guild merchant and borough
gathering of Shrewsbury—that in such a year we have the best possible case for
asking that the abbey should either pay a higher fee for the fair, or, better
by far, set aside a proportion of the fair tolls on goods, whether by
horse-load or cart or boat, to be handed over to the town, and spent on
restoring the walls. You benefit by the protection the town affords you; you
ought, we think, to bear a part with us in maintaining its defences. A tenth
share of the profits would be welcomed, and we should thank you
heartily for it. It is not a demand, with respect, it is an appeal. But we
believe the grant of a tenth would be nothing more than justice.”
Abbot
Radulfus sat, very erect and lean and lofty, gravely considering the phalanx of
stout burgesses before him. “That is the view of you all?”
Edric
Flesher spoke up bluntly: “It is. And of all our townsmen, too. There are many
who would voice the matter more forcibly than Master Corviser has done. But we
trust in your fellow-feeling, and wait your answer.”
The
faint stir that went round the chapter-house was like a great, cautious sigh.
Most of the brothers looked on wide-eyed and anxious; the younger ones shifted
and whispered, but very warily. Prior Robert Pennant, who had looked to be
abbot by this time, and been sorely disappointed at having a stranger promoted
over his head, maintained a silvery, ascetic calm, appeared to move his lips in
prayer, and shot sidelong looks at his superior between narrowed ivory lids,
wishing him irredeemable error while appearing to compassionate and bless. Old
Brother Heribert, recently abbot of this house and now degraded to its ranks,
dozed in a quiet corner, smiling gently, thankful to be at rest.
“We
are considering, are we not,” said Radulfus at length, gently and without
haste, “what you pose as a dispute between the rights of the town and the
rights of this house. In such a balance, should the judgment rest with you, or
with me? Surely not! Some disinterested judge is needed. But, gentlemen, I
would remind you, there has been such a decision, now, within the past
half-year, since the siege of which you complain. At the beginning of this year
his Grace King Stephen confirmed to us our ancient charter, with all its grants
in lands, rights and privileges, just as we held them aforetime. He confirmed
also our right to this three-day fair on the feast of our patron Saint Peter,
at the same fee we have paid before, and on the same conditions. Do you suppose
he would have countenanced such a grant, if he had not held it to be just?”
“To
say outright what I suppose,” said the provost warmly, “I never supposed for a
moment that the thought of justice entered into it. I make no murmur against
what his Grace chose to do, but it’s plain he held Shrewsbury to be a hostile
town, and most like still does hold it so, because Fitz Alan, who
is fled to France now, garrisoned the castle and kept it over a month against
him. But small say we of the town ever had in the matter, and little we could
have done about it! The castle declared for the Empress Maud, and we must put
up with the consequences, while Fitz Alan’s away, safe out of reach. My lord
abbot, is that justice?”
“Are
you making the claim that his Grace, by confirming the abbey in its rights, is
taking revenge on the town?” asked the abbot with soft and perilous gentleness.
“I
am saying that he never so much as gave the town a thought, or its injuries a
look, or he might have made some concession.”
“Ah!
Then should not this appeal of yours be addressed rather to the Lord Gilbert
Prestcote, who is the king’s sheriff, and no doubt has his ear, rather than to
us?”
“It
has been so addressed, though not with regard to the fair. It is not for the
sheriff to give away any part of what has been bestowed on the abbey. Only you,
Father, can do that,” said Geoffrey Corviser briskly. It began to be apparent
that the provost knew his way about among the pitfalls of words every bit as
well as did the abbot.
“And
what answer did you get from the sheriff?”
“He
will do nothing for us until his own walls at the castle are made good. He
promises us the loan of labour when work there is finished, but labour we could
supply, it’s money and materials we need, and it will be a year or more before
he’s ready to turn over even a handful of his men to our needs. In such a case,
Father, do you wonder that we find the fair a burden?”
“Yet
we have our needs, too, as urgent to us as yours to you,” said the abbot after
a thoughtful moment of silence. “And I would remind you, our lands and
possessions here lie outside the town walls, even outside the loop of the
river, two protections you enjoy that we do not share. Should we, men, be asked
to pay tolls for what cannot apply to us?”
“Not
all your possessions,” said the provost promptly. “There are within the town
some thirty or more messuages in your hold, and your tenants within them, and
their children have to wade in the kennels of broken streets as ours do, and
their horses break legs where the paving is shattered, as ours do.”
“Our tenants enjoy fair treatment from
us, and considerate rents, and for such matters we are responsible. But we
cannot be held responsible for the town’s dilapidations, as we can for those
here on our own lands. No,” said the abbot, raising his voice peremptorily when
the provost would have resumed his arguments, “say no more! We have heard and
understood your case, and we are not without sympathy. But Saint Peter’s Fair
is a sacred right granted to this house, on terms we did not draw up; it is a
right that inheres not to me as a man, but to this house, and I in my passing
tenure have no authority to change or mitigate those terms in the smallest
degree. It would be an offence against the king’s Grace, who has confirmed the
charter, and an offence against those my successors, for it could be taken and
cited as a precedent for future years. No, I will not set aside any part of the
profits of the fair to your use, I will not increase the fee we pay you for it,
I will not share in any proportion the tolls on goods and stalls. All belong
here, and all must be gathered here, according to the charter.” He saw half a
dozen mouths open to protest against so summary a dismissal, and rose in his
place, very tall and straight, and chill of voice and eye. “This chapter is
concluded,” he said.
There
were one or two among the delegation who would still have tried to insist, but
Geoffrey Corviser had a better notion of his own and the town’s dignity, and a
shrewder idea of what might or might not impress that self-assured and austere
man. He made the abbot a deep, abrupt reverence, turned on his heel, and strode
out of the chapter-house, and his defeated company recovered their wits and
marched as haughtily after him.
There
were booths already going up in the great triangle of the horse-fair, and all
along the Foregate from the bridge to the corner of the enclosure, where the
road veered right towards Saint Giles, and the king’s highway to London . There
was a newly-erected wooden jetty downstream from the bridge, where the long
riverside stretch of the main abbey gardens and orchards began, the rich
lowland known as the Gaye. By river, by road, afoot through the forests and
over the border from Wales, traders of all kinds began to make their way to Shrewsbury
. And into the great court of the abbey flocked all the gentry
of the shire, and of neighbouring shires, too, lordlings, knights, yeomen, with
their wives and daughters, to take up residence in the overflowing guest-halls
for the three days of the annual fair. Subsistence goods they grew, or bred, or
brewed, or wove, or span for themselves, the year round, but once a year they
came to buy the luxury cloths, the fine wines, the rare preserved fruits, the
gold and silver work, all the treasures that appeared on the feast of Saint
Peter ad Vincula, and vanished three days later. To these great fairs came
merchants even from Flanders and Germany, shippers with French wines, shearers
with the wool-clip from Wales, and clothiers with the finished goods, gowns,
jerkins, hose, town fashions come to the country. Not many of the vendors had
yet arrived, most would appear next day, on the eve of the feast, and set up
their booths during the long summer evening, ready to begin selling early on
the morrow. But the buyers were arriving in purposeful numbers already, bent on
securing good beds for their stay.
When
Brother Cadfael came up from the Meole brook and his vegetable-fields for
Vespers, after a hard and happy afternoon’s work, the great court was seething
with visitors, servants and grooms, and the traffic in and out of the stables
flowed without cease. He stood for a few minutes to watch the pageant, and
Brother Mark at his elbow glowed as he gazed, dazzled by the play of colours
and shimmer of movement in the sunlight.
“Yes,”
said Cadfael, viewing with philosophical detachment what Brother Mark
contemplated with excitement and wonder, “the world and his wife will be here,
either to buy or sell.” And he eyed his young friend attentively, for the boy
had seen little enough of the world before entering the order, being thrust
through the gates willy-nilly at sixteen by a stingy uncle who grudged him his
keep even in exchange for hard work, and he had only recently taken his final
vows. “Do you see anything there to tempt you back into the secular world?”
“No,”
said Brother Mark, promptly and serenely. “But I may look and enjoy, just as I
do in the garden when the poppies are in flower. It’s no blame to men if they
try to put into their own artifacts all the colours and shapes God put into
his.”
There were certainly a few of God’s more
charming artifacts among the throng of visitors moving about the great court
and the stable-yard, young women as bright and blooming as the poppies, and all
the prettier for being in a high state of expectation, looking forward eagerly
to their one great outing of the year. Some came riding their own ponies, some
pillion behind husbands or grooms, there was even one horse-litter bringing an
important dowager from the south of the shire.
“I
never saw it so lively before,” said Mark, gazing with pleasure.
“You’ve
not lived through a fair as yet. Last year the town was under siege all through
July and into August, small hope of getting either buyers or sellers into
Shrewsbury for any such business. I had my doubts even about this year, but it
seems trade’s well on the move again, and our gentlefolk are hungrier than ever
for what they missed a year ago. It will be a profitable fair, I fancy!”
“Then
could we not have spared a tithe to help put the town in order?” demanded Mark.
“You
have a way, child, of asking the most awkward questions. I can read very well
what was in the provost’s mind, since he spoke it out in full. But I’m by no
means so sure I know what was in the abbot’s, nor that he uttered the half of
it. A hard man to read!”
Mark
had stopped listening. His eyes were on a rider who had just entered at the
gatehouse, and was walking his horse delicately through the moving throng
towards the stables. Three retainers on rough-coated ponies followed at his
heels, one of them with a cross-bow slung at his saddle. In these perilous
times, even here in regions summarily pacified so short a time ago, no
gentleman would undertake a longer journey without provision for his own defence,
and an arbalest reaches further than a sword. This young man both wore a sword
and looked as if he could use it, but he had also brought an archer with him
for security.
It
was the master who held Mark’s eyes. He was perhaps a year or two short of thirty,
past the uncertainties of first youth—if, indeed, he had ever suffered them—and
at his resplendent best. Handsomely appointed, elegantly mounted on a
glistening dark bay, he rode with the negligent ease of one
accustomed to horses almost from birth. In the summer heat he had shed his
short riding-cotte, and had it slung over his lap, and rode with his shirt open
over a spare, muscular chest, hung with a cross on a golden chain. The body
thus displayed to view in simple linen shirt and dark hose was long and lissome
and proud of its comeliness, and the head that crowned it was bared to the
light, a smiling, animated face nicely fashioned about large, commanding dark
eyes, and haloed in a cropped cap of dark gold hair, that would have curled had
it been allowed to grow a little longer. He came and passed, and Mark’s eyes
followed him, at once tranquil and wistful, quite without any shade of envy.
“It
must be a pleasant thing,” he said thoughtfully, “to be so made as to give
pleasure to those who behold you. Do you suppose he realises his blessings?”
Mark
was rather small himself, from undernourishment from childhood, and plain of
face, with spiky, straw-coloured hair round his tonsure. Not that he ever
viewed himself much in the glass, or realised that he had a pair of great grey
eyes of such immaculate clarity that common beauty faltered before them. Nor
was Cadfael going to remind him of any such assets.
“As
the world usually goes,” he said cheerfully, “he probably has a mind that looks
no further ahead or behind than the length of his own fine eyelashes. But I
grant you he’s a pleasure to look at. Yet the mind lasts longer. Be glad you
have one that will wear well. Come on, now, all this will keep till after
supper.”
The
word diverted Brother Mark’s thoughts very agreeably. He had been hungry all
his life until he entered this house, and still he preserved the habit of
hunger, so that food, no less than beauty, was unflawed pleasure. He went
willingly at Cadfael’s side towards Vespers, and the supper that would follow.
It was Cadfael who suddenly halted, hailed by name in a high, delighted voice
that plucked his head about towards the summons gladly.
A
lady, a slender, young, graceful lady with a heavy sheaf of gold hair and a
bright oval face, and eyes like irises in twilight, purple and clear. Her body,
as Brother Mark saw in his first startled glance, though scarcely swollen as
yet, and proudly carried, was girdled high, and rounded below the girdle.
There was a life there within. He was not so innocent that he did not know the
signs. He should have lowered his eyes, and willed to do so, and could not; she
shone so that it was like all the pictures of the Visiting Virgin that he had
ever seen. And this vision held out both hands to Brother Cadfael, and called
him by his name. Brother Mark, though unwillingly, bent his head and went on
his way alone.
“Girl,”
said Brother Cadfael heartily, clasping the proffered hands with delight, “you
bloom like a rose! And he never told me!”
“He
has not seen you since the winter,” she said, dimpling and flushing, “and we
did not know then. It was no more than a dream, then. And I have not seen you
since we were wed.”
“And
you are happy? And he?”
“Oh,
Cadfael, can you ask it!” There had been no need, the radiance Brother Mark had
recognised was dazzling Cadfael no less. “Hugh is here, but he must go to the
sheriff first. He’ll certainly be asking for you before Compline. I have come
to buy a cradle, a beautiful carved cradle for our son. And a Welsh coverlet,
in beautiful warm wool, or perhaps a sheepskin. And fine spun wools, to weave
his gowns.”
“And
you keep well? The child gives you no distress?”
“Distress?”
she said, wide-eyed and smiling. “I have not had a moment’s sickness, only joy.
Oh, Brother Cadfael,” she said, breaking into laughter, “how does it come that
a brother of this house can ask such wise questions? Have you not somewhere a
son of your own? I could believe it! You know far too much about us women!”
“As
I suppose,” said Cadfael cautiously, “I was born of one, like the rest of us.
Even abbots and archbishops come into the world the same way.”
“But
I’m keeping you,” she said, remorseful. “It’s time for Vespers, and I’m coming,
too. I have so many thanks to pour out, there’s never enough time. Say a prayer
for our child!” She pressed him by both hands, and floated away through the
press towards the guest-hall. Born Aline Siward, now Aline Beringar, wife to
the deputy sheriff of Shropshire, Hugh Beringar of Maesbury, near Oswestry. A
year married, and Cadfael had been close friend to that marriage, and felt
himself enlarged and fulfilled by its happiness. He went on towards
the church in high content with the evening, his own mood, and the prospects
for the coming days.
When
he emerged from the refectory after supper, into an evening still all rose and
amber light, the court was as animated as at noon, and new arrivals still
entering at the gatehouse. In the cloister Hugh Beringar sat sprawled at ease,
waiting for him; a lightweight, limber, dark young man, lean of feature and
quizzical of eyebrow. A formidable face, impossible to read unless a man knew
the language. Happily, Cadfael did, and read with confidence.
“If
you have not lost your cunning,” said the young man, lazily rising, “or met
your overmatch in this new abbot of yours, you can surely find a sound excuse
for missing Collations—and a drop of good wine to share with a friend.”
“Better
than an excuse,” said Cadfael readily, “I have an acknowledged reason. They’re
having trouble in the grange court with scour among the calves, and want a
brewing of my cure in a hurry. And I daresay I can find you a draught of
something better than small ale. We can sit outside the workshop, such a warm
evening. But are you not a neglectful husband,” he reproved, as they fell
companionably into step on their way into the gardens, “to abandon your lady
for an old drinking crony?”
“My
lady,” said Hugh ruefully, “has altogether abandoned me! A breeding girl has
only to show her nose in the guest-hall, and she’s instantly swept away by a
swarm of older dames, all cooing like doves, and loading her with advice on
everything from diet to midwives’ magic. Aline is holding conference with all
of them, hearing details of all their confinements, and taking note of all their
recommendations. And since I can neither spin, nor weave, nor sew, I’m
banished.” He sounded remarkably complacent about it, and being well aware of
it himself, laughed aloud. “But she told me she had seen you, and you needed no
telling. How do you think she is looking?”
“Radiant!”
said Cadfael. “In full bloom, and prettier than ever.”
In
the herb-garden, shaded along one side by its high hedge from the declining
sun, the heavy fragrances of the day hung like a spell. They settled on a bench
under the eaves of Cadfael’s workshop, with a jug of wine between them.
“But I must start my draught brewing,”
said Cadfael. “You may talk to me while I do it. I shall hear you within, and
I’ll be with you as soon as I have it stirring. What’s the news from the great
world? Is King Stephen secure on his throne now, do you think?”
Beringar
considered that in silence for a few moments, listening contentedly to the soft
sounds of Cadfael’s movements within the hut. “With all the west still holding
out for the empress, however warily, I doubt it. Nothing is moving now, but
it’s an ominous stillness. You know that Earl Robert of Gloucester is in
Normandy with the empress?”
“So
we’d heard. It’s not to be wondered at, he is her half-brother, and fond of
her, so they say, and not an envious man.”
“A
good man,” agreed Hugh, doing an opponent generous justice, “one of the few on
either side not grasping for what he himself can get. The west, however quiet
now, will do what Robert says. I can’t believe he’ll hold off for ever. And
even out of the west, he has kinsmen and influence. The word runs that he and
Maud, from their refuge in France, are working away quietly to enlist powerful
allies, wherever they see a hope. If that’s true, this civil war is by no means
over. Promised enough support, there’ll be a bid for the lady’s cause, soon or
late.”
“Robert
has daughters married about the land,” said Cadfael thoughtfully, “and all of
them to men of might. One of them to the earl of Chester, I recall. If a few of
that measure declared for the empress, you might well have a war on your hands
to some purpose.”
Beringar
drew a long face, and then shrugged off the thought. Earl Ranulf of Chester was
certainly one of the most powerful men in the kingdom, virtually king himself
of an immense palatine where his writ ran, and no other. But for that very
reason he was less likely to feel the need to declare for either side in the
contention for the throne. Himself supreme, and unlikely ever to be threatened
in his own possessions by either Maud or Stephen, he could afford to sit back
and watch his own borders, not merely with a view to preserving them intact,
rather to extending them. A land at odds with itself offers opportunities, as
well as threats.
“Ranulf
will need a lot of persuading, kinsman or no. He’s very well as
he is, and if he does move it will be because he sees profit and power in it
for himself, and the empress will come a poor second. He’s not the man to risk
anything for any cause but his own.”
Cadfael
came out from the hut to sit beside him, drawing grateful breath in the evening
coolness, for he had his small brazier burning within, beneath his simmering
brew. “That’s better! Now fill me a cup, Hugh, I’m more than ready for it.” And
after a long and satisfying draught he said thoughtfully: “There were some
fears this disturbed state of things could ruin the fair even this year, but it
seems trade keeps on the move while barons skulk in their castles. The
prospects are excellent, after all.”
“For
the abbey, perhaps,” agreed Hugh. “The town is less happy about the outlook,
from all we heard as we passed through. This new abbot of yours has set the
burgesses properly by the ears.”
“Ah,
you’ve heard about that?” Cadfael recounted the course of the argument, in case
his friend had caught but one side of it. “They have a case for seeking relief,
no question. But so has he for refusing it, and he’s standing firm on his
rights. No way round it in law, he’s taking no more than is granted to him. And
no less!” he added, and sighed.
“Feelings
are running high in the town,” warned Beringar seriously. “I would not be sure
you may not have trouble yet. I doubt if the provost made any too much of their
needs. The word in the town is that this may be law, but it is not justice. But
what’s the word with you? How are you faring in the new dispensation?”
“You’ll
hear murmurs even within our walls,” admitted Cadfael, “if you keep your ears
open. But for my part, I have no complaint. He’s a hard man, but fair, and at
least as hard on himself as on others. We’ve been spoiled and easy with
Heribert, and the new curb pulled us up pretty sharply, but that’s the sum of
it. I have much confidence in the man. He’ll chasten where he sees fault, but
he’ll stand by his own against any power where they are threatened blameless.
He’s a man I’d be glad to have beside me in any battle.”
“But
his loyalty’s limited to his own?” said Beringar slyly, and cocked a slender
black brow.
“We
live in a contentious world,” said Brother Cadfael, who had
lived more than half his life in the thick of the battles. “Who says peace
would be good for us? I don’t know the man well enough yet to know what’s in
his mind. I have not found him limited, but his vows are to his vocation and
this house. Give him room and time, Hugh, and we shall see what follows. Time
was when I was in two minds, or more, about you!” His voice marvelled and
smiled at the thought. “Not very long, however! I shall soon get the measure of
Radulfus, too. Hand me the jug, lad, and then I must go and stir this brew for
the calves. How long have we yet to Compline?”
Chapter
Two
ON
THE THIRTY-FIRST OF JULY the vendors came flooding in, by road and by river.
From noon onward the horse-fair was marked out in lots for stalls and booths,
and the abbey stewards were standing by to guide pedlars and merchants to their
places, and levy the tolls due on the amount of merchandise they brought. A
halfpenny for a modest man-load, a penny for a horse-load, from twopence to
fourpence for a cart-load, depending on the size and capacity, and higher fees
in proportion for the goods unloaded from the river barges that tied up at the
temporary landing-stage along the Gaye. The entire length of the Foregate
hummed and sparkled with movement and colour and chatter, the abbey barn and
stable outside the wall was full, children and dogs ran among the booths and
between the wheels of the carts, excited and shrill.
The
discipline of the day’s devotions within the walls was not relaxed, but between
offices a certain air of holiday gaiety had entered with the guests, and
novices and pupils were allowed to wander and gaze without penalty. Abbot
Radulfus held himself aloof, as was due to his dignity, and left the
superintendence of the occasion and the collection of tolls to his lay stewards,
but for all that he knew everything that was going on, and had measures in mind
to deal with any emergency. As soon as the arrival of the first Flemish
merchant was reported to him, together with the news that the man had little
French, he dispatched Brother Matthew, who had lived for some years in Flanders
in his earlier days, and could speak fluent Flemish, to deal
with any problems that might arise. If the fine-cloth merchants were coming,
there was good reason to afford them every facility, for they were profitable
visitors. It was a mark of the significance of the Shrewsbury fair that they
should undertake so long a journey from the East Anglian ports where they put
in, and find it worth their while to hire carts or horses for the overland
pilgrimage.
The
Welsh, of course, would certainly be present in some numbers, but for the most
part they would be the local people who had a foot on either side the border,
and knew enough English to need no interpreters. It came as a surprise to
Brother Cadfael to be intercepted once again as he left the refectory after
supper, this time by the steward of the grange court, preoccupied and
breathless with business, and told that he was needed at the jetty, to take
care of one who spoke nothing but Welsh, and a man of consequence, indeed of
self-importance, who would not be fobbed off with the suspect aid of a local
Welshman who might well be in competition with him on the morrow.
“Prior
Robert gives you leave, for as long as you’re needed. It’s a fellow by the name
of Rhodri ap Huw, from Mold. He’s brought a great load up the Dee, and ported
it over to Vrnwy and Severn, which must have cost him plenty.”
“What
manner of goods?” asked Cadfael, as they made for the gatehouse together. His
interest was immediate and hearty. Nothing could have suited him better than a
sound excuse to be out among the noise and bustle along the Foregate.
“What
looks like a very fine wool-clip, mainly. And also honey and mead. And I
thought I saw some bundles of hides—maybe from Ireland, if he trades out of the
Dee . And there’s the man himself.”
Rhodri
ap Huw stood solid as a rock on the wooden planking of the jetty beside his
moored barge, and let the tides of human activity flow round him. The river ran
green and still, at a good level for high summer; even boats of deeper draught
than usual had made the passage without mishap, and were unloading and unbaling
on all sides. The Welshman watched, measuring other men’s bales with shrewd,
narrowed dark eyes, and pricing what he saw. He looked about
fifty years old, and so assured and experienced that it seemed strange he had
never picked up English. Not a tall man, but square-built and powerful, fierce
Welsh bones islanded in a thick growth of thorny black hair and beard. His
dress, though plain and workmanlike, was of excellent material and well-fitted.
He saw the steward hurrying towards him, evidently having carried out his
wishes to the letter, and large, white teeth gleamed contentedly from the
thicket of the black beard.
“Here
am I, Master Rhodri,” said Cadfael cheerfully, “to keep you company in your own
tongue. And my name is Cadfael, at your service for all your present needs.”
“And
very welcome, Brother Cadfael,” said Rhodri ap Huw heartily. “I hope you’ll
pardon my fetching you away from your devotions…”
“I’ll
do better. I’ll thank you! A pity to have to miss all this bustle, I can do
with a glimpse of the world now and again.”
Sharp,
twinkling eyes surveyed him from head to toe in one swift glance. “You’ll be
from the north yourself, I fancy. Mold is where I come from.”
“Close
by Trefriw I was born.”
“A
Gwynedd man. But one who’s been a sight further through the world than Trefriw,
by the look of you, brother. As I have. Well, here are my two fellows, ready to
unload and porter for me before I send on part of my cargo downriver to
Bridgnorth, where I have a sale for mead. Shall we have the goods ashore
first?”
The
steward bade them choose a stand at whatever point Master Rhodri thought fit
when he had viewed the ground, and left them to supervise the unloading.
Rhodri’s two nimble little Welsh boatmen went to work briskly, hefting the
heavy bales of hides and the wool-sacks with expert ease, and piling them on
the jetty, and Rhodri and Cadfael addressed themselves pleasurably to watching
the lively scene around them; Its many of the townsfolk and the abbey guests
were also doing. On a fine summer evening it was the best of entertainments to
lean over the parapet of the bridge, or stroll along the green path to the
Gaye, and stare at an annual commotion which was one of the year’s highlights.
If some of the townspeople looked on with dour faces, and
muttered to one another in sullen undertones, that was no great wonder, either.
Yesterday’s confrontation had been reported throughout the town, they knew they
had been turned away empty-handed.
“A
thing worth noting,” said Rhodri, spreading his thick legs on the springy
boards, “how both halves of England can meet in commerce, while they fall out
in every other field. Show a man where there’s money to be made, and he’ll be
there. If barons and kings had the same good sense, a country could be at
peace, and handsomely the gainer by it.”
“Yet
I fancy,” said Cadfael dryly, “that there’ll be some hot contention here even
between traders, before the three days are up. More ways than one of cutting
throats.”
“Well,
every wise man keeps a weapon about him, whatever suits his skill, that’s only
good sense, too. But we live together, we live together, better than princes
manage it. Though I grant you,” he said weightily, “princes make good use of
these occasions, for that matter. No place like one of your greater fairs for
exchanging news and views without being noticed, or laying plots and
stratagems, or meeting someone you’d liefer not be seen meeting. Nowhere so
solitary as in the middle of a market-place!”
“In
a divided land,” said Cadfael thoughtfully, “you may very well be right.”
“For
instance—look to your left a ways, but don’t turn. You see the meagre fellow in
the fine clothes, the smooth-shaven one with the mincing walk? Come to watch
who’s arriving by water! You may be sure if he’s here at all, he’s come early,
and has his stall already up and stocked, to be free to view the rest of us.
That’s Euan of Shotwick, the glover, and an important man about Earl Ranulfs
court at Chester, I can tell you.”
“For
his skill at his trade?” asked Cadfael dryly, observing the lean, fastidious,
high-nosed figure with interest.
“That
and other fields, brother. Euan of Shotwick is one of the sharpest of all of
Earl Ranulfs intelligencers, and much relied on, and if he’s setting up a booth
here as far as Shrewsbury, it may well be for more purposes than trade. And
then on the other side, look, that great barge standing off ready to come
alongside—downstream of us. See the cut of her? Bristol-built,
for a thousand marks! Straight out of the west country, and the city the king
failed to take last year, and has let well alone ever since.”
Above
the softly-flowing surface of Severn, its green silvered now with slanting
evening sunlight, the barge sidled along the grassy shore towards the end of
the jetty. She loomed impressively opulent and graceful, cunningly built to
draw hardly more water than boats half her capacity, and yet steer well and
ride steadily. She had a single mast, and what seemed to be a neat, closed
cabin aft, and three crewmen were poling her inshore with easy, light touches,
and waiting to moor her alongside as soon as there was room. Twenty pence, as
like as not, thought Cadfael, before she gets her load ashore and cleared!
“Made
to carry wine, and carry it steady,” said Rhodri ap Huw, narrowing his
sharply-calculating eyes on the boat. “Some of the best wines of France come
into Bristol, they should have a ready sale as far north as this. I should know
that rig!”
A
considerable number of onlookers, whether they recognised her port and rig or
not, were curious enough to come down from the bridge and the highroad to see
the Bristol boat come in. She was remarkable enough among her fellow craft to
draw all eyes. Cadfael caught sight of a number of known faces craning among
the crowd: Edric Flesher’s wife Petronilla, Aline Beringar’s maid Constance
leaning over the bridge, one of the abbey stewards forgetting his duties to
stare; and suddenly sunlight on a head of dark gold hair, cropped short, and a
young man came running lightly down from the highway, to halt on the grass
slope above the jetty, and watched admiringly as the Bristol boat slid
alongside, ready to be made fast. The lordling whose assured beauty had aroused
Mark’s wistful admiration was evidently just as inquisitive as the raggedest
barefoot urchin from the Foregate.
The
two Welshmen had completed their unloading by this time, and were waiting for
orders, and Rhodri ap Huw was not the man to let his interest in other men’s
business interfere with his own.
“They’ll
be a fair while unloading,” he said briskly. “Shall we go and choose a good
place for my stall, while the field’s open?”
Cadfael led the way along the Foregate,
where several booths had already been set up. “You’ll prefer a site on the
horse-fair itself, I fancy, where all the roads meet.”
“Ah,
my customers will find me, wherever I am,” said Rhodri smugly; but for all
that, he kept a shrewd eye on all the possibilities, and took his time about
selecting his place, even when they had walked the length of the Foregate and
come to the great open triangle of the horse-fair. The abbey servants had set
up a number of more elaborate booths, that could be closed and locked, and
supply living shelter for their holders, and these were let out for rents.
Other traders brought their own serviceable trestles and light roofs, while the
small country vendors would come in early each morning and display their wares
on the dry ground, or on a woven brychan, filling all the spaces between. For
Rhodri nothing was good enough but the best. He fixed upon a stout booth near
the abbey barn and stable, where all customers coming in for the day could
stable their beasts, and in the act could not fail to notice the goods on the
neighbouring stalls.
“This
will serve very well. One of my lads will sleep the nights here.” The elder of
the two had followed them, balancing the first load easily in a sling over his
shoulders, while the other remained to guard the merchandise stacked on the
jetty. Now he began to stow what he had brought, while Rhodri and Cadfael set
off back to the river to dispatch his fellow after him. On the way they
intercepted one of the stewards, notified him of the site chosen, and came to
terms for the rental. Brother Cadfael’s immediate duty was done, but he was as
interested in the growing bustle along the road and by the Severn as any other
man who saw the like but once a year, and there was time to spare yet before
Compline. It was good, too, to be speaking Welsh, there was seldom need within
the walls.
They
reached the point where the track turned aside from the highway to go down to
the waterside, and looked down upon a lively scene. The Bristol boat was
moored, and her three crewmen beginning to hoist casks of wine on to the jetty,
while a big, portly, red-faced elderly gentleman in a long gown of fashionable
cut, his capuchon twisted up into an elaborate hat, swung wide sleeves as he
pointed and beckoned, giving orders at large. A fleshy but powerful face, round and choleric, with bristly brows like furze, and bluish
jowls. He moved with surprising agility and speed, and plainly he considered
himself a man of importance, and expected others to recognise him as such on
sight.
“I
thought it might well be!” said Rhodri ap Huw, pleased with his own acuteness
and knowledge of widespread affairs. “Thomas of Bristol, they call him, one of
the biggest importers of wine into the port there, and deals in a small way in
fancy wares from the east, sweetmeats and spices and candies. The Venetians
bring them in from Cyprus and Syria . Costly and profitable! The ladies will
pay high for something their neighbours have not! What did I say? Money will
bring men together. Whether they hold for Stephen or the empress, they’ll come
and rub shoulders at your fair, brother.”
“By
the look of him,” said Cadfael, “a man of consequence in the city of Bristol.”
“So
he is, and I’d have said in very good odour with Robert of Gloucester, but
business is business, and it would take more than the simple fear of venturing
into enemy territory to keep him at home, when there’s good money to be made.”
They
had turned to begin the descent to the riverside when they were aware of a
growing murmur of excitement among the people watching from the bridge, and of
heads turning to look towards the town gates on the other side of the river.
The evening light, slanting from the west, cast deep shadows under one parapet
and half across the bridge, but above floated a faint, moving cloud of fine
dust, glittering in the sunset rays, and advancing towards the abbey shore. A
tight knot of young men came into sight, shearing through the strolling
onlookers at a smart pace, like a determined little army on the march. All the
rest were idling the tune pleasurably away on a fine evening, these were bound
somewhere, in resolution and haste, the haste, perhaps, all the more aggressive
lest the resolution be lost. There might have been as many as five and twenty
of them, all male and all young. Some of them Cadfael knew. Martin Bellecote’s
boy Edwy was there, and Edric Flesher’s journeyman, and scions of half a dozen
respected trades within the town; and at their head strode the provost’s own
son, young Philip Corviser, jutting a belligerent chin and swinging clenched
hands to the rhythm of his long-striding walk. They looked very grave and very
dour, and people gazed at them in wonder and speculation, and
drew in at a more cautious pace after their passing, to watch what would happen.
“If
this is not the face of battle,” said Rhodri ap Huw alertly, viewing the grim
young faces while they were still safely distant, “I have never seen it. I did
hear that your house has a difference of opinion with the town. I’ll away and
see all those goods of mine safely stacked away under lock and key, before the
trumpets blow.” And he tucked up his sleeves and was off down the path to the
jetty as nimbly as a squirrel, and hoisting his precious jars of honey out of
harm’s way, leaving Cadfael still thoughtfully gazing by the roadside. The
merchant’s instincts, he thought, were sound enough. The elders of the town had
made their plea and been sent away empty-handed. To judge by their faces, the
younger and hotter-headed worthies of the town of Shrewsbury had resolved upon
stronger measures. A rapid survey reassured him that they were unarmed, as far
as he could see not even a staff among them. But the face, no question, was the
face of battle, and the trumpets were about to blow.
Chapter
Three
THE
ADVANCING PHALANX REACHED THE END OF THE BRIDGE, and checked for no more than a
moment, while their leader cast calculating glances forward along the Foregate,
now populous with smaller stalls, and down at the jetty, and gave some brisk
order. Then he, with perhaps ten of his stalwarts on his heels, turned and
plunged down the path to the river, while the rest marched vehemently ahead.
The interested townspeople, equally mutely and promptly, split into partisan
groups, and pursued both contingents. Not one of them would willingly miss what
was to come. Cadfael, more soberly, eyed the passing ranks, and was confirmed
in believing that they came with the most austere intentions; there was not a
bludgeon among them, and he doubted if any of them ever carried knives. Nothing
about them was warlike, except their faces. Besides, he knew most of them,
there was no wilful harm in any. All the same, he turned down the path after
them, not quite easy in his mind. The Corviser sprig was known for a wild one,
clever, bursting with hot and suspect ideas, locked in combat with his elders
half his time, and occasionally liable to drink rather more than at this stage
he could carry. Though this evening he had certainly not been drinking; he had
far more urgent matters on his mind.
Brother
Cadfael sighed, descending the path to the waterside half-reluctantly. The
earnest young are so dangerously given to venturing beyond the point where
experience turns back. And the sharper they are, the more likely to come by
wounds.
He was not at all surprised to find that
Rhodri ap Huw, that most experienced of travellers, had vanished from the
jetty, together with his second porter and all his goods. Rhodri himself would
not be far, once he had seen all his merchandise well on its way to being
locked in the booth on the horse-fair. He would want to watch all that passed,
and make his own dispositions accordingly, but he would be out of sight, and
somewhere where he could make his departure freely whenever he deemed it wise.
But there were half a dozen boats of various sizes busy unloading, dominated by
Thomas of Bristol’s noble barge. Its owner heard the sudden surge of urgent
feet on the downhill track, and turned to level an imperious glance that way,
before returning to his business of supervising the landing of his goods. The
array of casks and bales on the boards was impressive. The young men surging
down to the river could not fail to make an accurate estimate of the powers
they faced.
“Gentlemen…!”
Philip Corviser hailed them all loudly, coming to a halt with feet spread,
confronting Thomas of Bristol. He had a good, ringing voice; it carried, and
lesser dealers dropped what they were doing to listen. “Gentlemen, I beg a
hearing, as you are citizens all, of whatever town, as I am of Shrewsbury, and
as you care for your own town as I do for mine! You are here paying rents and
tolls to the abbey, while the abbey denies any aid to the town. And we have
greater need than ever the abbey has, of some part of what you bring.”
He
drew breath hard, having spent his first wind. He was a gangling lad, not yet
quite in command of his long limbs, being barely twenty and only just at the
end of his growing. Spruce in his dress, but down at the heel, Cadfael noticed—
proof of the old saying that the shoemaker’s son is always the one who goes
barefoot! He had a thick thatch of reddish dark hair, and a decent, homely face
now pale with passion under his summer tan. A good, deft workman, they said,
when he could be stopped from flying off after some angry cause or other.
Certainly he had a cause now, bless the lad, he was pouring out to these
hard-headed business men all the arguments his father had used to the abbot at
chapter, in dead earnest, and—heaven teach him better sense!—even with hopes of
convincing them!
“If the abbey turns a cold eye on the
town’s troubles, should you side with them? We are here to tell you our side of
the story, and appeal to you as men who also have to bear the burdens of your
own boroughs, and may well have seen at home what war and siege can do to your
own walls and pavings. Is it unreasonable that we should ask for a share in the
profits of the fair? The abbey came by no damage last year, as the town did. If
they will not bear their part for the common good, we address ourselves to you,
who have no such protection from the hardships of the world, and will have
fellow-feeling with those who share the like burdens.”
They
were beginning to lose interest in him, to shrug, and turn back to their
unloading. He raised his voice sharply in appeal.
“All
we ask is that you will hold back a tithe of the dues you pay to the abbey, and
pay them instead to the town for murage and pavage. If all hold together, what
can the abbey stewards do against you? There need be no cost to you above what
you would be paying in any event, and we should have something nearer to
justice. What do you say? Will you help us?”
They
would not! The growl of indifference and derision hardly needed words. What,
set up a challenge to what was laid down by charter, when they had nothing to
gain by it? Why should they take the risk? They turned to their work, shrugging
him off. The young men grouped at his back set up among themselves a counter
murmur, still controlled but growing angry. And Thomas of Bristol, massive and
contemptuous, waved a fist in their spokesman’s face, and said impatiently:
“Stand out of the way, boy, you are hindering your betters! Pay a tithe to the
town indeed! Are not the abbey rights set down according to law? And can you,
dare you tell me they do not pay the fee demanded of them by charter? If you
have a complaint that they are failing to keep the law, take it to the sheriff,
where it belongs, but don’t come here with your nonsense. Now be off, and let
honest men get on with their work.”
The
young man took fire. “The men of Shrewsbury are as honest as you, sir, though
something less boastful about it. We take honesty for granted here! And it is
not nonsense that our town goes with broken walls and broken streets, while abbey and Foregate have escaped all such damage. No, but listen…”
The
merchant turned a broad, hunched back, with disdainful effect, and stalked away
to pick up the staff he had laid against his piled barrels, and motion his men
to continue their labours. Philip started indignantly after him, for the act
was stingingly deliberate, as though a gnat, a mere persistent nuisance, had
been brushed aside.
“Master
merchant,” he called hotly, “one word more!” And he laid an arresting hand to
Thomas’s fine, draped sleeve.
They
were two choleric people, and it might have come to it even at the best, sooner
or later, but Cadfael’s impression was that Thomas had been genuinely startled
by the grasp at his arm, and believed he was about to be attacked. Whatever the
cause, he swung round and struck out blindly with the staff he held. The boy
flung up his arm, but too late thoroughly to protect his head. The blow fell
heavily on his forearms and temple, and laid him flat on the planking of the
jetty, with blood oozing from a cut above his ear.
That
was the end of all peaceful and dignified protest, and the declaration of war.
Many things happened on the instant. Philip had fallen without a cry, and lay
half-stunned; but someone had certainly cried out, a small, protesting shriek,
instantly swallowed up in the roar of anger from the young men of the town. Two
of them rushed to their fallen leader, but the rest, bellowing for vengeance,
lunged to confront the equally roused traders, and closed with them merrily. In
a moment the goods newly disembarked were being hoisted and flung into the
river, and one of the raiders soon followed them, with a bigger splash.
Fortunately those who lived all their lives by Severn usually learned to swim
even before they learned to walk, and the youngster was in no danger of
drowning. By the time he had hauled himself out and returned to the fray, there
was a fully-fledged riot in progress all along the riverside.
Several
of the cooler-headed citizens had moved in, though cautiously, to try to
separate the combatants, and talk a little sense into the furious young; and
one or two, not cautious enough, had come in for blows meant for the foe, the
common fate of those who try to make peace where no one is inclined for it.
Cadfael among the rest had rushed down to
the jetty, intent on preventing what might well be a second and fatal blow, to
judge by the merchant’s congested countenance and brandished staff. But someone
else was before him. A girl had clambered frantically up out of the tiny cabin
of the barge, kilted her skirts and leaped ashore, in time to cling with all
her weight to the quivering arm, and plead in agitated tones:
“Uncle,
don’t please don’t! He did no violence! You’ve hurt him badly!”
Philip
Corviser’s brown eyes, all this time open but unseeing, blinked furiously at
the sound of so unexpected a voice. He heaved himself shakily to his knees,
remembered his injury and his grievance, and gathered sprawled limbs and
faculties to surge to his feet and do battle. Not that his efforts would have
been very effective; his legs gave under him as he tried to rise, and he
gripped his head between steadying hands as though it might fall off if he
shook it. But it was the sight of the girl that stopped him short. There she
stood, clinging, to the merchant’s arm and pleading angelically into his ear,
in tones that could have cooled a dragon, her eyes all the time dilated and
anxious and pitying on Philip. And calling the old demon “uncle”! Philip’s
revenge was put clean out of his reach in an instant, but he scarcely felt a
pang at the deprivation, to judge by the transformation that came over his
bruised and furious face. Swaying on one knee, still dazed, he stared at the
girl as pilgrims might stare at miraculous visions, or lost wanderers at the
Pole star.
She
was well worth looking at, a young thing of about eighteen or nineteen years,
bare-armed and bare-headed, with two great braids of blue-black hair swinging
to her waist, and framed between them a round, childish face all roses and
snow, lit by two long-lashed dark blue eyes, at this moment huge with alarm and
concern. No wonder the mere sound of her voice could tame her formidable uncle,
as surely as the sight of her had checked and held at gaze the two young men
who had rushed to salvage and avenge their leader, and who now stood abashed,
gaping and harmless.
It
was at that moment that the fight on the jetty, which had become a melee
hopelessly tangled, reeled their way, thudding along the planks, knocked over
the stack of small barrels, and sent them rolling thunderously in all
directions. Cadfael grasped young Corviser under the arms,
hoisted him to his feet and hauled him out of harm’s way, thrusting him bodily
into the arms of his friends for safe-keeping, since he was still in a daze. A
rolling cask swept Thomas’s feet from under him, and the girl, flung aside in
his fall, swayed perilously on the edge of the jetty.
An
agile figure darted past Cadfael with a flash of gold hair, leaped another
rolling cask as nimbly as a deer, and plucked her back to safety in a long arm.
The almost insolent grace and assurance was as familiar as the yellow hair.
Cadfael contented himself with helping Thomas to his feet, and drawing him
aside out of danger, and was not particularly surprised, when that was done, to
see that the long arm was still gallantly clasped round the girl’s waist. Nor
was she in any hurry to extricate herself. Indeed, she was gazing at the
smiling, comely, reassuring face of her rescuer wide-eyed, much as Philip
Corviser had gazed at her.
“There,
you’re quite safe! But let me help you back aboard, you’d do best to stay there
a while, your uncle, too. I advise it, sir,” he said earnestly. “No one will
offer you further offence. With this lady beside you, no one could be so
ungallant,” he said, his eyes wide in candid admiration. The cream of the
girl’s fair skin turned all to rose.
Thomas
of Bristol dusted himself down with slightly shaky hands, for he was a big man,
and had fallen heavily. “I thank you, sir, warmly, for your help. You, too,
brother. But my wines—my goods—“
“Leave
them to us, sir. What can be salvaged, shall be. You stay safe aboard, and
wait. This cannot continue, the law will be out after these turbulent young
fools any moment. Half of them are off along the Foregate, overturning stalls
and hounding the abbey stewards. Before long they’ll be in the town gaol with
sore heads, wishing they’d had better sense than pick a fight with the abbot of
a Benedictine house.”
His
eye was on Cadfael, who was busy righting and retrieving the fugitive casks,
and still within earshot. He felt himself being drawn companionably into this
masterful young man’s planning, perhaps as reassurance and guarantee of
respectability. The eyes were slightly mischievous, though the face retained
its decent gravity. The nearest Benedictine was being gently teased as
representative of his order.
“My name,” said the rescuer blithely, “is
Ivo Corbiиre, of the manor of Stanton Cobbold in this shire, though the main
part of my honour lies in Cheshire . If you’ll allow me, I’m happy to offer my
help…” He had taken his arm from about the girl’s waist by then, decorously if
reluctantly, but his gaze continued to embrace and flatter her; she was well
aware of it, and it did not displease her. “There!” cried Corbiиre triumphantly,
as a shrill whistle resounded from a youth hanging over the parapet of the
bridge above them. “Now watch them dive to cover! Their look-out sees the
sheriff’s men turning out to quell the riot.”
His
judgment was accurate enough. Half a dozen heads snapped up sharply at the
sound, noted the urgently waving arm, and half a dozen dishevelled youths
extricated themselves hastily from the fight, dropped whatever they were
holding, and made off at speed in several directions, some along the Gaye, towards
the coverts by the riverside, some up the slope into the tangle of narrow lanes
behind the Foregate, one under the arch of the bridge, to emerge on the
upstream side with no worse harm than wet feet. In a few moments the sharp
clatter of hooves drummed over the bridge, and half a dozen of the sheriff’s
men came trotting down to the jetty, while the rest of the company swept on
towards the horse-fair.
“As
good as over!” said Ivo Corbiиre gaily. “Brother, will you lend an oar? I fancy
you know this river better than I, and there’s many a man’s hard-won living
afloat out there, and much of it may yet be saved.”
He
asked no leave; he had selected already the smallest and most manageable boat
that swung beside the jetty, and he was across the boards and down into it
almost before the sheriff’s men had driven their mounts in among the
still-locked combatants, and begun to pluck the known natives out by the hair.
Brother Cadfael followed. With Compline but ten minutes away, by his mental
clock, he should have made his escape and left the salvage to this confident
and commanding young man, but he had been sent out here to aid a client of the
abbey fair, and could he not argue that he was still about the very same
business? He was in the borrowed boat, an oar in his hand and his eye upon the
nearest cask bobbing on the bright sunset waters, before he had
found an answer; which was answer enough.
The
noise receded soon. Everyone left here was busily hooking bales and bundles out
of the river, pursuing some downstream to coves where they had lodged,
abandoning one or two small items too sodden and too vulnerable to be saved,
writing off minor losses, thankfully calculating profits still to be made after
fees and rentals and tolls were paid. The damage was not so great, after all,
it could be carried. Along the Foregate stalls were being righted, goods laid
out afresh. Doubtful if the pandemonium had ever reached the horse-fair, where
the great merchants unrolled their bales. In the stony confines of the castle
and the town gaol, no doubt, some dozen or so youngsters of the town were
nursing their bruises and grudges, and wondering how their noble and dignified
protest had disintegrated into such a shambles. As for Philip Corviser, nobody
knew where he had fetched up, once he shook off the devotees who had helped him
away from the jetty in a daze. The brief venture was over, the cost not too
great. Not even the sheriff, Gilbert Prestcote, was going to bear down too hard
on those well-meaning but ill-advised young men of Shrewsbury .
“Gentlemen,”
said Thomas of Bristol, eased and expansive, “I cannot thank you enough for
such generous help. No, the casks will have taken no hurt. Those who buy my
wines should and do store them properly a good while before tapping, their condition
will not be impaired. The sugar confections, thanks be, were not yet unloaded.
No, I have suffered no real hurt. And my child here is much in your debt. Come,
my dear, don’t hide there within, make your respects to such good friends! Let
me present my niece Emma, my sister’s daughter, Emma Vernold, heiress to her
father, who was a master-mason in our city, and also to me, for I have no other
kin. Emma, my dear, you may pour the wine!”
The
girl had made good use of the interval. She came forth now with her braids of
hair coiled in a gilded net on her neck, and a fine tunic of embroidered linen
over her plain gown. Not, thought Cadfael, for my benefit! It was high time for
him to take his leave and return to his proper duties. He had
missed Compline in favour of retrieving goods from the waters, and he would
have to put in an hour or so in his workshop yet before he could seek his bed.
No one would be early to bed on this night, however. Thomas of Bristol was not
the man to leave the supervision of his booth and the disposition of his goods
to others, however trustworthy his three servants might be; he would soon be
off to the horse-fair to see everything safely stowed to his own satisfaction,
ready for the morrow. And if he thought fit to leave those two handsome young
people together here until his return, that was his affair. Mention of the
manor of Stanton Cobbold, and as the least part of Corbiиre’s honour, at that,
had made its impression. There had been no real need for that careful mention
of Mistress Emma’s prospective wealth; but dutiful uncles and guardians must be
ever on the alert for good matches for their girls, and this young man was
already taken with her face before ever he heard of her fortune. Small wonder,
she was a beautiful child by any standards.
Brother
Cadfael excused himself from lingering, wished the company goodnight, and
walked back at leisure to the gatehouse. The Foregate stretched busy and
populous, but at peace. Order had been restored, and Saint Peter’s Fair could
open on the morrow without further disruption.
Chapter
Four
HUGH
BERINGAR CAME BACK FROM A FINAL PATROL along the Foregate well past ten
o’clock, an hour when all dutiful brothers should have been fast asleep in the
dortoir. He was by no means surprised to find that Cadfael was not. They met in
the great court, as Cadfael came back from closing his workshop in the
herb-garden. It was still a clear twilight, and the west had a brilliant
afterglow.
“I
hear you’ve been in the thick of it,” said Hugh, stretching and yawning. “Did
ever I know you when you were not? Mad young fools, what did they hope to do,
that their elders could not! And then to run wild as they did, and ruin their
case even with those who had sympathy for them! Now their sires will have fines
to pay, and the town lose more for the night’s work than ever it stood to gain.
Cadfael, I take no joy in heaving decent, silly lads into prison, I have a foul
taste in my mouth from it. Come into the gatehouse for a while, and share a cup
with me. You may as well stay awake until Matins now.”
“Aline
will be waiting for you,” objected Cadfael.
“Aline,
bless her good sense, will be fast asleep, for I’m bound to the castle yet to
report on this disturbance. I doubt I shall be there over the night. Come and
tell me how all this went wrong, for they tell me it began down at the jetty,
where you were.”
Cadfael
went with him willingly. They sat together in the anteroom of the gatehouse,
and the porter, used to such nocturnal activities when the deputy sheriff of the
shire was lodged within, brought them wine, made tolerant
enquiry of progress, and left them to their colloquy.
“How
many have you taken up?” asked Cadfael, when he had given an account of what
had happened by the river.
“Seventeen.
And it should have been eighteen,” owned Hugh grimly, “if I had not hauled
Bellecote’s boy Edwy aside without witnesses, put the fear of God into him, and
sent him home with a flea in his ear. Not sixteen yet! But sharp enough to know
very well what he was about, the imp! I should not have done it.”
“His
father was one of yesterday’s delegates,” said Cadfael, “and he’s a loyal
child, as well as a bold one. I’m glad you let him away home. And young
Corviser?”
“No,
we’ve not laid hand on him, though a dozen witnesses say he was the ringleader,
and captained the whole enterprise. But he has to go home some time, and he’ll
not get in at the gate a free man. Not a hope of it!”
“He
came lecturing like a doctor,” said Cadfael seriously, “and never a threatening
move. It was when he was struck down that the wild lads took the bit between
their teeth and laid about them. I saw it! The man who struck him lashed out in
alarm, I grant you, but without cause.”
“I
take your word for that, and I’ll stand by it. But he led the attack, and he’ll
end with the rest, as he should, seeing he loosed this on us all. They’ll be
bailed by their fathers, the lot of them,” said Hugh wearily, and passed long
fingers over tired eyelids. “Do I seem to you, Cadfael, to be turning horribly
into a crown official? That I should not like!”
“No,”
said Cadfael judicially, “you’re not too far gone. Still a glint in the eye and
a quirk in the mind. You’ll do yet!”
“Gracious
in you! And you say this Bristol merchant struck the silly wretch down without
provocation?”
“He
imagined provocation. The boy laid a detaining hand on his arm from behind,
meaning no ill, but the man took fright. He had a staff in his hand, he turned
on him and hit out. Felled him like an ox! I doubt if he had the strength to
knock the trestle from under a stall, after that. For all I know, he may be
fallen out of his senses, somewhere, unless his friends have kept their hands
on him.”
Hugh
looked at him across the trestle on which their own elbows were
spread, and smiled. “If ever I want for an advocate, I’ll come running to you.
Well, I do know the lad, he has a well-hung tongue, and lets it wag far too
freely, and he has a hot temper and a warm heart, and lets the pair of them run
away with his own sense—if you claim he has any!”
The
lay porter put his bald brown crown and round red face into the room. “My lord,
there’s a lady here at the gate has a trouble on her mind, and asks a word. One
Mistress Emma Vernold, niece to the merchant Thomas of Bristol. Will you have
her come in?”
They
looked at each other across the board with raised brows and startled eyes. “The
same man?” said Beringar, marvelling.
“The
same man, surely! And the same girl! But the uproar was all over. What can she
be wanting here at this hour, and what’s her uncle about, letting her venture
loose into the night?”
“We’d
best be finding out,” said Hugh, resigned. “Let the lady come in, if I’m the
man she wants.”
“She
asked first for a guest here, Ivo Corbiиre, but I know he’s still out viewing
the preparations along the Foregate. And when I mentioned that you were here,
she begged a word with you. Glad to find the law here and awake, seemingly.”
“Ask
her to step in, then. And Cadfael, stay, if you’ll be so good, she’s had speech
with you already, she may be glad of a known face.”
Emma
Vernold came in hurriedly yet hesitantly, unsure of herself in this unfamiliar
place, and made a hasty reverence. “My lord, I pray your pardon for troubling
you so late…” She saw Brother Cadfael, and half-smiled, relieved but
distracted. “I am Emma Vernold, I came with my uncle, Thomas of Bristol, we
have our own living-space on his barge by the bridge. And this is my uncle’s
man Gregory.” It was the youngest of the three who attended her, a gawky, lean
but powerful fellow of about twenty.
Beringar
took her by the hand and put her into a seat by the table. “I’m here to serve
you, as best I can. What’s your trouble?”
“Sir,
my uncle went to see to the stocking of his booth at the horse-fair, it was not
long after the good brother here left us. You’ll have heard all
that happened, below there? My uncle went to join his other two men, who were
busy there before him, and left only Gregory with me. But that’s nearly two
hours ago, and he has not come back.”
“He
will have brought a great deal of merchandise with him,” suggested Hugh
reasonably. “It takes time to arrange things to the best vantage, and I imagine
your uncle will have things done well.”
“Oh,
yes, indeed he will. But it isn’t just that he is so long. The two men with him
were his journeyman, Roger Dod, and the porter Warin, and Warin sleeps in the
booth to mind the goods. Roger came back to the barge an hour ago, and was
surprised not to find my uncle back, for he said he left the booth well before
him. We thought perhaps he had met some acquaintance on the way, and stopped to
exchange the news with him, so we waited some while, but still he did not come.
And now I have been back to the booth with Gregory, to see if by some chance he
had turned back there for something, something forgotten, perhaps. But he has
not, and Warin says, as Roger does, that my uncle left first, intending to come
straight home to me, it being so late. He never liked—he does not like,” she
amended, paling, “for me to be alone with the men, without his company.” Her
eyes were steady and clear, but her lip quivered, and there was the faint
suggestion of disquiet even in the unflinching firmness of her regard.
She
knows she is fair, Cadfael thought, and she’s right to take account of it. It
may even be that one of them—Roger Dod, the most privileged of the three,
perhaps?—has a fancy for her, and she knows that, too, and has no fancy for
him, and whether justly or not, is uneasy about being close to him without her
guardian by.
“And
you are sure he has not made his way home by some other way,” asked Hugh,
“while you’ve been seeking him at his booth?”
“We
went back. Roger waited there, for that very case, but no, he has not come. I
asked those still working in the Foregate if they had seen such a man, but I
could get no news. And then I thought that perhaps—“ She turned in appeal to
Cadfael. “The young gentleman who was so kind, this evening—he
is staying here in the guest-hall, so he told us. I wondered if perhaps my
uncle had met him again on his way home, and lingered… And he, at least, knows
his looks, and could tell me if he has seen him. But he is not yet back, they
tell me.”
“He
left the jetty earlier than your uncle, then?” asked Cadfael. The young man had
looked very well settled to spend a pleasant hour or two in the lady’s company,
but perhaps her formidable uncle had ways of conveying, even to lords of
respectable honours, that his niece was to be approached only when he was
present to watch over her.
Emma
flushed, but without averting her eyes; eyes which were seen to be thoughtful,
resolute and intelligent, for all her milk-and-roses baby-face. “Very soon
after you, brother. He was at all points correct and kind. I thought to come
and ask for him, as someone on whom I could rely.”
“I’ll
ask the porter to keep a watch for him,” offered Cadfael, “and have him step in
here when he returns. Even the horse-fair should be on its way to bed by now,
and he’ll be needing his own sleep if he’s to hunt the best bargains tomorrow,
which is what I take it he’s here for. What do you say, Hugh?”
“A
good thought,” said Hugh. “Do it, and we’ll make provision to look for Master
Thomas, though I trust all’s well with him, for all this delay. The eve of a
fair,” he said, smiling reassurance at the girl, “and there are contacts to be
made, customers already looking over the ground… A man can forget about his
sleep with his mind on business.”
Brother
Cadfael heard her sigh: “Oh, yes!” with genuine hope and gratitude, as he went
to bid the porter intercept Ivo Corbiиre when he came in. His errand could
hardly have been better timed, for the man himself appeared in the gateway. The
main gate was already closed, only the wicket stood open, and the dip of the
gold head stepping through caught the light from the torch overhead, and burned
like a minor sun. Bare-headed, with his cotte slung on one shoulder in the warm
last night of July, Ivo Corbiиre strolled towards his bed almost rebelliously,
with a reserve of energy still unspent. The snowy linen shirt glowed in the
lambent dark with a ghostly whiteness. He was whistling a street tune, more
likely Parisian than out of London, by the cadence of it. He had
certainly drunk reasonably deep, but not beyond his measure, nor even up to it.
He was alert at a word.
“What,
you, brother? Out of bed before Matins?” Amiable though his soft laughter was,
he checked it quickly, sensing something demanding gravity of him. “You were
looking for me? Something worse fell out? Good God, the old man never killed
the fool boy, did he?”
“Nothing
so dire,” said Cadfael. “But there’s one within here at the gatehouse came
looking for you, with a question. You’ve been about the Foregate and the
fairground all this time?”
“The
whole round,” said Ivo, his attention sharpening. “I have a new and draughty manor
to furnish in Cheshire. I’m looking for woollens and Flemish tapestries. Why?”
“Have
you seen, in your wanderings, Master Thomas of Bristol? At any time since you
left his barge earlier this evening?”
“I
have not,” said Ivo, wondering, and peered closely “in the strange, soft light
of midsummer, an hour short of midnight.
“What
is this? The man made it clear—he has practice, which is no marvel!—that his
girl is to be seen only in his presence and with his sanction, and small blame
to him, for she’s gold, with or without his gold. I respected him for it, and I
left. Why? What follows?”
“Come
and see,” said Cadfael simply, and led the way within.
The
young man blinked in the sudden light, and opened his eyes wide upon Emma. It
was a question which of them showed the more distracted. The girl rose,
reaching eager hands and then half-withdrawing them. The man sprang forward
solicitously to welcome the clasp.
“Mistress
Vernold! At this hour? Should you…” He had a grasp of the company and the
urgency by then. “What has happened?” he asked, and looked at Beringar.
Briskly,
Beringar told him. Cadfael was not greatly surprised to see that Corbiиre was
relieved rather than dismayed. Here was a young, inexperienced girl, growing
nervous all too easily when she was left alone an hour or so too long, while no doubt her uncle, very travelled and experienced indeed,
and well able to take care of himself, was in no sort of trouble at all, but
merely engaged in a little social indulgence with a colleague, or busy assessing
the goods and worldly state of some of his rivals.
“Nothing
ill will have happened to him,” said Corbiиre cheerfully, smiling reassurance
at Emma, who remained, for all that, grave and anxious of eye. And she was no
fool, Cadfael reflected, watching, and knew her uncle better than anyone else
here could claim to know him. “You’ll see, he’ll come home in his own good
time, and be astonished to find you so troubled for him.”
She
wanted to believe it, but her eyes said she could not be sure. “I hoped he
might have met you again,” she said, “or that at least you might have seen
him.”
“I
wish it were so,” he said. “It would have been my pleasure to set your mind at
rest. But I have not seen him.”
“I
think,” said Beringar, “this lies now with me. I have still half a dozen men
here within the walls, we’ll make a search for Master Thomas. In the meantime,
the hour is late, and you should not be wandering in the night. It will be best
if your man here returns to the barge, while you, madam, if you consent, can
very well join my wife, here in the guest-hall. Her maid Constance will make
room for you, and find you whatever you need over the night.” There was no
knowing whether he had noted her uneasiness about returning to the barge, just
as acutely as Cadfael had, or was simply placing her in the nearest safe
charge, and the best; but she brightened so eagerly, and thanked him so
fervently, that there was no mistaking the relief she felt.
“Come,
then,” he said gently, “I’ll see you safely into Constance’s care, and then you
may leave the searching to us.”
“And
I,” said Corbiиre, shrugging enthusiastically into the sleeves of his cotte,
“will bear a hand with you in the hunt, if you’ll have me.”
They
combed the whole length of the Foregate, Beringar, with his six men-at-arms,
Ivo Corbiиre, as energetic and wide-awake as at noon, and Brother Cadfael, who
had no legitimate reason to go with them at all, beyond the
pricking of his thumbs, and the manifest absurdity of going to his bed at such
an hour, when he would in any case have to rise again at midnight for Matins.
If that was excuse enough for sharing a drink with Beringar, it was excuse
enough for taking part in the hunt for Thomas of Bristol. For truly, thought
Cadfael, shaking his head over the drastic events of the evening, I shall not
be easy until I see that meaty blue-jowled face again, and hear that loud,
self-confident voice. Corbiиre might shrug off the merchant’s non-return as a
mere trivial departure from custom, such as every man makes now and again, and
on any other day Cadfael would have agreed with him; but too much had happened
since noon today, too many people had been trapped into outrageous and
uncharacteristic actions, too many passions had been let loose, for this to be
an ordinary day. It was even possible that someone had stepped so far aside
from his usual self as to commit deliberate violence by stealth in the night,
to avenge what had been done openly and impulsively in the day. Though God
forbid!
They
had begun by making certain that there was still no word or sign at the jetty.
No, Thomas had neither appeared nor sent word, and Roger Dod’s forays among the
other traders along the riverside, as far as he dared go from the property he
guarded, had elicited no news of his master.
He
was a burly, well-set-up young man of about thirty, this Roger Dod, and very
personable, if he had not been so curt and withdrawn in manner. No doubt he was
anxious, too. He answered Hugh’s questions in the fewest possible words, and
gnawed an uncertain lip at hearing that his master’s niece was now lodged in
the abbey guest-hall. He would have come with them to help in their search, but
he was responsible for his master’s belongings, and would have to be answerable
for their safety when his master returned. He stayed with the barge, and sent
the mute and sleepily resentful Gregory to lead them straight to the booth
Master Thomas had rented. Beringar’s sergeant, with three men, was left behind
to work his way gradually along the Foregate after them, questioning every
waking stallholder as he went, while the rest followed the porter to the
fairground. The great open space was by this time half-asleep, but still
winking with occasional torches and braziers, and murmuring with
subdued voices. For these three days in the year it was transformed into a
tight little town, busy and populous, to vanish again on the fourth day.
Thomas
had chosen a large booth almost in the centre of the triangular ground. His
goods were neatly stacked within, and his watchman was awake and prowling the
ground uneasily, to welcome the arrival of authority with relief. Warm was a
leathery, middle-aged man, who had clearly been in his present service many
years, and was probably completely trusted within his limits, but had not the
ability ever to rise to the position Roger Dod now held.
“No,
my lord,” he said anxiously, “never a word since, and I’ve been on watch every
moment. He set off for his barge a good quarter of an hour before Roger left.
We had everything stowed to his liking, he was well content. And he’d had a
fall not so long before—you’d know of that?— and was glad enough, I’d say, to
be off home to his bed. For after all, he’s none so young, no more than I am,
and he carried more weight.”
“And
he set off from here, which way?”
“Why,
straight to the highroad, close by here. I suppose he’d keep along the
Foregate.”
Behind
Cadfael’s shoulder a familiar voice, rich and full and merrily knowing, said in
Welsh: “Well, well, brother, out so late? And keeping the law company! What would
the deputy sheriff of the shire want with Thomas of Bristol’s watchman at this
hour? Are they on the scent of all Gloucester’s familiars, after all? And I
claimed commerce was above the anarchy!” Narrowed eyes twinkled at Cadfael in
the light of the dispersed torches and the far-distant stars in a perfect
midsummer sky. Rhodri ap Huw was chuckling softly and fatly at his own teasing
wit and menacing sharpness of apprehension.
“You
keep a friendly eye out for your neighbours?” said Cadfael, innocently approving.
“I see you brought off all your own goods without scathe.”
“I
have a nose for trouble, and the good sense to step out of its way,” said
Rhodri ap Huw smugly. “What’s come to Thomas of Bristol? He was not so quick on
the scent, it seems. He could have loosed his mooring and poled
out into the river till the flurry was over, and been as safe as in the west
country.”
“Did
you see him struck down?” asked Cadfael deceitfully; but Rhodri was not to be
caught.
“I
saw him strike down the other young fool,” he said, and grinned. “Why, did he
come to grief after I left? And which of them is it you’re looking for, Thomas
or the lad?” And he stared with marked interest to see the sheriff’s men
probing at the backs of stalls, and under the trestles, and followed
inquisitively on their heels as they worked their way back along the highroad.
Evidently nothing of moment was to be allowed to happen at this fair without
Rhodri ap Huw being present at it, or very quickly and minutely informed of it.
And why not make use of, his perspicacity?
“Thomas’s
niece is in a taking because he has not come back to his barge. That might mean
anything or nothing, but now it’s gone on so long, his men are getting uneasy,
too. Did you see him leave his booth?”
“I
did. It might be as much as two hours ago. And his journeyman some little while
after him. A fair size of a man, to be lost between here and the river. And no
word of him anywhere since then?”
“Not
that we’ve found, or likely to find, without questioning every trader and every
idler in all this array. And the wiser half of them getting their sleep in
ready for the morning.”
They
had reached the Foregate and turned towards the town, and still Rhodri strode
companionably beside Cadfael, and had taken to peering into the dark spaces
between stalls just as the sheriff’s men were doing. Lights and braziers were
fewer here, and the stalls more modest, and the quiet of the night closed in
drowsily. On their left, under the abbey wall, a few compact but secure booths
were arrayed. The first of them, though completely closed in and barred for the
night, showed through a chink the light of a candle within. Rhodri dug a
weighty elbow into Cadfael’s ribs.
“Euan
of Shotwick! No one is ever going to get at him from the rear, he likes a
corner backed into two walls if he can get it. Travels alone with a pack-pony,
and wears a weapon, and can use it, too. A solitary soul because he trusts nobody. His own porter—luckily his wares weigh light for their
value—and his own watchman.”
Ivo
Corbiиre had loitered to go aside between the stalls, some of which in this
stretch were still unoccupied, waiting for the local traders who would come
with the dawn. The consequent darkness slowed their search, and the young man,
not at all averse to spending the night without sleep, and probably encouraged
by the memory of Emma’s bright eyes, was tireless and thorough. Even Cadfael
and Rhodri ap Huw were some yards ahead of him when they heard him cry after
them, high and urgently:
“Good
God, what’s here? Beringar, come back here!”
The
tone was enough to bring them running. Corbiиre had left the highway, probing
between stacked trestles and leaning canvas awnings into darkness, but when
they peered close there was lambent light enough from the stars for accustomed
eyes to see what he had seen. From beneath a light wooden frame and stretched
canvas jutted two booted feet, motionless, toes pointed skywards. For a moment
they all stared in silence, dumbstruck, for truth to tell, not one of them had
believed that the merchant could have come to any harm, as they all agreed
afterwards. Then Beringar took hold of the frame and hoisted it away from the
trestles against which it leaned, and dim and large in the darkness they saw a
man’s long shape, from the knees up rolled in a cloak that hid the face. There
was no movement, and no noticeable sound.
The
sergeant leaned in with the one torch they had brought with them, and Beringar
reached a hand to the folds of the cloak, and began to draw them back from the
shrouded head and shoulders. The movement of the cloth released a powerful wave
of an odour that made him halt and draw suspicious breath. It also disturbed
the body, which emitted an enormous snore, and a further gust of spirituous
breath.
“Dead
drunk and helpless,” said Beringar, relieved. “And not, I fancy, the man we’re
looking for. The state he’s in, this fellow must have been here some hours
already, and if he comes round in time to crawl away before dawn it will be a
miracle. Let’s have a look at him.” He was less gingerly now in dragging the
cloak away, but the drunken man let himself be hauled about and dragged forth
by the feet with only a few disturbed grunts, and subsided into stertorous
sleep again as soon as he was released. The torch shone its
yellow, resinous light upon a shock-head of coarse auburn hair, a pair of wide
shoulders in a leather jerkin, and a face that might have been sharp, lively
and even comely when he was awake and sober, but now looked bloated and
idiotic, with open, slobbering mouth and reddened eyes.
Corbiиre
took one close look at him, and let out a gasp and an oath. “Fowler! Devil take
the sot! Is this how he obeys me? By God, I’ll make him sweat for it!” And he
filled a fist with the thick brown hair and shook the fellow furiously, but got
no more out of him than a louder snort, the partial opening of one glazed eye,
and a wordless mumble that subsided again as soon as he was dropped,
disgustedly and ungently, back into the turf.
“This
drunken rogue is mine… my falconer and archer, Turstan Fowler,” said Ivo
bitterly, and kicked the sleeper in the ribs but not savagely. What was the
use? The man would not be conscious for hours yet, and what he suffered
afterwards would pay him all his dues. “I’ve a mind to put him to cool in the
river! I never gave him leave to quit the abbey precinct, and by the look of
him he’s been out and drinking— Good God, the reek of it, what raw spirit can
it be?—since ever I turned my back.”
“One
thing’s certain,” said Hugh, amused, “he’s in no case to walk back to his bed.
Since he’s yours, what will you have done with him? I would not advise leaving
him here. If he has anything of value on him, even his hose, he might be
without it by morning. There’ll be scavengers abroad in the dark hours—no fair escapes
them.”
Ivo
stood back and stared down disgustedly at the oblivious culprit. “If you’ll
lend me two of your men, and let us borrow a board here, we’ll haul him back
and toss him into one of the abbey’s punishment cells, to sleep off his
swinishness on the stones, and serve him right. If we leave him there unfed all
the morrow, it may frighten him into better sense. Next time, I’ll have his
hide!”
They
hoisted the sleeper on to a board, where he sprawled aggravatingly into ease
again, and snored his way along the Foregate so blissfully that his bearers
were tempted to tip him off at intervals, by way of recompensing themselves for
their own labour. Cadfael, Beringar and the remainder of the party were
left looking after them somewhat ruefully, their own errand still unfulfilled.
“Well,
well!” said Rhodri ap Huw softly into Cadfael’s ear, “Euan of Shotwick is
taking a modest interest in the evening’s happenings, after all!”
Cadfael
turned to look, and in the shuttered booth tucked under the wall a hatch had
certainly opened, and against the pale light of a candle a head leaned out in
sharp outline, staring towards where they stood. He recognised the
high-bridged, haughty nose, the deceptively meagre slant of the lean shoulders,
before the hatch was drawn silently to again, and the glover vanished.
They
worked their way doggedly, yard by yard, all the way back to the riverside,
where Roger Dod was waiting in a fume of anxiety, but they found no trace of
Thomas of Bristol.
A
late boat coming up the Severn from Buildwas next day, and tying up at the
bridge about nine in the morning, delayed its unloading of a cargo of pottery
to ask first that a message be sent to the sheriff, for they had other cargo
aboard, taken up out of a cove near Atcham, which would be very much the
sheriff’s business. Gilbert Prestcote, busy with other matters, sent from the
castle his own sergeant, with orders to report first to Hugh Beringar at the
abbey.
The
particular cargo the potter had to deliver lay rolled in a length of coarse
sail-cloth in the bottom of the boat, and oozed water in a dark stain over the
boards. The boatman unfolded the covering, and displayed to Beringar’s view the
body of a heavily-built man of some fifty to fifty-five years, fleshy, with
thinning, grizzled hair and bristly, bluish jowls, his pouchy features sagging
doughily in death. Master Thomas of Bristol, stripped of his elaborate
capuchon, his handsome gown, his rings and his dignity, as naked as the day he
was born.
“We
saw his whiteness bobbing under the bank,” said the potter, looking down upon
his salvaged man, “and poled in to pick him up, the poor soul. I can show you
the place, this side of the shallows and the island at Atcham. We thought best
to bring him here, as we would a drowned man. But this one,” he said very
soberly, “did not drown.”
No, Thomas of Bristol had not
drowned. That was already evident from the very fact that he had been stripped
of everything he had on, and hardly by his own hands or will. But also, even
more certainly, from the incredibly narrow wound under his left shoulder-blade,
washed white and closed by the river, where a very fine, slender dagger had
transfixed him and penetrated to his heart.
The
First Day of the Fair
Chapter
One
THE
FIRST DAY OF SAINT PETER’S FAIR was in full swing, and the merry, purposeful
hum of voices bargaining, gossiping and crying wares came over the wall into
the great court, and in at the gatehouse, like the summer music of a huge hive
of bees on a sunny day. The sound pursued Hugh Beringar back to the apartment
in the guest-hall, where his wife and Emma Vernold were very pleasurably
comparing the virtues of various wools, and the maid Constance, who was an
expert spinstress, was fingering the samples critically and giving her advice.
On
this domestic scene, which had brought back the fresh colour to Emma’s cheeks
and the animation to her voice, Hugh’s sombre face cast an instant cloud. There
was no time for breaking news circuitously, nor did he think that this girl
would thank him for going roundabout.
“Mistress
Vernold, my news is ill, and I grieve for it. God knows I had not expected
this. Your uncle is found. A boat coming up early this morning from Buildwas
picked up his body from the river.”
The
colour ebbed from her face. She stood with frightened, helpless eyes gazing
blindly before her. The prop of her life had suddenly been plucked away, and
for a moment it seemed that all balance was lost to her, and she might indeed
fall for want of him. But by the time she had drawn breath deep, and shaped
soundlessly: “Dead!” it was clear that she was firm on her own feet again, and
in no danger of falling. Her eyes, once the momentary panic and
dizziness passed, looked straight at Hugh and made no appeal.
“Drowned?”
she said. “But he swam well, he was raised by the river. And if he drank at
all, it was sparingly. I do not believe he could fall into Severn and drown.
Not of himself!” she said, and her large eyes dilated.
“Sit
down,” said Hugh gently, “for we must talk a little, and then I shall leave you
with Aline, for of course you must remain here in our care for this while. No,
he did not drown. Nor did he come by his death of himself. Master Thomas was
stabbed from behind, stripped, and put into the river after death.”
“You
mean,” she said, in a voice low and laboured, but quite steady, “he was waylaid
and killed by mere sneak-thieves, for what he had on him? For his rings and his
gown and his shoes?”
“It
is what leaps to the mind. There are no roads in England now that can be called
safe, and no great fair that has not its probable underworld of hangers-on, who
will kill for a few pence.”
“My
uncle was not a timid man. He has fought off more than one attack in his time,
and he never avoided a journey for fear in his life. After all these years,”
she said, her voice aching with protest, “why should he fall victim now to such
scum? And yet what else can it be?”
“There
are some people recalling,” said Hugh, “that there was an ugly incident on the
jetty last evening, and violence was done to a number of the merchants who were
unloading goods and setting up stalls for the fair. It’s common knowledge there
was bad blood between town and traders, of whom Master Thomas was perhaps the
most influential. He was involved bitterly with the young man who led the raid.
An attack made in revenge, by night, perhaps in a drunken rage, might end
mortally, whether it was meant or no.”
“Then
he would have been left where he lay,” said Emma sharply. “His attacker would
think only of getting clean away unseen. Those angry people were not thieves,
only townsmen with a grievance. A grievance might turn them into murderers, but
I do not think it would turn them into thieves.”
Hugh
was beginning to feel considerable respect for this girl, as Aline, by her detached
silence and her attentive face, had already learned to do. “I
won’t say but I agree with you there,” he admitted. “But it might well occur to
a young man turned murderer almost by mishap, to dress his crime as the common
sneak killing for robbery. It opens so wide a field. Twenty young men bitterly
aggrieved and hot against your uncle for his scorn of them could be lost among
a thousand unknown, and the most unlikely suspects among them, at that, if this
passes as chance murder for gain.”
Even
in the bleak newness of her bereavement, this thought troubled her. She bit a
hesitant lip. “You think it may have been one of those young men? Or more of
them together? That they burned with their grudge until they followed him in
the dark, and took this way?”
“It’s
being both thought and said,” owned Hugh, “by many people who witnessed what
happened by the river.”
“But
the sheriff’s men,” she pointed out, frowning, “surely took up many of those
young men long before my uncle went to the fairground. If they were already in
prison, they could not have harmed him.”
“True
of most of them. But the one who led them was not taken until the small hours
of the morning, when he came reeling back to the town gate, where he was
awaited. He is in a cell in the castle now, like his fellows, but he was still
at liberty long after Master Thomas failed to come back to you, and he is under
strong suspicion of this death. The whole pack of them will come before the
sheriff this afternoon. The rest, I fancy, will be let out on their fathers’
bail, to answer the charges later. But for Philip Corviser, I greatly doubt it.
He will need to have better answers than he was able to give when they took
him.”
“This
afternoon!” echoed Emma. “Then I should also attend. I was a witness when this
turmoil began. The sheriff should hear my testimony, too, especially if my
uncle’s death is in question. There were others—Master Corbiиre, and the
brother of the abbey, the one you know well…”
“They
will be attending, and others besides. Certainly your witness would be
valuable, but to ask it of you at such a time…”
“I
would rather!” she said firmly. “I want my uncle’s murderer caught, if indeed
he was murdered, but I pray no innocent man may be too hurriedly blamed. I
don’t know—I would not have thought he looked like a murderer… I
should like to tell what I do know, it is my duty.”
Beringar
cast a brief glance at his wife for enlightenment, and Aline gave him a smile
and the faintest of nods.
“If
you are resolved on that,” he said, reassured, “I will ask Brother Cadfael to
escort you. And for the rest, you need have no anxieties about your own
situation. It will be necessary for you to stay here until this matter is
looked into, but naturally you will remain here in Aline’s company, and you
shall have every possible help in whatever dispositions you need to make.”
“I
should like,” said Emma, “to take my uncle’s body back by the barge to Bristol
for burial.” She had not considered, until then, that there would be no
protector for her on the boat this time, only Roger Dod, whose mute but
watchful and jealous devotion was more than she could bear, Warin who would
take care to notice nothing that might cause him trouble, and poor Gregory, who
was strong and able of body but very dull of wit. She drew in breath sharply,
and bit an uncertain lip, and the shadow came back to her eyes. “At least, to
send him back… His man of law there will take care of his affairs and mine.”
“I
have spoken to the prior. Abbot Radulfus sanctions the use of an abbey chapel,
your uncle’s body can lie there when he is brought from the castle, and all due
preparations will be made for his decent coffining. Ask for anything you want,
it shall be at your disposal. I must summon your journeyman to attend at the
castle this afternoon, too. How would you wish him to deal, concerning the
fair? I will give him whatever instructions you care to send.”
She
nodded understanding, visibly bracing herself again towards a world of shrewd
daily business which had not ceased with the ending of a life. “Be so kind as
to tell him,” she said, “to continue trading for the three days of the fair, as
though his master still presided. My uncle would scorn to go aside from his
regular ways for any danger or loss, and so will I in his name.” And suddenly,
as freely and as simply as a small child, she burst into tears at last.
When
Hugh was gone about his business, and Constance had withdrawn at Aline’s nod,
the two women sat quietly until Emma had ceased to weep, which
she did as suddenly as she had begun. She wept, as some women have the gift of
doing, without in the least defacing her own prettiness and without caring
whether she did or no. Most lose the faculty, after the end of childhood. She
dried her eyes, and looked up straightly at Aline, who was looking back at her
just as steadily, with a serenity which offered comfort without pressing it.
“You
must think,” said Emma, “that I had no deep affection for my uncle. And indeed
I don’t know myself that you would be wrong. And yet I did love him, it has not
been only loyalty and gratitude, though those came easier. He was a hard man,
people said, hard to satisfy, and hard in his business dealings. But he was not
hard to me. Only hard to come near. It was not his fault, or mine.”
“I
think,” said Aline mildly, since she was being invited closer, “you loved him
as much as he would let you. As he could let you. Some men have not the gift.”
“Yes.
But I would have liked to love him more. I would have done anything to please
him. Even now I want to do everything as he would have wished. We shall keep
the booth open as long as the fair lasts, and try to do it as well as he would
have done. All that he had in hand, I want to see done thoroughly.” Her voice
was resolute, almost eager. Master Thomas would certainly have approved the set
of her chin and the spark in her eye. “Aline, shall I not be a trouble to you
by staying here? I—my uncle’s men—there’s one who likes me too well…”
“So
I had thought,” said Aline. “You’re most welcome here, and we’ll not part with
you until you can be sent back safely to Bristol, and your home. Not that I can
find it altogether blameworthy in the young man to like you, for that matter,”
she added, smiling.
“No,
but I cannot like him well enough. Besides, my uncle would never have allowed
me to be there on the barge without him. And now I have duties,” said Emma,
rearing her head determinedly and staring the uncertain future defiantly in the
face. “I must see to the ordering of a fine coffin for him, for the journey
home. There will be a master-carpenter, somewhere in the town?”
“There
is. To the right, halfway up the Wyle, Master Martin Bellecote. A good man, and
a good craftsman. His lad was among these terrible rioters, as I
hear,” said Aline, and dimpled indulgently at the thought, “but so were half
the promising youth of the town. I’ll come in with you to Martin’s shop.”
“No,”
said Emma firmly. “It will all be tedious and long at the sheriff’s court, and
you should not tire yourself. And besides, you have to buy your fine wools, before
the best are taken. And Brother Cadfael—was that the name?—will show me where
to find the shop. He will surely know.”
“There’s
very little to be known about this precinct and the town of Shrewsbury,” agreed
Aline with conviction, “that Brother Cadfael does not know.”
Cadfael
received the abbot’s dispensation to attend the hearing at the castle, and to
escort the abbey’s bereaved guest, without question. A civic duty could not be
evaded, whether by secular or monastic. Radulfus had already shown himself both
an austere but just disciplinarian and a shrewd and strong-minded business man.
He owed his preferment to the abbacy as much to the king as to the papal
legate, and valued and feared for the order of the realm at least as keenly as
for the state of his own cure. Consequently, he had a use for those few among
the brothers who shared his wide experience of matters outside the cloister.
“This
death,” he said, closeted with Cadfael alone after Beringar’s departure, “casts
a shadow upon our house and our fair. Such a burden cannot be shifted to other
shoulders. I require of you a full account of what passes at this hearing. It
was of me that the elders of the town asked a relief I could not grant. On me
rests the load of resentment that drove those younger men to foolish measures.
They lacked patience and thought, and they were to blame, but that does not
absolve me. If the man’s death has arisen out of my act, even though I could
not act otherwise, I must know it, for I have to answer for it, as surely as
the man who struck him down.”
“I
shall bring you all that I myself see and hear, Father Abbot,” said Cadfael.
“I
require also all that you think, brother. You saw part of what happened
yesterday between the dead man and the living youth. Is it possible that it
could have brought about such a death as this? Stabbed in the
back? It is not commonly the method of anger.”
“Not
commonly.” Cadfael had seen many deaths in the open anger of battle, but he
knew also of rages that had bred and festered into killings by stealth, with
the anger as hot as ever, but turned sour by brooding. “Yet it is possible. But
there are other possibilities. It may indeed be what it first seems, a mere
crude slaughter for the clothes on the body and the rings on the fingers, opportune
plunder in the night, when no one chanced to be by. Such things happen, where
men are gathered together and there is money changing hands.”
“It
is true,” said Radulfus, coldly and sadly. “The ancient evil is always with
us.”
“Also,
the man is of great importance in his trade and his region, and he may have
enemies. Hate, envy, rivalry, are as powerful motives even as gain. And at a
great fair such as ours, enemies may be brought together, far from the towns
where their quarrels are known, and their acts might be guessed at too
accurately. Murder is easier and more tempting, away from home.”
“Again,
true,” said the abbot. “Is there more?”
“There
is. There is the matter of the girl, niece and heiress to the dead man. She is
of great beauty,” said Cadfael plainly, asserting his right to recognise and
celebrate even the beauty of women, though their enjoyment he had now
voluntarily forsworn, “and there are three men in her uncle’s service, shut on
board a river barge with her. Only one of them old enough, it may be, to value
his peace more. One, I think, God’s simpleton, but not therefore blind, or
delivered from the flesh. And one whole, able, every way a man, and enslaved to
her. And this one it was who followed his master from the booth on the fairground,
some say a quarter of an hour after him, some say a little more. God forbid I
should therefore point a finger at an honest man. But we speak of
possibilities. And will speak of them no more until, or unless, they become
more than possibilities.”
“That
is my mind, also,” said Abbot Radulfus, stirring and almost smiling. He looked
at Cadfael steadily and long. “Go and bear witness, brother, as you are
charged, and bring me word again. In your report I shall set my trust.”
Emma had on, perforce, the same gown and
bliaut she had worn the evening before, the gown dark blue like her eyes, but
the tunic embroidered in many colours upon bleached linen. The only concession
she could make to mourning was to bind up her great wealth of hair, and cover
it from sight within a borrowed wimple. Nevertheless, she made a noble mourning
figure. In the severe white frame her rounded, youthful face gained in
concentrated force and meaning what it lost in pure grace. She had a look of
single-minded gravity, like a lance in rest. Brother Cadfael could not yet see
clearly where the lance was aimed.
When
she caught sight of him approaching, she looked at him with pleased
recognition, as the man behind the lance might have looked round at the fixed,
partisan faces of his friends before the bout, but never shifted the focus of
her soul’s intent, which reached out where he could not follow.
“Brother
Cadfael—have I your name right? It’s Welsh, is it not? You were kind,
yesterday. Lady Beringar says you will show me where to find the
master-carpenter. I have to order my uncle’s coffin, to take him back to
Bristol.” She was quite composed, yet still as simple and direct as a child.
“Have we time, before we must go to the castle?”
“It’s
on the way,” said Cadfael comfortably. “You need only tell Martin Bellecote,
whatever you ask of him he’ll see done properly.”
“Everyone
is being very kind,” she said punctiliously, like a well brought-up little girl
giving due thanks. “Where is my uncle’s body now? I should care for it myself,
it is my duty.”
“That
you cannot yet,” said Cadfael. “The sheriff has him at the castle, he must
needs see the body for himself, and have the physician also view it. You need
be put to no distress on that account, the abbot has given orders. Your uncle
will be brought with all reverence to lie in the church here, and the brothers
will make him decent for burial. I think he might well wish, could he tell you
so now, that you should leave all to us. His care for you would reach so far,
and your obedience could not well deny him.”
Cadfael
had seen the dead man, and felt strongly that she should not have the same
experience. Nor was it for her sake entirely that he willed so.
The man she had respected and admired in his monumental dignity, living, had
the right to be preserved for her no less decorously in death.
He
had found the one argument that could deflect her absolute determination to
take charge of all, and escape nothing. She thought about it seriously as they
passed out at the gatehouse side by side, and he knew by her face the moment
when she accepted it.
“But
he did believe that I ought to take my full part, even in his business. He
wished me to travel with him, and learn the trade as he knew it. This is the
third such journey I have made with him.” That reminded her that it must also
be the last. “At least,” she said hesitantly, “I may give money to have Masses
said for him, here where he died? He was a very devout man, I think he would
like that.”
Well,
her reserves of money might now be far longer than her reserves of peace of
mind were likely to be; she could afford to buy herself a little consolation,
and prayers are never wasted.
“That
you may surely do.”
“He
died unshriven,” she said, with sudden angry grief against the murderer who had
deprived him of confession and absolution.
“Through
no fault of his own. So do many. So have saints, martyred without warning. God
knows the record without needing word or gesture. It’s for the soul facing
death that the want of shriving is pain. The soul gone beyond knows that pain
for needless vanity. Penitence is in the heart, not in the words spoken.”
They
were out on the highroad then, turning left towards the reflected sparkle that
was the river between its green, lush banks, and the stone bridge over it, that
led through the drawbridge turret to the town gate. Emma had raised her head,
and was looking at Brother Cadfael along her shoulder, with faint colour
tinting her creamy cheeks, and a sparkle like a shimmer of light from the river
in her eyes. He had not seen her smile until this moment, and even now it was a
very wan smile, but none the less beautiful.
“He
was a good man, you know, Brother Cadfael,” she said earnestly. “He was not
easy upon fools, or bad workmen, or people who cheated, but he was a good man,
good to me! And he kept his bargains, and he was loyal to his
lord…” She had taken fire, for all the softness of her voice and the simplicity
of her plea for him; it was almost as though she had been about to say “loyal
to his lord to the death!” She had that high, heroic look about her, to be
taken very seriously, even on that child’s face.
“All
which,” said Cadfael cheerfully, “God knows, and needs not to be told. And
never forget you’ve a life to live, and he’d want you to do him justice by doing
yourself justice.”
“Oh,
yes!” said Emma, glowing, and for the first time laid her hand confidingly on
his sleeve. “That’s what I want! That’s what I have most in mind!”
Chapter
Two
AT
MARTIN BELLECOTE’S SHOP, off the curve of the rising street called the Wyle,
which led to the centre of the town, she knew exactly what she wanted for her
dead, and ordered it clearly; more, she knew how to value a matching clarity
and forthrightness in the master-carpenter, and yet had time to be pleasantly
distracted by the invasion of his younger children, who liked the look of her
and came boldly to chatter and stare. As for the delinquent Edwy, sent home
overnight after his tongue-lashing from Hugh Beringar, the youngster worked
demurely with a plane in a corner of the shop, and was not too subdued to cast
inquisitive glances of bright hazel eyes at the lady, and one impudent wink at
Brother Cadfael when Emma was not noticing.
On
the way through the town, up the steep street to the High Cross, and down the
gentler slope beyond to the ramp which led up to the castle gateway, she fell
into a thoughtful silence, putting in order her recollections. The shadow of
the gate falling upon her serious face and cutting off the sunlight caused her
eyes to dilate in awe; but the casual traffic of the watch here was no longer
reminiscent of siege and battle, but easy and brisk, and the townspeople went
in and out freely with their requests and complaints. The sheriff was a
strong-minded, taciturn, able knight past fifty, and old in experience of both
war and office, and while he could be heavy-handed in crushing disorder, he was
trusted to be fair in day to day matters. If he had not given the goodmen of
the town much help in making good the dilapidations due to the siege, neither had he permitted them to be misused or heavily taxed to restore the
damage to the castle. In the great court one tower was still caged in timber
scaffolding, one wall shored up with wooden buttresses. Emma gazed, great-eyed.
There
were others going the same way with them, anxious fathers here to bail their
sons, two of the abbey stewards who had been assaulted in the affray, witnesses
from the bridge and the jetty, all being ushered through to the inner ward, and
a chill, stony hall hung with smoky tapestries. Cadfael found Emma a seat on a
bench against the wall, where she sat looking about her with anxious eyes but
lively interest.
“Look,
there’s Master Corbiиre!”
He
was just entering the hall, and for the moment had no attention to spare for
anyone but the hunched figure that slouched before him; blear-eyed but in his
full wits today, going softly in awe of his irate lord, Turstan Fowler made his
powerful form as small and unobtrusive as possible, and mustered patience until
the storm should blow over. And what had he to do here, Cadfael wondered. He
had not been on the jetty, and by the state in which he had been found near
midnight, his memories of yesterday should in any case be vague indeed. Yet he
must have something to say to the purpose, or Corbiиre would not have brought
him here. By his mood last night, he had meant to leave him locked up all day,
to teach him better sense.
“Is
this the sheriff?” whispered Emma.
Gilbert
Prestcote had entered, with a couple of lawmen at his elbows to advise him on the
legalities. This was no trial but it rested with him whether the rioters would
go home on their own and their sires’ bond to appear at the assize, or be held
in prison in the meantime. The sheriff was a tall, spare man, erect and
vigorous, with a short black beard trimmed to a point, and a sharp and daunting
eye. He took his seat without ceremony, and a sergeant handed him the list of
names of those in custody. He raised his eyebrows ominously at the number of
them.
“All
these were taken in riot?” He spread the roll on his table and frowned down at
it. “Very well! There is also the graver matter of the death of Master Thomas
of Bristol. At what hour was the last word we have of Master Thomas alive and
well?”
“According to his journeyman and his
watchman, he left his booth on the horse-fair, intending to return to his
barge, more than an hour past the Compline bell. That is the last word we have.
His man Roger Dod is here to testify that the hour was rather more than a
quarter past nine of the evening and the watchman bears that out.”
“Late
enough,” said the sheriff, pondering. “The fighting was over by then, and
Foregate and fairground quiet. Hugh, prick me off here all those who were then
already in custody. Whatever their guilt for damages to goods and gear, they
cannot have had any hand in this murder.”
Hugh
leaned to his shoulder, and ran a rapid hand down the roster. “It was a sharp
encounter, but short. We had it in hand very quickly, they never reached the
end of the Foregate. This man was picked up last, it might be as late as ten,
but in an ale-house and very drunk, and the ale-wife vouches for his having
been there above an hour. A respectable witness, she was glad to get rid of
him. But he’s clear of the killing. This one crept back to the bridge a little
later, and owned to having been one among the rabble, but we let him home, for
he’s very lame, and there are witnesses to all his moves since before nine.
He’s here to answer for his part in the muster, as he promised. I think you may
safely write him clear of any other blame.”
“It
leaves but one,” said Prestcote, and looked up sharply into Beringar’s face.
“It
does,” said Hugh, and committed himself to nothing further.
“Very
well! Have in all the rest, but keep him aside. Let us hold these two matters
apart, and deal with the lesser first.”
Into
the space roped off along one side the hall, the sheriff’s officers herded
their prisoners, a long file of sullenly sheepish young men, bruised,
dishevelled and sorry for themselves now, but still nursing the embers of a
genuine resentment. There were some torn coats among them, and a purple eye or
two, and the lingering signs of bloody noses and battered crowns, and a night
on the stones of indifferently swept cells had done their best clothes, donned
for dignified battle as knights case themselves in ceremonial armour, no good
at all. There would be indignant mothers scolding bitterly as they
scrubbed and mended, or here and there a young wife doing the nagging on behalf
of all women. The offenders stood in line doggedly, set their jaws, and braced
themselves to endure whatever might follow.
Prestcote
was thorough. Plainly he was preoccupied with the more serious evil, and little
disposed to fulminate overmuch about this civic discord, which in the end had
done comparatively little harm. So though he called every culprit separately,
and had him answer for his own part in the affray, he got through them rapidly
and reasonably. Most of them freely owned that they had taken part, maintained
that the intention had been entirely lawful and peaceable, and the
disintegration later had been unintentional and none of their making. Several
bore witness that they had been with Philip Corviser on the jetty, and told how
he had been assaulted, thus letting loose the riot that followed. Only one here
and there sought to prove that he had never so much as overset one trestle
under a stall, nor even been on the abbey side of Severn that evening. And
those few were already committed deep on the evidence of law-abiding citizens.
Agitated
fathers, vengeful rather than doting, came forward to claim each dejected hero,
pledged attendance at the assize, and offered surety for the pledge. The lame
lad was lectured perfunctorily, and dismissed without penalty. Two who had been
particularly voluble in asserting that they were elsewhere at the time, and
unjustly accused, were returned to their prison for a day or two, to reconsider
the nature of truth.
“Very
well!” said Prestcote, dusting his hands irritably. “Clear the hall, but for
those who have evidence to give concerning Master Thomas of Bristol. And bring
in Philip Corviser.”
The
line of young men had vanished, hustled out and shepherded away by loyal but
exasperated families. At home they would have to sit and nurse sore heads and
sore hearts while fathers hectored and dames wept, pouring out on them all the
fear and worry they had suffered on their behalf. Emma looked after the last of
them with round, sympathetic eyes, as he was haled away by the ear by a
diminutive mother half his size, and shrill as a jay. Poor lad, he needed no
other punishment, he was drowning in mortification already.
She
turned about, and there where his fellows had been, but
monstrously alone in the middle of that stony wall, was Philip Corviser.
He
gripped the rope with both hands, and stood rigidly erect, neck as stiff as a
lance, though for the rest he looked as if his flesh might melt and drop off
the bone, he was so haggard. His extreme pallor, which Cadfael knew for what
raw wine can do to the beginner, the day after his indulgence, Emma almost
certainly took for the fruit of dire injury and great anguish of mind. She
paled in reflection, staring piteously, though he was nothing to her, except
that she had seen him struck down, and been afraid he might not rise again.
For
all his efforts, he was a sorry figure. His best cotte was torn and soiled, and
worse, speckled with drops of blood under his left ear, and vomit about the
skirts. He mustered his gangling limbs gallantly but somewhat uncertainly, and
his harmless, sunburned face, unshaven now and ashen under its tan, blushed to
an unbecoming and unexpected purple when he caught sight of his father, waiting
with laboured patience among the onlookers. He did not look that way again, but
kept his bruised brown eyes fixed upon the sheriff.
He
answered to his name in a voice too loud, from nervous defiance, and agreed to
the time and place of his arrest. Yes, he had been very drunk, and hazy about
his movements, and even about the circumstances of his arrest, but yes, he
would try to answer truthfully to what was charged against him.
There
were several witnesses to testify that Philip had been the originator and
leader of the whole enterprise which had ended so ignominiously. He had been in
the forefront when the angry young men crossed the bridge, he had given the
signal that sent some of the party ahead along the Foregate, while he led a
handful down to the riverside, and entered into loud argument with the
merchants unloading goods there. Thus far all accounts tallied, but from then
on they varied widely. Some had the youths beginning at once to toss
merchandise into the river, and were certain that Philip had been in the thick
of the battle. One or two of the aggrieved merchants alleged with righteous
indignation that he had assaulted Master Thomas, and so began the whole
turmoil. Since they would all have their say, Hugh Beringar had held back his
preferred witnesses until last.
“My
lord, as to the scene by the river, we have here the niece of
Master Thomas, and two men who intervened, and afterwards helped to rescue much
of what had been cast into the river: Ivo Corbiиre of Stanton Cobbold, and
Brother Cadfael of the abbey, who was assisting a Welsh-speaking trader. There
were no others so close to the affair. Will you hear Mistress Vernold?”
Philip
had not realised until that moment that she was present. The mention of her
caused him to look round wildly, and the sight of her stepping shyly forward to
stand before the sheriff’s table brought out a deep and painful blush, that
welled out of the young man’s torn collar and mounted in a great wave to his
red-brown hair. He averted his eyes from her, wishing, thought Cadfael, for the
floor to open and swallow him up. It would not have mattered so much looking a
piteous object to others, but before her he was furious and ashamed. Not even
the thought of his father’s mortification could have sunk his spirits so low.
Emma, after one rapid glance, sympathetic enough, had also turned her eyes
away. She looked only at the sheriff, who returned her straight gaze with
concern and compunction.
“Was
it needful to put Mistress Vernold to this distress, at such a time? Madam, you
could well have been spared an appearance here, the lord Corbiиre and the good
brother would have been witness enough.”
“I
wished to come,” said Emma, her voice small but steady. “Indeed I was not
pressed, it was my own decision.”
“Very
well, if that is your wish. You have heard these varying versions of what
happened. There seems little dispute until these disturbers of the peace came
down to the jetty. Let me hear from you what followed.”
“It
is true that young man was the leader. I think he addressed himself to my uncle
because he seemed the most important merchant then present, but he spoke high
to be heard by all the rest. I cannot say that he uttered any threats, he only
stated that the town had a grievance, and the abbey was not paying enough for
the privilege of the fair, and asked that we, who come to do business here, should
acknowledge the rights of the town, and pay a tithe of our rents and tolls to
the town instead of all to the abbey. Naturally my uncle would not listen, but
stood firm on the letter of the charter, and ordered the young men out of his
way. And when he—the prisoner here—would still be arguing, my
uncle turned his back and shrugged him off. Then the young man laid a hand on
his arm, wanting to detain him still, and my uncle, who had his staff in his
hand, turned and struck out at him. Thinking, I suppose, that he intended him
offence or injury.”
“And
did he not?” The sheriff’s voice indicated mild surprise.
She
cast one brief glance at the prisoner, and one in quest of reassurance at
Brother Cadfael, and thought for a moment. “No, I think not. He was beginning
to be angry, but he had not said any ill word, or made any threatening
movement. And my uncle, of course in alarm, hit hard. It felled him, and he lay
in a daze.” This time she did turn and look earnestly at Philip, and found him
staring at her wide-eyed. “You see he is marked. His left temple.” Dried blood
had matted the thick brown hair.
“And
did he then attempt retaliation?” asked Prestcote.
“How
could he?” she said simply. “He was more than half stunned, he could not rise
without help. And then all the others began to fight, and to throw things into
the river. And Brother Cadfael came and helped him to his feet and delivered
him to his friends, and they took him away. I am sure he could not have walked
unaided. I think he did not know what he was doing, or how he came to such a
state.”
“Not
then, perhaps,” said Prescote reasonably. “But later in the evening, somewhat
recovered, and as he has himself admitted, very drunk, he may well have brooded
on a revenge.”
“I
can say nothing as to that. My uncle would have struck him again, and might
have done him desperate hurt if I had not stopped him. That is not his nature,”
she said firmly, “it was most unlike him, but he was in a rage, and confused.
Brother Cadfael will confirm what I say.”
“At
all points,” said Brother Cadfael. “It is a perfectly balanced and just
account.”
“My
lord Corbiиre?”
“I
have nothing to add,” said Ivo, “to what Mistress Vernold has so admirably told
you. I saw the prisoner helped away by his fellows, and what became of him after
that I have no knowledge. But here is a man of mine, Turstan Fowler, who says
he did see him later in the evening, drinking in an ale-house at
the corner of the horse-fair. I must say,” added Ivo with resigned disgust,
“that his own recollection of the night’s events ought to be as hazy as the
prisoner’s, for we took him up dead drunk past eleven, and by the look of him
he had been in the same state some time then. I had him put into a cell in the
abbey overnight. But he claims his head is clear now, and he knows what he saw
and heard. I thought it best he should speak here for himself.”
The
archer edged forward sullenly, peering up under thick frowning brows, as though
his head still rang.
“Well,
what is it you claim to know, fellow?” asked Prestcote, eyeing him narrowly.
“My
lord, I had no call to be out of the precinct at all, last night, my lord
Corbiиre had given me orders to stay within. But I knew he would spend the
evening looking the ground over, so I ventured. I got my skinful at Wat’s
tavern, by the north corner of the horse-fair. And this fellow was there,
drinking fit to beat me, and I’m an old toper, and can carry it most times. The
place was full, there must be others can tell you the same. He was nursing his
sore head, and breathing fire against the man that gave it him. He swore he’d
be up with him before the night was out. And that’s all the meat of it, my
lord.”
“At
what hour was this?” asked Prestcote.
“Well,
my lord, I was still firm on my feet then, and clear in my mind, and that I
certainly was not later in the evening. It must have been somewhere halfway
between eight and nine. I should have borne my drink well enough if I had not
gone from ale to wine, and then to a fierce spirit, and that last was what laid
me low, or I’d have been back within the wall before my lord came home, and
escaped a night on the stones.”
“It
was well earned,” said Prestcote dryly. “So you took yourself off to sleep off
your load—when?”
“Why,
about nine, I suppose, my lord, and was fathoms deep soon after. Troth, I can’t
recall where, though I remember the inn. They can tell you where I was found
who found me.”
At
this point it dawned abruptly upon Brother Cadfael that by pure chance this
whole interrogation, since Philip had been brought in, had been conducted
without once mentioning the fact that Master Thomas at this
moment lay dead in the castle chapel. Certainly the sheriff had addressed Emma
in tones of sympathy and consideration appropriate to her newly-orphaned state,
and her uncle’s absence might in itself be suggestive, though in view of the
importance of his business at the fair, and the fact that Emma had once, at
least, referred to him in the present tense, a person completely ignorant of
his death would hardly have drawn any conclusion from these hints, unless he
had all his wits about him. And Philip had been all night in a prison cell, and
haled out only to face this hearing, and moreover, was still sick and dulled
with his drinking, his broken head and his sore heart, and in no case to pick
up every inference of what he heard. No one had deliberately laid a trap for
him, but for all that, the trap was there, and it might be illuminating to
spring it.
“So
these threats you heard against Master Thomas,” said Prescote, “can have been
uttered only within an hour, probably less, of the time when the merchant left
his booth to return alone to his barge. The last report we have of him.”
That
was drawing nearer to the spring, but not near enough. Philip’s face was still
drawn, resigned and bewildered, as though they had been talking Welsh over his
head. Brother Cadfael struck the prop clean away; it was high time.
“The
last report we have of him alive,” he said clearly.
The
word might have been a knife going in, the slender kind that is hardly felt for
a moment, and then hales after it the pain and the injury. Philip’s head came
up with a jerk, his mouth fell open, his bruised eyes rounded in horrified
comprehension.
“But
it must be remembered,” continued Cadfael quickly, “that we do not know the
hour at which he died. A body taken from the water may have entered it at any
time during the night, after all the prisoners were in hold, and all honest men
in bed.”
It
was done. He had hoped it would settle the issue of guilt and innocence, at
least to his satisfaction, but now he still could not be quite sure the boy had
not known the truth already. How if he had only held his peace and listened to
the ambiguous voices, and been in doubt whether Master Thomas’s corpse had yet
been found? On the face of it, if he had had any hand in that death, he was a
better player than any of the travelling entertainers who would
be plying their trade among the crowds this evening. His pallor, from underdone
dough, had frozen into marble, he tried to speak and swallowed half-formed
words, he drew huge breaths into him, and straightened his back, and turned
great, shocked eyes upon the sheriff. On the face of it—but every face can
dissemble if the need is great enough.
“My
lord,” pleaded Philip urgently, when he had his voice again, “is this truth?
Master Thomas of Bristol is dead?”
“Known
or unknown to you,” said Prestcote dryly, “—and I hazard no judgment—it is
truth. The merchant is dead. Our main purpose here now is to examine how he
died.”
“Taken
from the water, the monk said. Did he drown?”
“That,
if you know, you may tell us.”
Abruptly
the prisoner turned his back upon the sheriff, took another deep breath into
him, and looked directly at Emma, and from then on barely took his eyes from
her, even when Prestcote addressed him. The only judgment he cared about was
hers.
“Lady,
I swear to you I never did your uncle harm, never saw him again after they
hauled me away from the jetty. What befell him I do not know, and God knows I’m
sorry for your loss. I would not for the world have touched him, even if we had
met and quarrelled afresh, knowing he was your kinsman.”
“Yet
you were heard threatening harm to him,” said the sheriff.
“It
may be so. I cannot drink, I was a fool ever to try that cure. I recall nothing
of what I said, I make no doubt it was folly, and unworthy. I was sore and
bitter. What I set out to do was honest enough, and yet it fell apart. All went
to waste. But if I talked violence, I did none. I never saw the man again. When
I turned sick from the wine I left the tavern and went down to the riverside,
away from the boats, and lay down there until I made shift to drag myself back
to the town. I admit to the trouble that arose out of my acts, and all that has
been said against me, all but this. As God sees me, I never did your uncle any
injury. Speak, and say you believe me!”
Emma
gazed at him with parted lips and dismayed eyes, unable to say
yes or no to him. How could she know what was true and what was lies?
“Let
her be,” said the sheriff sharply. “It is with us you have to deal. This matter
must be probed deeper than has been possible yet. Nothing is proven, but you
stand in very grave suspicion, and it is for me to determine what is to be done
with you.”
“My
lord,” ventured the provost, who had kept his mouth tightly shut until now,
against great temptation, “I am prepared to stand surety for my son to whatever
price you may set, and I guarantee he shall be at your disposal at the assize,
and at whatever time between when you may need to question him. My honour has
never been in doubt, and my son, whatever else, has been known as a man of his
word, and if he gives his bond here he will keep it, even without my
enforcement. I beg your lordship will release him home to my bail.”
“On
no terms,” said Prestcote decidedly. “The matter is too grave. He stays under
lock and key.”
“My
lord, if you so order, under lock and key he shall be, but let it be in my
house. His mother—“
“No!
Say no more, you must know it is impossible. He stays here in custody.”
“There
is nothing against him in the matter of this death,” offered Corbiиre
generously, “as yet, that is, except my rogue’s witness of his threats. And
thieves do haunt such gatherings as the great fairs, and if they can cut a man
out from his fellows, will kill him for the clothes on his back. And surely the
fact that the body was stripped accords better with just such a foul chance
crime for gain? Vengeance has nothing to feed on in a bundle of clothing. The
act is all.”
“True,”
agreed Prestcote. “But supposing a man had killed in anger, perhaps simply gone
too far in an assault meant only to injure, he might be wise enough to strip
his victim, to make it appear the work of common robbers, and turn attention
away from himself. There is much work to be done yet in this case, but meantime
Corviser must remain in hold. I should be failing in my duty if I turned him
loose, even to your care, master provost.” And the sheriff ordered, with a
motion of his hand: “Take him away!”
Philip was slow to move, until the butt
of a lance prodded him none too gently in the side. Even then he kept his chin
on his shoulder for some paces, and his eyes desperately fixed upon Emma’s
distressed and doubting face. “I did not touch him,” he said, plucked forcibly
away towards the door through which his guards had brought him. “I pray you,
believe me!” Then he was gone, and the hearing was over.
Out
in the great court they paused to draw grateful breath, released from the
shadowy oppression of the hall. Roger Dod hovered, with hungry eyes upon Emma.
“Mistress,
shall I attend you back to the barge? Or will you have me go straight back to
the booth? I had Gregory go there to help Warin, while I had to be absent, but
trade was brisking up nicely, they’ll be hard pushed by now. If that’s what you
want? To work the fair as he’d have worked it?”
“That
is what I want,” she said firmly. “To do all as he would have done. You go
straight back to the horse-fair, Roger. I shall be staying with Lady Beringar
at the abbey for this while, and Brother Cadfael will escort me.”
The
journeyman louted, and left them, without a backward glance. But the very rear
view of him, sturdy, stiff and aware, brought back to mind the intensity of his
dark face and burning, embittered eyes. Emma watched him go, and heaved a
helpless sigh.
“I
am sure he is a good man, I know he is a good servant, and has stood loyally by
my uncle many years. So he would by me, after his fashion. And I do respect
him, I must! I think I could like him, if only he would not want me to love
him!”
“It’s
no new problem,” said Cadfael sympathetically. “The lightning strikes where it
will. One flames, and the other remains cold. Distance is the only cure.”
“So
I think,” said Emma fervently. “Brother Cadfael, I must go to the barge, to
bring away some more clothes and things I need. Will you go with me?”
He
understood at once that this was an opportune time. Both Warin and Gregory were
coping with customers at the booth, and Roger was on his way to join them. The
barge would be riding innocently beside the jetty, and no man aboard to trouble
her peace. Only a monk of the abbey, who did not trouble it at
all. “Whatever you wish,” he said. “I have leave to assist you in all your
needs.”
He
had rather expected that Ivo Corbiиre would come to join her once they were out
of the hall, but he did not. It was in Cadfael’s mind that she had expected it,
too. But perhaps the young man had decided that it was hardly worthwhile making
a threesome with the desired lady and a monastic attendant, who clearly had his
mandate, and would not consent to be dislodged. Cadfael could sympathise with
that view, and admire his discretion and patience. There were two days of the
fair left yet, and the great court of the abbey was not so great but guests
could meet a dozen times a day. By chance or by rendezvous!
Emma
was very silent on the way back through the town. She had nothing to say until
they emerged from the shadow of the gate into full sunlight again, above the
glittering bow of the river. Then she said suddenly: “It was good of Ivo to
speak so reasonably for the young man.” And on the instant, as Cadfael flashed
a glance to glimpse whatever lay behind the words, she flushed almost as deeply
as the unlucky lad Philip had blushed on beholding her a witness to his shame.
“It
was very sound sense,” said Cadfael, amiably blind. “Suspicion there may be,
but proof there’s none, not yet. And you set him a pace in generosity he could
not but admire.”
The
flush did not deepen, but it was already bright as a rose. On her ivory, silken
face, so young and unused, it was touching and becoming.
“Oh,
no,” she said, “I only told simple truth. I could do no other.” Which again was
simple truth, for nothing in her life thus far had corrupted her valiant
purity. Cadfael had begun to feel a strong fondness for this orphan girl who
shouldered her load without timidity or complaint, and still had an open heart
for the burdens of others. “I was sorry for his father,” she said. “So decent
and respected a man, to be denied so. And he spoke of his wife… she will be out
of her wits with worry.”
They
were over the bridge, they turned down the green path, trodden almost bare at
this busy, hot time, that led to the riverside and the long gardens and
orchards of the Gaye. Master Thomas’s deserted barge nestled into the green
bank at the far end of the jetty, close-moored. One or two
porters laboured along the boards with fresh stocks from the boats, shouldered
them, and tramped away up the path to replenish busy stalls. The riverside lay
sunlit, radiantly green and blue, and almost silent, but for the summer sounds
of bees drunkenly busy among the late summer flowers in the grass. Almost
deserted, but for a solitary fisherman in a small boat close under the shadow
of the bridge; a comfortable, squarely-built fisherman stripped to shirt and
hose, and bristling thornily with black curls and black bush of beard. Rhodri
ap Huw clearly trusted his servant to deal profitably with his English
customers, or else he had already sold out all the stock he had brought with
him. He looked somnolent, happy, almost eternal, trailing his bait along the
current under the archway, with an occasional flick of a wrist to correct the
drift. Though most likely the sharp eyes under the sleepy eyelids were missing
nothing that went on about him. He had the gift, it seemed, of being
everywhere, but everywhere disinterested and benevolent.
“I
will be quick,” said Emma, with a foot on the side of the barge. “Last night
Constance lent me all that I needed, but I must not continue a beggar. Will you
step aboard, brother? You are welcome! I’m sorry to be so poor a hostess.” Her
lips quivered. He knew the instant when her mind returned to her uncle, lying
naked and dead in the castle, a man she had revered and relied on, and perhaps
felt to be eternal in his solidity and self-confidence. “He would have wished
me to offer you wine, the wine you refused last night.”
“For
want of time only,” said Cadfael placidly, and hopped nimbly over on to the
barge’s low deck. “You go get what you need, child, I’ll wait for you.”
The
space aboard was well organised, the cabin aft rode low, but the full width of
the hull, and though Emma had to stoop her neat head to enter, stepping down to
the lower level within, she and her uncle would have had room within for
sleeping. Little to spare, yet enough, where no alien or suspect thing might
come. But taut, indeed, when she was short of her natural protector, with three
other men closely present on deck outside. And one of them deeply, hopelessly,
in love. Uncles may not notice such glances as his, where their own underlings
are concerned.
She was back, springing suddenly to view
in the low doorway. Her eyes had again that look of shock and alarm, but now
contained and schooled. Her voice was level and low as she said: “Someone has
been here! Someone strange! Someone has handled everything we left here on
board, pawed through my linen and my uncle’s, too, turned every board or cover.
I do not dream, Brother Cadfael! It is title! Our boat has been ransacked while
it was left empty. Come and see!”
It
was without guile that he asked her instantly: “Has anything been taken?”
Still possessed by her discovery, and unguardedly
honest, Emma said: “No!”
Chapter
Three
EVERYTHING
IN THE BOAT, and certainly in the small cabin, seemed to Cadfael to be in
immaculate order, but he did not therefore doubt her judgment. A girl making
her third journey in this fashion, and growing accustomed to making the best
use of the cramped space, would know exactly how she had everything folded and
stowed, and the mere disturbance of a fold, the crumpling of a corner in the
neat low chest under her bench-bed would be enough to alert her, and betray the
intervention of another hand. But the very attempt at perfect restoration was
surprising. It argued that the interloper had had ample time at his disposal,
while all the crew were absent. Yet she had said confidently that nothing had
been stolen.
“You
are sure? You’ve had little time to examine everything here. Best look round
thoroughly and make sure, before we report this to Hugh Beringar.”
“Must
I do that?” she asked, a little startled, even, he thought, a little dismayed.
“If there’s no harm? They are burdened enough with other matters.”
“But
do you not see, child, that this comes too aptly on the other? Your uncle
killed, and now his barge ransacked…”
“Why,
there can surely be no connection,” she said quickly. “This is the work of some
common thief.”
“A
common thief who took nothing?” said Cadfael. “Where there are any number of
things worth the taking!”
“Perhaps
he was interrupted…” But her voice wavered into silence, she could not even
convince herself.
“Does it look so to you? I think he must
have been through all your belongings at leisure, to leave them so neat for
you. And removed himself only when he was satisfied.” But of what? That what he
wanted was not there?
Emma
gnawed a dubious lip, and looked about her thoughtfully. “Well, if we must
report it… You’re right, I spoke too soon, perhaps I should go through
everything. No use telling him but half a tale.”
She
settled down methodically to take out every item of clothing and equipment from
both chests, laying them out on the beds, even unfolding those which showed, to
her eyes at least, the most obvious signs of handling, and refolding them to
her own satisfaction. At the end of it she sat back on her heels and looked up
at Cadfael, thoughtfully frowning.
“Yes,
there have been some things taken, but so cunningly. Small things that would
never have been missed until we got home. There’s a girdle of mine missing, one
with a gold clasp. And a silver chain. And a pair of gloves with gold
embroidery. If my thumbs had not pricked when I came in here, I should not have
missed them, for I shouldn’t have wanted to wear any of them. What could I want
with gloves in August? I bought them all in Gloucester, on the way up the
river.”
“And
of your uncle’s belongings?”
“I
think there is nothing missing. If some moneys were left here, certainly none
are here now, but his strong-box is at the booth. He never carried valuables on
such journeys as this, except the rings he always wore. I should not have had
such rich trifles here myself, if I had not but newly bought them.”
“So
it seems,” said Cadfael, “whoever took the opportunity of stepping aboard
boldly, to see what he could pick up, had the wit to take only trifles he could
slip in his sleeve or his pouch. That makes good sense. However naturally it
was done, he’d be likely to cause some curiosity if he stepped ashore with his
arms full of your uncle’s gowns and shirts.”
“And
we must trouble Hugh Beringar and the sheriff over so trivial a loss?” wondered
Emma, jutting a doubtful lip. “It seems a pity, when he has so many graver
matters on his mind. And you see this is only an ordinary, vulgar filching,
because the boat was left empty a while. Small creatures of prey have an eye to
such chances.”
“Yes, we must,” said Cadfael firmly. “Let
the law be the judge whether this has anything to do with your uncle’s death or
no. That’s not for us to say. You find what you need to take with you, and
we’ll go together and see him, if he’s to be found at this hour.”
Emma
put together a fresh gown and tunic, stockings and shift and other such
mysteries as girls need, with a composure which Cadfael found at once admirable
and baffling. The immediate discovery of the invasion of her possessions had
startled and disturbed her, but she had come to terms with it very quickly and
calmly, and appeared perfectly indifferent to the loss of her finery. He was
just considering how odd it was that she should be so anxious to disconnect
this incident from her uncle’s death, when she herself, in perverse and
unthinking innocence, restored the link.
“Well,
at any rate,” said Emma, gathering her bundle together neatly in the skirt of
the gown, and rising nimbly from her knees, “no one can dare say that the
provost’s son was to blame for this. He’s safe in a cell in the castle, and the
sheriff himself can be his witness this time.”
Hugh
Beringar had shrugged off his duties to enjoy at least the evening meal with
his wife. Mercifully the first day of the fair had passed so far without
further incident, no disorders, no quarrels, no accusations of cheating or
overcharging, no throat-cutting or price-cutting, as though the uproar of the
previous evening, and its deadly result, had chastened and subdued even the
regular offenders. Trade was thriving, rents and tolls bringing in a high
revenue for the abbey, and sales seemed set to continue peacefully well into
the night.
“And
I have bought some spun wool,” said Aline, delighted with her day’s shopping,
“and some very fine woollen cloth, so soft—feel it! And Constance chose two
beautiful fleeces from Cadfael’s Welsh merchant, she wants to card and spin them
herself for the baby. And I changed my mind about a cradle, for I saw nothing
in the fair to match what Martin Bellecote can do. I shall go to him.”
“The
girl is not back yet?” said Hugh, mildly surprised. “She left the castle well
before me.”
“She’ll
have gone to bring some things from the barge. She had nothing with her last
night, you know. And she was going to Bellecote’s shop, too, to
bespeak the coffin for her uncle.”
“That
she’d done on the way,” said Hugh, “for Martin came to the castle about the
business before I left. They’ll be bringing the body down to the chapel here
before dark.” He added appreciatively: “A fair-minded lass, our Emma, as well
as a stout-hearted one. She would not have that fool boy of Corviser’s turned
into the attacker, even for her uncle’s sake. A straight tale as ever was. He
opened civilly, was brusquely received, made the mistake of laying hand on the
old man, and was felled like a poled ox.”
“And
what does he himself say?” Aline looked up intently from the bolt of soft stuff
she was lovingly stroking.
“That
he never laid eyes on Master Thomas again, and knows no more about his death
than you or I. But there’s that falconer of Corbiиre’s says he was breathing
fire and smoke against the old man in Wat’s tavern well into the evening. Who
knows! The mildest lamb of the flock—but that’s not his reputation!—may be
driven to clash foreheads when roused, but the knife in the back, somehow—that
I doubt. He had no knife on him when he was taken up at the gate. We shall have
to ask all his companions if they saw such a thing about him.”
“Here
is Emma,” said Aline, looking beyond him to the doorway.
The
girl came in briskly with her bundle, Brother Cadfael at her shoulder. “I’m
sorry to have been so long,” said Emma, “but we had reason. Something untoward
has happened—oh, it is not so grave, no great harm, but Brother Cadfael says we
must tell you.”
Cadfael
forbore from urging, stood back in silence, and let her tell it in her own way,
and a very flat way it was, as though she had no great interest in her reported
loss. But for all that, she described the bits of finery word for word as she
had described them to him, and went into greater detail of their ornaments. “I
did not wish to bother you with such trumpery thefts. How can I care about a
lost girdle and gloves, when I have lost so much more? But Brother Cadfael
insisted, so I have told you.”
“Brother
Cadfael was right,” said Hugh sharply. “Would it surprise you, child, to know
that we have had not one complaint of mispractice or stealing or
any evil all this day, touching any other tradesman at the fair? Yet one threat
follows another where your uncle’s business is concerned. Can that truly be by
chance? Is there not someone here who has no interest in any other, but all too
much in him?”
“I
knew you would think so,” she said, sighing helplessly. “But it was only by
chance that our barge was left quite unmanned all this afternoon, by reason of
Roger being needed with the rest of us at the castle. I doubt if there was
another boat there unwatched. And common thieves have a sharp eye out for such
details. They take what they can get.”
It
was a shrewd point, and clearly she was not the girl to lose sight of any
argument that could serve her turn. Cadfael held his peace. There would be a
time to discuss the matter with Hugh Beringar, but it was not now. The
questions that needed answers would not be asked of Emma; where would be the
use? She had been born with all her wits about her, and through force of
circumstances she was learning with every moment. But why was she so anxious to
have this search of her possessions shrugged aside as trivial, and having no
bearing on Master Thomas’s murder? And why had she stated boldly, in the first
shook of discovery, indeed without time to view the field in any detail, that
nothing had been taken? As though, disdaining the invasion, she had good reason
to know that it had been ineffective?
And
yet, thought Cadfael, studying the rounded resolute face, and the clear eyes
she raised to Hugh’s searching stare, I would swear this is a good, honest
girl, no way cheat or liar.
“You’ll
not be needing me,” he said, “Emma can tell you all. It’s almost time for
Vespers, and I have still to go and speak with the abbot. There’ll be time
later, Hugh, after supper.” Abbot Radulfus was a good listener. Not once did he
interrupt with comment or question, as Brother Cadfael recounted for him all
that had passed at the sheriff’s hearing and the unexpected discovery at the
barge afterwards. At the end of it he sat for a brief while in silence still,
pondering what he had heard.
“So
we now have one unlawful act of which the man charged cannot possibly be
guilty, whatever may be the truth concerning the other. What do you think, does
this tend to weaken the suspicion against him, even on the
charge of murder?”
“It
weakens it,” said Cadfael, “but it cannot clear him. It may well be true, as
Mistress Vernold believes, that the two things are no way linked, the filching
from the barge a mere snatch at what was available, for want of a watchman to
guard it. Yet two such assaults upon the same man’s life and goods looks like
methodical purpose, and not mere chance.”
“And
the girl is now a guest within our halls,” said Radulfus, “and her safety our
responsibility. Two attacks upon one man’s life and goods, you said. How if
there should be more? If a subtle enemy is pursuing some private purpose, it
may not end with this afternoon’s violation, as we have seen it did not end
with the merchant’s death. The girl is in the care of the deputy sheriff, and
could not be in better hands. But like them, she is a guest under our roof. I
do not want the brothers of our community distracted from their devotions and
duties, or the harmony of our services shaken, I would not have these matters
spoken of but between you and me, and of course as is needful to aid the law.
But you, Brother Cadfael, have already been drawn in, you know the whole state
of the case. Will you have an eye to what follows, and keep watch on our
guests? I place the interests of the abbey in your hands. Do not neglect your
devotional duties, unless you must, but I give you leave to go in and out
freely, and absent yourself from offices if there is need. When the fair ends,
our halls will empty, our tenant merchants depart. It will be out of our hands
then to protect the just or prevent the harm that threatens from the unjust.
But while they are here, let us do what we can.”
“I
will undertake what you wish, Father Abbot,” said Cadfael, “to the best I may.”
He
went to Vespers with a burdened heart and a vexed mind, but for all that, he
was glad of the Abbot’s charge. It was, in any case, impossible to give up
worrying at so tangled a knot, once it had presented itself to his notice, even
apart from the natural concern he felt for the girl, and there was no denying
that the Benedictine round, dutifully observed, did limit a man’s mobility for
a large part of the day.
Meantime,
he drove the affairs of Emma Vernold from his thoughts with a struggle that
should have earned him credit in heaven, and surrendered himself
as best he could to the proper observance of Vespers. And after supper he
repaired to the cloister, and was not surprised to find Hugh Beringar there
waiting for him. They sat down together in a comer where the evening breeze
coiled about them very softly and gratefully, and the view into the garth was
all emerald turf and pale grey stone, and azure sky melting into green, through
a fretwork of briars blowsy with late, drunken-sweet roses.
“There’s
news in your face,” said Cadfael, eyeing his friend warily. “As though we have
not had enough for one day!”
“And
what will you make of it?” wondered Hugh. “Not an hour ago a lad fishing in
Severn hooked a weight of sodden cloth out of the water. All but broke his line,
so he let it back in, but was curious enough to play it to shore until he could
take it up safely. A fine, full woollen gown, made for a big man, and one with
money to spend, too.” He met Cadfael’s bright, alerted eyes, rather matching
certainties than questioning. “Yes, what else? We did not trouble Emma with
it—who would have the heart! She’s drawing Aline a pattern for an embroidered
hem for an infant’s robe, one she got from France. They have their heads
together like sisters. No, we fetched Roger Dod to swear to it. It’s Master
Thomas’s gown, no question. We’re poling down the banks now after hose and
shirt. To any wandering thief that gown was worth a month’s hunting.”
“So
no such leech would have thrown it away,” said Cadfael.
“Never!”
“There
were also rings taken from his fingers. But rings, I suppose, might be too good
to discard, even to prove that this was a murder for hate, not for gain. Rings
would sink even if hurled into the Severn. So why hurl them?”
“As
usual,” said Hugh, elevating thin black brows, “you’re ahead of me rather than
abreast. On the face of it, this was a killing for private malice. So while we
examine it, Ivo Corbiиre very sensibly points out that a murderer so minded
would not have stayed to strip the body and put it into the river, but left it
lying, and made off as fast as he could. Vengeance, he says rightly, has
nothing to feed on in a bundle of clothing. The act is all! And that moved my
sheriff to remark that the same thought might well have occurred
to the murderer, and caused him to strip his victim naked for that very reason,
a hoodwink for the law. Now we drag out of the river the dead man’s gown. And
where does that leave you and me, my friend?”
“In
two minds, or more,” said Cadfael ruefully. “If the gown never had been found,
the notion of common robbery would have held its ground and told in young
Corviser’s favour. Is it possible that what was said in the sheriff’s court put
that thought into someone’s mind for the first time, and drove him to discard
the gown where it was likely to be found? There’s one person it would suit very
well to have the case against your prisoner strengthened, and that’s the
murderer himself. Supposing yon fool boy is not the murderer, naturally.”
“True,
half a case can come to look almost whole by the addition of one more witness.
But what a fool your man would be, to toss the gown away for proof the killing
was not for robbery, thus turning suspicion back upon Philip Corviser, and then
creep aboard the barge and steal, when Philip Corviser is in a cell in the
castle, and manifestly out of the reckoning.”
“Ah,
but he never supposed the theft would be discovered until the barge was back in
Bristol, or well on the way. I tell you, Hugh, I could see no trace of an alien
hand anywhere among those stores on deck or the chattels in the cabin, and Emma
herself said she would not have missed the lost things until reaching home
again. They were bought on this journey, she had no intention of wearing them.
Nothing obvious was stolen, she had almost reached the bottom of her chest
before she found out these few bits of finery were gone. But for her sharp eye
for her own neat housekeeping, she would not have known the boat had been
visited.”
“Yet
robbery points to two separate villains and two separate crimes,” pointed out
Hugh with a wry smile, “as Emma insists on believing. If hate was the force
behind the man’s death, why stoop to pilfer from him afterwards? But do you
believe the two things are utterly separate? I think not!”
“Strange
chances do jostle one another sometimes in this world. Don’t put it clean out
of mind, it may still be true. But I cannot choose but believe that it’s the
same hand behind both happenings, and the same purpose, and it
was neither theft nor hatred, or the death would have ended it.”
“But
Cadfael, in heaven’s name, what purpose that demanded a man’s death could get
satisfaction afterwards from stealing a pair of gloves, a girdle and a chain?”
Brother
Cadfael shook his head helplessly, and had no answer to that, or none that he
was yet prepared to give.
“My
head spins, Hugh. But I have a black suspicion it may not be over yet. Abbot
Radulfus has given me his commission to have an eye to the matter, for the
abbey’s sake, and permission to go in and out as I see fit for the purpose.
It’s at the back of his mind that if there’s some malignant plot in hand
against the Bristol merchant, his niece may not be altogether safe, either. If
Aline can keep her at her side, so much the better. But I’ll be keeping a
watchful eye on her, too.” He rose, yawning. “Now I must be off to Compline. If
I’m to scamp my duties tomorrow, let me at least end today well.”
“Pray
for a quiet night,” said Hugh, rising with him, “for we’ve not the men to mount
patrols through the dark hours. I’ll take one more turn along the Foregate with
my sergeant, as far as the horse-fair, and then I’m for my bed. I saw little
enough of it last night!”
The
night of the first of August, the opening day of Saint Peter’s Fair, was warm,
clear, and quiet enough. Traders along the Foregate kept their stalls open well
into the dark hours, the weather being so inviting that plenty of customers
were still abroad to chaffer and bargain. The sheriff’s officers withdrew into
the town, and even the abbey servants, left to keep the peace if it were
threatened, had little work to do. It was past midnight when the last lamps and
torches were quenched, and the night’s silence descended upon the horse-fair.
Master Thomas’s barge rocked very softly to the
motion of the river. Master Thomas himself lay in a chapel of the abbey,
decently shrouded, and in his workshop in the town Martin Bellecote the
master-carpenter worked late upon the fine, lead-lined coffin Emma had ordered
from him. And in a narrow and dusty cell in the castle, Philip Corviser tossed
and turned and nursed his bruises on a thin mattress of straw, and could not
sleep for fretting over the memory of Emma’s doubting, pitying face.
The
Second Day of the Fair
Chapter
One
THE
SECOND DAY OF THE FAIR DAWNED BRILLIANTLY, a golden sun climbing, faint mist
hanging like a floating veil over the river. Roger Dod rose with the dawn,
shook Gregory awake, rolled up his brychan, washed in the river, and made a
quick meal of bread and small ale before setting off along the Foregate to his
master’s booth. All along the highroad traders were clambering out of their
cloaks, yawning and stretching, and setting out their goods ready for the day’s
business. Roger exchanged greetings with several of them as he passed. Where so
many were gathered at close quarters, even a dour and silent man could not help
picking up acquaintance with a few of his fellows.
The
first glimpse of Master Thomas’s booth, between the busy stirrings of its
neighbours, brought a scowl to Roger’s brow and a muttered oath to his tongue,
for the wooden walls were still fast closed. Every hatch still sealed, and the
sun already climbing! Warin must be fast asleep, inside there. Roger hammered
on the front boards, which should by this hour have been lowered trimly on to
their trestles, and set out with goods for sale. He got no response from
within.
“Warin!”
he bellowed. “Devil take you, get up and let me in!”
No
reply, except that several of the neighbours had turned curiously to listen and
watch, abandoning their own activities to attend to this unexpected clamour.
“Warin!”
bawled Roger, and thumped again vigorously. “You idle swine, what’s come to
you?”
“I did wonder,” said the cloth-merchant
next door, pausing with a bolt of flannel in his arms. “There’s been no sign of
him. A sound sleeper, your watchman!”
“Hold
hard!” The armourer from the other side leaned excitedly over Roger’s shoulder,
and fingered the edge of the wooden door. “Splinters, see?” Beside the latch
the boards showed a few pale threads, hardly enough to be seen, and at the
thrust of his hand the door gave upon a sliver of darkness. “No need to hammer,
the way in is open. A knife has been used on this!” said the armourer, and
there fell a momentary silence.
“Pray
God that’s all it’s been used on!” said Roger in an appalled whisper, and
thrust the door wide. He had a dozen of them at his back by then; even the
Welshman Rhodri ap Huw had come rolling massively between the stalls to join
them, sharp black eyes twinkling out of the thicket of his hair and beard,
though what he made of the affair, seeing he spoke no English, no one stopped
to consider.
From
the darkness within welled the warm scent of timber, wine and sweetmeats, and a
faint, strange sound like the breathy grunting of a dumb man. Roger was
propelled forward into the dimness by the eager helpers crowding at his back,
all agape with curiosity. The stacked bales and small casks of wine took shape
gradually, after the brief blindness of entering this dark place from sunlight.
Everything stood orderly and handy, just as it had been left overnight, and of
Warin there was no sign, until Rhodri ap Huw, ever practical, unbolted the
front hatch and let it down, and the brightness of the morning came flooding
in.
Stretched
along the foot of the same front wall, where Rhodri must almost have set foot
on him, Warin lay rolled in his own cloak and tied at elbows, knees and ankles
with cords, so tightly that he could barely wriggle enough to make the folds of
cloth rustle. There was a sack drawn over his head, and a length of linen
dragged the coarse fibres into his mouth and was secured behind his neck. He
was doing his best to answer to his name, and at least his limited jerkings and
muted grunts made it plain that he was alive.
Roger
uttered a wordless yell of alarm and indignation, and fell on his knees,
plucking first at the linen band that held the sack fast. The coarse cloth was
wet before with spittle, and the mouth within must be clogged
and stung with ropey fibres, but at least the poor wretch could breathe, his
strangled grunts were trying to form words long before the linen parted, and
let him spit out his gag. Still beneath his sack, his hoarse croak demanded
aggrievedly: “Where were you so long, and me half-killed?”
A
couple of pairs of willing hands were at work on the other bonds by that time,
all the more zealously now they had heard him speak, and indeed complain, in
such reassuringly robust tones. Warin emerged gradually from his swaddlings,
unrolled unceremoniously out of the cloak so that he ended face-down on the
ground, and still incoherently voluble. He righted himself indignantly, but so
spryly that it was plain he had no broken bones, no painful injuries, and had
not even suffered overmuch from the cramps of his bonds. He looked up from
under his wild grey thatch of hair, half defensive and half accusing, glaring
round the circle of his rescuers as though they had been responsible for his
hours of discomfort.
“Late’s
better than never!” he said sourly, and hawked, and spat out fibres of sacking.
“What took you so long? Is everybody deaf? I’ve been kicking here half the
night!”
Half
a dozen hands reached pleasurably to hoist him to his feet and sit him down
gently on a cask of wine. Roger stood off and let them indulge their curiosity,
scowling blackly at his colleague meantime. There was no damage done, not a
scratch on the old fool! The first threat, and he had crumpled into a pliable
rag.
“For
God’s sake, what happened to you? You had the booth sealed. How could any man
break in here, and you not know? There are other merchants sleep here with
their wares, you had only to call.”
“Not
all,” said the cloth-merchant fairly. “I myself lie at a tavern, so do many. If
your man was sound asleep, as he well might be with all closed for the night…”
“It
was long past midnight,” said Warin, scrubbing aggrievedly at his chafed
ankles. “I know because I heard the little bell for Matins, over the wall,
before I slept. Not a sound after, until I awoke as that hood came over my
head. They rammed the stuff into my mouth. I never saw face or form, they
rolled me up like a bale of wool, and left me tied.”
“And you never raised a cry!” said Roger
bitterly. “How many were they? One or more?”
Warin
was disconcerted, and wavered, swaying either way. “I think two. I’m not sure…”
“You
were hooded, but you could hear. Did they talk together?”
“Yes,
now I recall there was some whispering. Not that I could catch any words. Yes,
they were two. There was moving about of casks and bales here, that I know…”
“For
how long? They durst not hurry, and have things fall and rouse the fairground,”
said the armourer reasonably. “How long did they stay?”
Warin
was vague, and indeed to a man blindfolded and tied by night, time might
stretch out like unravelled thread. “An hour, it might be.”
“Time
enough to find whatever was of most value here,” said the armourer, and looked
at Roger Dod, with a shrug of broad shoulders. “You’d better look about you,
lad, and see what’s missing. No need to trouble for anything so weighty as
casks of wine, they’d have needed a cart for those, and a cart in the small
hours would surely have roused someone. The small and precious is what they
came for.”
But
Roger had already turned his back on his rescued fellow, and was burrowing frantically
among the bales and boxes stacked along the wall. “My master’s strong-box! I
built it in behind here, out of sight… Thank God I took the most of yesterday’s
gains back to the barge with me last night, and have them safe under lock and
key, but for all that, there was a good sum left in it. And all his accounts,
and parchments…”
He
was thrusting boxes and bags of spices aside in his haste, scenting the air,
pushing out of his way wooden caskets of sugar confections from the east, come
by way of Venice and Gascony, and worth high prices in any market. “Here,
against the wall…”
His
hands sank helplessly, he stood staring in dismay. He had bared the boards of
the booth; goods stood piled on either side, and between them, nothing. Master
Thomas’s strongbox was gone.
Brother Cadfael had taken advantage of
the early hours to put in an hour or two of work with Brother Mark in the
herb-gardens, while he had no reason to anticipate any threat to Emma, for she
was surely still asleep in the guest-hall with Constance, and out of reach of
harm. The morning was clear and sunny, the mist just lifting from the river,
shot through with oblique gold, and Mark sang cheerfully about his weeding, and
listened attentively and serenely as Cadfael instructed him in all particulars
of the day’s work.
“For
I may have to leave all things in your hands. And so I can, safely enough, I
know, if I should chance to be called away.”
“I’m
well taught,” said Brother Mark, with his grave smile, behind which the small
spark of mischief was visible only to Cadfael, who had first discovered and
nurtured it. “I know what to stir and what to let well alone in the workshop.”
“I
wish I could be as sure of my part outside it,” said Cadfael ruefully. “There
are brews among us that need just as sure a touch, boy, and where to stir and
where to let be is puzzling me more than a little. I’m walking a knife-edge,
with disastrous falls on either side. I know my herbs. They have fixed
properties, and follow sacred rules. Human creatures do not so. And I cannot
even wish they did. I would not have one scruple of their complexity done away,
it would be lamentable loss.”
It
was time to go to Prime. Brother Mark stooped to rinse his hands in the butt of
water they kept warming through the day, to be tempered for the herbs at the
evening watering. “It was being with you made me know that I want to be a
priest,” he said, speaking his mind as openly as always in Cadfael’s company.
“I
had never the urge for it,” said Cadfael absently, his mind on other matters.
“I
know. That was the one thing wanting. Shall we go?”
They
were coming out from Prime, and the lay servants already mustering for their
early Mass, when Roger Dod came trudging in at the gatehouse, out of breath,
and with trouble plain to be read in his face.
“What,
again something new?” sighed Cadfael, and set off to intercept
him before he reached the guest-hall. Suddenly aware of this square, sturdy
figure bearing down on him with obvious purpose, Roger checked, and turned an
anxious face. His frown cleared a little when he recognised the same monk who
had accompanied the deputy sheriff in the vain search for Master Thomas, on the
eve of Saint Peter. “Oh, it’s you, brother, that’s well! Is Hugh Beringar
within? I must speak to him. We’re beset! Yesterday the barge, and now the
booth, and God knows what’s yet to come, and what will become of us before ever
we get away from this deadly place. My master’s books gone—money and box and
all! What will Mistress Emma think? I’d rather have had my own head broke, if
need be, than fail her so!”
“What’s
this talk of broken heads?” asked Cadfael, alarmed. “Whose? Are you telling me
there’ve been thieves ransacking your booth now?”
“In
the night! And the strong-box gone, and Warin tied up hand and foot with a
throatful of sacking, and nobody heard sound while they did it. We found him
not half an hour ago…”
“Come!”
said Cadfael, grasping him by the sleeve and setting off for the guest-hall at
a furious pace. “We’ll find Hugh Beringar. Tell your tale once, and save
breath!”
In
Aline’s apartments the women were only just out of bed, and Hugh was sitting
over an early meal in shirt and hose, shoeless, when Cadfael rapped at the
door, and cautiously put his head in.
“Your
pardon, Hugh, but there’s news. May we come in?”
Hugh
took one look at him, recognised the end of his ease, and bade them in
resignedly.
“Here’s
one has a tale to tell,” said Cadfael. “He’s new come from the horse-fair.”
At
sight of Roger, Emma came to her feet in astonishment and alarm, the soft,
bemused bloom of sleep gone from her eyes, and the morning flush from her
cheeks. Her black hair, not yet braided, swung in a glossy curtain about her
shoulders, and her loose undergown was ungirdled, her feet bare. “Roger, what
is it? What has happened now?”
“More
theft and roguery, mistress, and God knows I can see no reason why all the
rascals in the shire should pick on us for prey.” Roger heaved
in deep breath, and launched headlong into his complaint. “This morning I go to
the stall as usual, and find it all closed, and not a sound or a word from
within for all my shouting and knocking, and then come some of the neighbours,
wondering, and one sees that the inside bar has been hoisted with a knife—and a
marvellous thin knife it must have been. And we go in and find Warin rolled up
like baggage in his own cloak, and fast tied, and his mouth stuffed with
sacking—a bag over his head, fit to choke him…”
“Oh,
no!” breathed Emma in a horrified whisper, and pressed a fist hard against
trembling lips. “Oh, poor Warin! He’s not… oh, not dead…?”
Roger
gave vent to a snort of contempt. “Not he! alive and fit as a flea, barring
being stiff from the cords. How he could sleep so sound as not to hear the
fumbling with the latch, nor even notice when the door was opened, there’s no
guessing. But if he did hear, he took good care not to give the robbers any
trouble. You know Warin’s no hero. He says he was only shook awake when the
sack went over his head, and never saw face nor form, though he thinks there were
two of them, for there was some whispering. But as like as not he heard them
come, but chose not to, for fear they’d slip the knife in his ribs.”
Emma’s
colour had warmed into rose again. She drew a deep breath of thankfulness. “But
he’s safe? He’s taken no harm at all?” She caught Aline’s sympathetic eye, and
laughed shakily with relief. “I know he is not brave. I’m glad he is not! Nor
very clever nor very industrious, either, but I’ve known him since I was a
little girl, he used to make toys for me, and willow whistles. Thank God he is
not harmed!”
“Not
a graze! I wish,” said Roger, his eyes burning jealously upon her childish
morning beauty, not yet adorned and needing no adornment, “I wish to God I’d
stayed there to be watchman myself, they’d not have broken in there unscathed,
and found everything handed over on a platter.”
“But
then you might have been killed, Roger. I’m glad you were not there, you’d
surely have put up a fight and come to harm. What, against two, and you
unarmed? Oh, no, I want no man hurt to protect my possessions.”
“What
followed?” asked Hugh shortly, stamping his feet into his shoes
and reaching for his coat. “You’ve left him there to mind the stall? Is he
fit?”
“As
you or me, my lord. I’ll send him to you to tell his own tale when I get back.”
“No
need, I’m coming with you to view the place and the damage. Finish your tale.
They’ll scarcely have left empty-handed. What’s gone with them?”
Roger
turned devoted, humble, apologetic eyes upon Emma. “Sorrow the day, mistress,
my master’s strong-box is gone with them!”
Brother
Cadfael was watching Emma’s face just as intently as was her hopeless admirer,
and it seemed to him that in the pleasure of knowing that her old servant had
survived unharmed, she was proof against all other blows. The loss of the
strong-box she received with unshaken serenity. In these surroundings, safe
from any too pressing manifestation of his passion, she was even moved to
comfort Roger. A kind-hearted girl, who did not like to see any of her own
people out of sorts with his competence and his self-respect.
“You
must not feel it so sharply,” she said warmly. “How could you have prevented?
There is no fault attaches to you.”
“I
took most of the money back to the barge with me last night,” pleaded Roger earnestly.
“It’s safe locked away, there’s been no more tampering there. But Master
Thomas’s account books, and some parchments of value, and charters…”
“Then
there will be copies,” said Emma firmly. “And what is more, if they took the
box, supposing it to be full of money, they’ll keep what money was left there,
and most likely discard the box and the parchments, for what use can they make
of those? We may get most of it back, you will see.”
Not
merely a kind girl, but a girl of sense and fortitude, who bore up nobly under
her losses. Cadfael looked at Hugh, and found Hugh looking at him, just as
woodenly, but with one lively eyebrow signalling slightly sceptical admiration.
“Nothing
is lost,” said Emma firmly, “of any value to compare with a life. Since Warin
is safe, I cannot be sad.”
“Nevertheless,”
said Hugh with deliberation, “it might be well if one abbey sergeant stood
guard on your booth until the fair is over. For it does seem that all the
misfortunes that should be rights be shared among all the
abbey’s clients are falling solely upon you. Shall I ask Prior Robert to see to
it?”
She
looked down, wary and thoughtful, for a moment, and then lifted deep blue eyes
wide and clear as the sky, and a degree more innocent than if they had but
newly opened on the world. “It’s kind of you,” she said, “but surely everything
has now been done to us. I don’t think it will be necessary to set a guard upon
us now.”
Hugh
came to Cadfael’s workshop after the midday meal, leaving Emma in Aline’s
charge, helped himself to a horn of wine from Cadfael’s private store, and
settled down on the bench under the eaves, on the shady side. The fragrance of
the herbs lay like a sleepy load on the air within the pleached hedges, and set
him yawning against his will and his mood, which was for serious discussion.
They were well away from the outer world here, the busy hum of the marketplace
drifted to them only distantly and pleasantly, like the working music of
Brother Bernard’s bees. And Brother Mark, weeding the herb-beds with delicate,
loving hands, habit kilted to his knees, was no hindrance at all to their
solitude.
“A
separate creature,” said Brother Cadfael, eyeing him with detached affection
“My priest, my proxy. I had to find some way of evading the fate that closed on
me. There goes my sacrificial lamb, the best of the flock.”
“Some
day he will take your confession,” said Hugh, watching Mark pluck out weeds as
gently as though he pitied them, “and you’ll be a lost man, for he’ll know
every evasion.” He sipped wine, drew it about his mouth thoughtfully, swallowed
it and sat savouring the after-taste for a moment. “This fellow Warin had
little to add,” he said then. “What do you say now? This cannot be chance.”
“No,”
agreed Cadfael, propping the door of his workshop wide to let in the air, and
coming to sit beside his friend, “it cannot be chance. The man is killed,
stripped, his barge searched, his booth searched. Not a soul besides, at this
fair where there are several as wealthy, has suffered any attack or any loss. No,
there is nothing done at hazard here.”
“What,
then? Expound! The girl claimed there were things stolen from the barge. Now
something positive, a strong-box, the single portable thing in the booth that
might confidently be supposed to hold valuables, is demonstrably
stolen from this last assault. If these are not simple thefts, what are they?
Tell me!”
“Stages
in a quest,” said Cadfael. “It seems to me there’s a hunt afoot for something.
I do not know what, but some quite single, small thing, and precious, which
was, or was thought to be, in the possession of Master Thomas. On the night he
came here he was murdered, and his body stripped. The first search. And it was
fruitless, for the next day his barge was visited and ransacked. The second
search.”
“Not
altogether fruitless this time,” said Beringar dryly, “for we know on the best
authority, do we not, that whoever paid that visit left the richer by three
things, a silver chain, a girdle with a gold clasp, and a pair of embroidered
gloves.”
“Hmmm!”
Cadfael twitched his brown nose doubtfully between finger and thumb, and eyed
the young man sidewise.
“Oh,
come!” said Hugh indulgently, and flashed his sudden smile. “I may not stumble
on these subtleties as quickly as you, but since knowing you I’ve had to keep
my wits about me. The lady has a bold mind and an excellent memory, and I have
no hope in the world of getting her to make a mistake in one detail of the
embroidery on those lost gloves, but for all that, I doubt if they ever
existed.”
“You
might,” Cadfael suggested, though without much hope, “try asking her outright
what it is she’s hiding.”
“I
did!” owned Hugh, ruefully grinning. “She opened great, hurt eyes at me, and
could not understand me! She knows nothing, she’s hiding nothing, she has nothing
to tell more than she’s already told, and every word of that is truth. But for
all that, and however angelically, the girl’s lying. What was it stuck in your
craw, and brought you up against the same shock before ever it dawned upon me?”
“I
should be sorry,” said Cadfael slowly, “if anything I have done or said made
you think any evil of the girl, for I think none.”
“Neither
do I, you need not fear it. But I do think she may be meddling in something she
would do better to let well alone, and I would rather, as you would, as Abbot
Radulfus would, that no harm should come to her under our care. Or ever, for
that matter. I like her well.”
“When
we went together to the barge,” said Cadfael, “and she took no
more than a minute within to cry out that someone had been there, pawing
through all their belongings, I never doubted she was telling truth. Women know
how they leave things, it needs only a wrong fold to betray an alien hand, and
certainly it shocked and startled her, that was no feigning. Nor was it the
next moment, when I asked if anything had been taken, and without pause for
thought, she said: ‘No!’ An absolute no, I would say even triumphant. I thought
little of it, then, but urged her to look thoroughly and make sure. When I said
she must report the matter, she thought again, and took pains to discover that
indeed a few things had been stolen. I think she regretted that ever she had
cried out in the first place, but if the law must know of it, she would ensure
that it was accepted as a trivial theft by some common pick-purse. Truth is
what she told unguardedly, with that scornful ‘no’ of hers. Afterwards she made
to undo the effect by lying, and for one not by nature a liar she did it well.
But for all that, I think, like you, those pretty things of hers never existed,
or never were aboard the barge.”
“Still
remains the question,” said Hugh, considering, “of why she was so sure in the
first place that nothing had been taken.”
“Because,”
said Cadfael simply, “she knew what the thief must have come looking for, and
she knew he had not found it, because she knew it was not there to be found.
The second search was also vain. Whatever it may be, it was not on Master
Thomas’s person, which was clearly the most likely place, nor was it on his
barge.”
“Hence
this third search! So now divine for me, Cadfael, whether this third attempt
has succeeded or no. The merchant’s strong-box is vanished—again a logical
place to keep something so precious. Will this be the end of it?” Cadfael shook
his head emphatically. “This attempt has fared no better than the others,” he
said positively. “You may take that as certain.”
“How
can you be so sure of it?” demanded Hugh curiously.
“You
saw all that I saw. She does not care a farthing for the loss of the
strong-box! As soon as she knew that the man Warm was unhurt, she took
everything else calmly enough. Whatever it is the unknown is seeking, she knew
it was not in the barge, and she knew it was not in the booth.
And I can think of only one reason why she should know so well where it is not,
and that is that she knows equally well where it is.”
“Then
the next possibility the enemy will be considering,” said Hugh with conviction,
“is where she is—on her person or in some hiding-place only she knows of. Well,
we’ll keep a vigilant eye on Emma, between us. No,” said Hugh reflectively, “I
cannot imagine any evil of her, but neither can I imagine how she can be
tangled in something grim enough to bring about murder, violence and theft, nor
why, if she knows herself to be in danger and in need of help, she won’t speak
out and ask for it. Aline has tried her best to get her to confide, and the
girl remains all sweetness and gratitude, but lets no word drop of any burden
she may be carrying. And you know Aline, she draws out confidences without ever
asking a probing question, and whoever can resist her is beyond the reach of
the rest of us…”
“I’m
glad to see you so fond a husband,” said Cadfael approvingly.
“So
you should be, it was you tossed the girl into my arms in the first place.
You’d best be worrying now about what manner of father I shall make! And you
might put in a prayer for me on the issue, some time when you’re on your knees.
No, truly, Cadfael… I wonder about this girl. Aline likes her, and that’s
recommendation enough. And she seems to like Aline—no, more than like! Yet she
never lets down her veils. When she seems most to cherish my most cherishable
lady, she is also more careful not to let slip one unguarded word about her own
situation.”
Brother
Cadfael saw no paradox there. “So she would be, Hugh,” he said gravely. “If she
feels herself to be in danger, the last thing she will do is to draw in beside
her someone she values and likes. By every means in her power—and I think she
is a clever and resourceful girl—she will stand off her friends from any share
in what she is about.”
Beringar
considered that long and sombrely, nursing his empty horn. “Well, all we can do
is hedge her about thick enough to stand off, likewise, whatever move may be
made against her.”
It
had not occurred to him, it was only now insinuating itself into Cadfael’s
thoughts, that the next decisive move might come from Emma
herself, rather than being made against her. A piece of this mystery,
apparently the vital piece, she had in her hands; if any use was to be made of
it, it might well be at her decree.
Hugh
set aside his drinking-horn and rose, brushing the summer dust from his cotte.
“Meantime, the sheriff is left with a murder on his hands, and I tell you,
Cadfael, that affair now looks less than ever like a drunken revenge by an
aggrieved youth of the town—though to tell truth, it never did look too
convincing, even if we could not discard it out of hand.”
“Surely
there’s good ground now for letting the provost bail his lad out and take him
home?” said Cadfael, encouraged. “Of all the young men around this town, Philip
must be the clearest from any suspicion of this last outrage, or the raid on
the barge, either. The gaoler who turns the key on him can witness where he’s
been all this while, and swear he never left it.”
“I’m
off to the castle now,” said Hugh. “I can’t vouch for the sheriff, but I’ll
certainly speak a word in his ear, and in the provost’s, too. It’s well worth
making the approach.”
He
looked down, flashing out of his preoccupation with a sudden mischievous smile,
combed the fingers of one hand through the hedge of bushy greying hair that
rimmed Cadfael’s sunburned tonsure, leaving it bristling like thorn-bushes,
snapped a finger painfully against the nut-brown dome between, and took his
departure with his usual light stride and insouciant bearing, which the unwary
mistook for the mark of a frivolous man. Such small indulgences he was more
likely to permit himself, strictly with friends, when he was engaged on
something more than usually grave.
Cadfael
watched him go, absently smoothing down the warlike crest Hugh had erected. He
supposed he had better be stirring, too, and hand over charge here to Brother
Mark until evening. It would not do to take his eyes off Emma for any length of
time, and Aline, to please a solicitous husband, consented to doze for an hour
or two in the afternoon, for the sake of the child. Grandchildren by proxy,
Cadfael reflected, might be a rare and pleasurable recompense for a celibate
prime. As for old age, he had not yet begun to think about it; no doubt it had
its own alleviations.
Chapter
Two
“FOR
ALL I SAID,” EMMA MUSED ALOUD, putting fine stitches into a linen band for an
infant’s cap, in the lofty midday light in the window of Aline’s bedchamber, “I
do grieve for those gloves of mine. Such fine leather, supple and black, and a
wealth of gold in the embroidery. I never bought such expensive ones before.”
She reached the end of her seam, and snipped off the thread neatly. “They say
there’s a very good glover has a stall in the fair,” she said, smoothing her
work. “I thought I might take a look at his wares, and see if he has anything
as fine as those I’ve lost. They tell me he’s well known in Chester, and the
countess buys from him. I think perhaps I’ll walk along the Foregate this
afternoon, and see what he has. What with all these upsets, I’ve hardly seen
anything of the fair.”
“A
good idea,” said Aline. “Such a fine day, we should not be spending it here
within doors. I’ll come with you.”
“Oh,
no, you should not,” protested Emma solicitously. “You nave not had your sleep
this afternoon. No need to keep me company that short way. I should be
distressed if you tired yourself on my account.”
“Oh,
folly!” said Aline cheerfully. “I am so healthy I shall burst if I have too
little to do. It’s Constance and Hugh who want to make an invalid of me, just
because I’m in a woman’s best and happiest estate. And Hugh is gone to the
sheriff, and Constance is visiting with a cousin of hers in the Wyle, so who’s
to fret? I’ll slip on my shoes, and we’ll go. I should like to
buy a box of those sugared fruits your uncle brought from the east. We’ll do
that, too.”
It
seemed that Emma had, after all, lost her taste for the expedition. She sat
stroking the embroidered band she had just finished, and eyed the shape of
linen cut for the crown. “I don’t know—I should finish this, perhaps. After
tomorrow there may be no choice, and I should be sorry to leave it for someone
else to finish. As for the candied fruits, I’ll ask Roger to bring you a box,
when he comes again this evening to tell me how the day has gone. Tomorrow it
will be here.”
“That’s
kind,” said Aline, slipping on her shoes none the less, “but he could hardly
try on a pair of gloves for you, or choose with your eye. So let’s go and see
for ourselves. It won’t take long.”
Emma
sat hesitating, but whether in a genuine endeavour to make up her mind, or in
search of a way of extricating herself from an unsatisfactory situation, Aline
could not be sure. “Oh, no, I should not! How can I give my mind to such
vanity, at a time like this! I’m ashamed that I ever thought of it. My uncle
dead, and here am I yearning after trumpery bits of finery. No, I won’t be so
shallow. Let me at least go on with my work for the child, instead of thinking
only of my own adornment.” And she picked up the cut linen. Aline noted that
the hand holding it trembled a little, and wondered whether to persist. Plainly
the girl wanted to go forth for some purpose of her own, but would not go unless
it could be alone. And alone, said Aline firmly to herself, she certainly shall
not go, if I can prevent.
“Well,”
she said doubtfully, “if you’re determined to be so penitential, I won’t play
the devil and tempt you. And I’m the gainer, your sewing is so fine, I could
never match it. Who taught you so well?” She slipped off her soft leather
shoes, and sat down again. Something, at least, she had learned, better to let
well alone now. Emma welcomed the change of subject eagerly. Of her childhood
she would talk freely.
“My
mother was a famous embroidress. She began to teach me as soon as I could
manage a needle, but she died when I was only eight, and Uncle Thomas took me
in. We had a housekeeper, a Flemish lady who had married a Bristol seaman,
and been widowed when his ship was lost, and she taught me everything she knew,
though I could never equal her work. She used to make altar cloths and
vestments for the church, such beautiful things…”
So
a plain pair of good black gloves, thought Aline, would have done well enough
for you at any time, since you could have adorned them to your own fancy. And
those who can do such things exquisitely, seldom prefer the work of others.
It
was not difficult to keep Emma talking, but for all that, Aline could not help
wondering what was going through the girl’s mind, and how soon, and how
cunningly, she would make the next bid to slip away solitary about her
mysterious business. But as it fell out, she need not have troubled, for late
in the afternoon came a lay brother from the gatehouse, to announce that Martin
Bellecote had brought down Master Thomas’s coffin, and desired permission to
proceed with his business. Emma rose instantly, laying down her sewing, her
face pale and intent. If there was one thing certain, it was that no other
matter, however urgent, would take her away from the church until her uncle was
decently coffined and sealed down for his journey home, and prayers said for
his repose, as later she would attend the first Mass for him. Whatever he had been
to others, he had been uncle and father and friend to his orphaned kinswoman,
and no reverence, no tribute, would be omitted from his obsequies.
“I
will come myself,” said Emma. “I must say farewell to him.” She had not yet
seen him, dead, but the brothers, long expert in the gentle arts that reconcile
life to death, would have made sure that she would be able to remember him
without distress.
“Shall
I come with you?” offered Aline.
“You
are very good, but I would rather go alone.”
Aline
followed as far as the great court, and watched the little procession cross to
the cloister, Emma walking beside the handcart on which Martin and his son
wheeled the coffin. When they had lifted the heavy box and carried it in by the
south door of the church, with Emma following, Aline stood for some minutes
looking about her. At this hour most of the guests and many of the lay servants
were out at the fair, only the brothers went about their business as usual.
Through the wide gate of the distant stable-yard she could see Ivo Corbiиre’s
young groom rubbing down a pony, and the archer Turstan Fowler sitting on a
mountingblock, whistling as he burnished a saddle. Sober and recovered from his
debauch, he was a well-set-up and comely fellow, with the open face of one who
has not a care in the world. Evidently he was long since forgiven, and back in
favour.
Brother
Cadfael, coming from the gardens, saw her still gazing pensively towards the
church. She smiled at sight of him.
“Martin
has brought the coffin. They are within there, she’ll think of nothing else
now. But, Cadfael, she intends to give us all the slip when she can. She has
tried. She would see, she said, if the glover at the fair has something to take
the place of the ones she lost. But when I said I would go with her, no, that
would not do, she gave up the idea.”
“Gloves!”
murmured Brother Cadfael, scrubbing thoughtfully at his chin. “Strange, when
you think of it, that it should be gloves she has on her mind, in the middle of
summer.”
Aline
was in no position to follow that thought, she took it at its surface meaning.
“Why strange? We know there were some stolen from her, and here we are at one
of the few fairs where rare goods are to be bought, it follows naturally
enough. But of course the glover is only a handy excuse.”
Cadfael
said no more then, but he went away very thoughtfully towards the cloister. The
strange thing was not that a girl should want to replace, while chance offered,
a lost piece of finery. It was rather that when she was suddenly confronted by
the need to pass off as simple robbery a raid she knew to be something very
different, one of the articles she claimed to have lost should be a thing so
inappropriate to the season that she felt obliged to account for it by saying
she had newly bought it in Gloucester on the journey. Why gloves, unless she
had gloves running in her mind already for another reason? Gloves? Or glovers?
In
the transept chapel Martin Bellecote and his young son set up the heavy coffin
on a draped trestle, and reverently laid the body of Master Thomas of Bristol
within it. Emma stood looking down at her uncle’s dead face for a long time,
without tears or words. It would not be painful, she found, to remember him
thus, dignified and remote in death, the bones of his cheeks and
brow and jaw more strongly outlined than in life, his florid flesh contracted
and paled into waxen austerity. Now at the last moment she wanted to give him
something to take with him into his grave, and realised that in the buffeting
of these two days she had not been able to think clearly enough to be ready for
the parting. Not the fact of death, but the absolute need of some ceremonial
tenderness, separate from the public rites, suddenly seemed to her
overwhelmingly important.
“Shall
I cover him?” asked Martin Bellecote gently.
Even
so soft a sound startled her. She looked round almost wonderingly. The man,
large, comely and calm, waited her orders without impatience. The boy, grave
and silent, watched her with huge hazel eyes. From her four years’ superiority
over him she pondered whether so young a creature should be doing this office,
and then she understood that those eyes were preoccupied rather with her living
self than with the dead, and the vigorous, flowing sap in him reached up
towards light and life as to the sun, and recognised shadow only by virtue of
its neighbouring brightness. That was right and good.
“No,
wait just a moment,” she said. “I’ll come back!”
She
went quickly out into the sunlight, and looked about her for the path that led
into the gardens. The green lines of a hedge and the crowns of trees within
drew her, she came into a walk where flowers had been planted. The brothers
were great gardeners, and valued food crops for good reason, but they had time
also for roses. She chose the one bush that bore a bloom like no other, pale
yellow petals shading into rose at the tips, and plucked one flower only. Not
the buds, not even the one perfect globe, but a wide-open bloom just beyond its
prime but still unflawed. She took it back, hurrying, into the church with her.
He was not young, not even at his zenith, but settling into his autumn, and
this was the rose for him.
Brother
Cadfael had watched her go, he watched her come again, and followed her into
the chapel, but held aloof in the shadows. She brought her single flower and
laid it in the coffin, beside the dead man’s heart.
“Cover
him now,” she said, and stood well back to let them work in peace. When it was
done, she thanked them, and they withdrew and left her there,
as clearly was her wish. So, just as silently, did Brother Cadfael.
Emma
remained kneeling on the stones of the transept, unaware of discomfort, a great
while, her eyes wide open all that time upon the closed coffin, on its draped
stand before the altar. To lie thus in the church of a great abbey, to have a
special Mass sung for him, and then to be taken home in a grand coffin for
burial with still further rites, surely that was glory, and he would have liked
it. All was to be done as he would have liked. All! He would be pleased with
her.
She
knew her duty; she said prayers for him, a great many prayers, because the form
was blessedly laid down, and her mind could range while her lips formed the
proper words. She would do what he had wanted done, what he had half-confided
to her, as he had to no other. She would see his task completed, and he would
rest, pleased with her. And then… she had hardly looked beyond, but there was a
great, summer-scented breeze blowing through her spirit, telling her she was
young and fair, and wealthy into the bargain, and that boys like the
coffin-maker’s young son looked upon her with interest and pleasure. Other
young men, too, of less green years…
She
rose from her knees at last, shook out her crumpled skirts, and walked briskly
out of the chapel into the nave of the church, and founding the clustered stone
pillars at the corner of the crossing, came face to face with Ivo Corbiиre.
He
had been waiting, silent and motionless, in his shadowy corner, refraining even
from setting foot in the chapel until her vigil was over, and the resolution
with which she had suddenly ended it flung her almost into his arms. She
uttered a startled gasp, and he put out reassuring hands to steady her, and was
in no haste to let go. In this dim place his gold head showed darkened to
bronze, and his face, stooped over her solicitously, was so gilded by the
summer that it had almost the same fine-metal burnishing.
“Did
I alarm you? I’m sorry! I didn’t want to disturb you. They told me at the
gatehouse that the master-carpenter had come and gone, and you were here. I
hoped if I waited patiently I might be able to talk with you. If I have not
pressed my attentions on you until now,” he said earnestly, “it is not because
I haven’t thought of you. Constantly!”
Her eyes were raised to his face with a
fascinated admiration she would never have indulged in full light, and she
quite forgot to make any move to withdraw herself from his hold. His hands slid
down her forearms, but halted at her hands, and the touch, by mutual consent,
became a clasp.
“Almost
two days since I’ve spoken with you!” he said. “It’s an age, and I’ve grudged
it, but you were well-friended, and I had no right… But now that I have you,
let me keep you for an hour! Come out and walk in the gardens. I doubt if
you’ve even seen them yet.”
They
went out together into the sunlight, through the cloister garth and out into
the bustle and traffic of the great court. It was almost time for Vespers, the
quietest hours of the afternoon now spent, the brothers gathering gradually
from their dispersed labours, guests returning from the fairground and the
riverside. It was a gratifying thing to walk through this populous place on the
arm of a nobleman, lord of a modest honour scattered through Cheshire and Shropshire.
For the daughter of craftsmen and merchants, a very gratifying thing! They sat
down on a stone bench in the flower-garden, on the sunny side of the pleached
hedge, with the heady fragrance of Brother Cadfael’s herbarium wafted to them
in drunken eddies on a soft breeze.
“You
will have troublesome dispositions to make,” said Corbiиre seriously. “If there
is anything I can arrange for you, let me know of it. It will be my pleasure to
serve you. You are taking him back to Bristol for burial?”
“It’s
what he would have wished. There will be a Mass for him in the morning, and
then we shall carry him back to his barge for the journey home. The brothers
have been kindness itself to me.”
“And
you? Will you also return with the barge?”
She
hesitated, but why not confide in him? He was considerate and kind, and quick
to understand. “No, it would be— unwise. While my uncle lived it was very well,
but without him it would not do. There is one of our men—I must say no evil of
him, for he has done none, but… He is too fond. Better we should not travel
together. But neither do I want to offer him insult, by letting him know he is
not quite trusted. I’ve told him that I must remain here a few days, that I may
be needed if the sheriff has more questions to ask, or more is
found out about my uncle’s death.”
“But
then,” said Ivo with warm concern, “what of your own journey home? How will you
manage?”
“I
shall stay with Lady Beringar until we can find some safe party riding south,
with women among them. Hugh Beringar will advise me. I have money, and I can
pay my way. I shall manage.”
He
looked at her long and earnestly, until his gravity melted into a smile.
“Between all your well-wishers, you will certainly reach your home without
mishap. I’ll be giving my mind to it, among the rest. But now let’s forget, for
my sake, that there must be a departure, and make the most of the hours while
you are still here.” He rose, and took her by the hand to draw her up with him.
“Forget Vespers, forget we’re guests of an abbey, forget the fair and the
business of the fair, and all that such things may demand of you in future.
Think only that it’s summer, and a glorious evening, and you’re young, and have
friends… Come down with me past the fish-ponds, as far as the brook. That is all
abbey land, I wouldn’t take you beyond.”
She
went with him gratefully, his hand cool and vital in hers. By the brook below
the abbey fields it was cool and fresh and bright, full of scintillating light
along the water, and birds dabbling and singing, and in the pleasure of the
moment she almost forgot all that lay upon her, so sacred and so burdensome.
Ivo was reverent and gentle, and did not press her too close, but when she said
regretfully that it was time for her to go back, for fear Aline might be anxious
about her, he went with her all the way, her hand still firmly retained in his,
and presented himself punctiliously before Aline, so that Emma’s present
guardian might study, accept and approve him. As indeed she did.
It
was charmingly and delicately done. He made himself excellent company for as
long as was becoming on a first visit, invited and deferred to all Aline’s
graceful questions, and withdrew well before he had even drawn near the end of
his welcome.
“So
that’s the young man who was so helpful and gallant when the riot began,” said
Aline, when he was gone. “Do you know, Emma, I do believe you
have a serious admirer there.” A wooer gained, she thought, might come as a
blessed counter-interest to a guardian lost. “He comes of good blood and
family,” said the Aline Siward who had brought two manors to her husband in her
own right, but saw no difference between her guest and herself, and innocently
ignored the equally proud and honourable standards of those born to craft and
commerce instead of land. “The Corbiиres are distant kin of Earl Ranulf of
Chester himself. And he does seem a most estimable young man.”
“But
not of my kind,” said Emma, as shrewd and wary as she sounded regretful. “I am
a stone-mason’s daughter, and niece to a merchant. No landed lord is likely to
become a suitor for someone like me.”
“But
it’s not someone like you in question,” said Aline reasonably. “It is you!”
Brother
Cadfael looked about him, late in the evening after Compline, saw all things in
cautious balance, Emma securely settled in the guest-hall, Beringar already
home. He went thankfully to bed with his brothers, for once at the proper time,
and slept blissfully until the bell rang to wake him for Matins. Down the night
stairs and into the church the brothers filed in the midnight silence, to begin
the new day’s worship. In the faint light of the altar candles they took their
places, and the third day of Saint Peter’s Fair had begun. The third and last.
Cadfael
always rose for Matins and Lauds not sleepy and unwilling, but a degree more
awake than at any other time, as though his senses quickened to the sense of
separateness of the community gathered here, to a degree impossible by
daylight. The dimness of the light, the solidity of the enclosing shadows, the muted
voices, the absence of lay worshippers, all contributed to his sense of being
enfolded in a sealed haven, where all those who shared in it were his own flesh
and blood and spirit, responsible for him as he for them, even some for whom,
in the active and arduous day, he could feel no love, and pretended none. The
burden of his vows became also his privilege, and the night’s first worship was
the fuel of the next day’s energy.
So
the shadows had sharp edges for him, the shapes of pillar and
capital and arch clamoured like vibrant notes of music, both vision and hearing
observed with heightened sensitivity, details had a quivering insistence.
Brother Mark’s profile against the candle-light was piercingly clear. A note
sung off-key by a sleepy elder stung like a bee. And the single pale speck
lying under the trestle that supported Master Thomas’s coffin was like a hole
in reality, something that could not be there. Yet it persisted. It was at the
beginning of Lauds that it first caught his eye, and after that he could not
get free of it. Wherever he looked, however he fastened upon the altar, he
could still see it out of the corner of his eye.
When
Lauds ended, and the silent procession began to file back towards the night
stairs and the dortoir, Cadfael stepped aside, stooped, and picked up the mote
that had been troubling him. It was a single petal from a rose, its colour
indistinguishable by this light, but pale, deepening round the tip. He knew at
once what it was, and with this midnight clarity in him he knew how it had come
there.
Fortunate,
indeed, that he had seen Emma bring her chosen rose and lay it in the coffin.
If he had not, this petal would have told him nothing. Since he had, it told
him all. With hieratic care and ceremony, after the manner of the young when
moved, she had brought her offering cupped in both hands, and not one leaf, not
one grain of yellow pollen from its open heart, had fallen to the floor.
Whoever was hunting so persistently for something
believed to be in Master Thomas’s possession, after searching his person, his
barge and his booth, had not stopped short of the sacrilege of searching his
coffin. Between Compline and Matins it had been opened and closed again; and a
single petal from the wilting rose within had shaken loose and been wafted
unnoticed over the side, to bear witness to the blasphemy.
The
Third Day of the Fair
Chapter One
EMMA
AROSE WITH THE DAWN, stole out of the wide bed she shared with Constance, and
dressed herself very quietly and cautiously, but even so the sense of movement,
rather than any sound, disturbed the maid’s sleep, and caused her to open eyes
at once alert and intelligent.
Emma
laid a finger to her lips, and cast a meaning glance towards the door beyond
which Hugh and Aline were still sleeping. “Hush!” she whispered. “I’m only
going to church for Prime. I don’t want to wake anyone else.”
Constance
shrugged against her pillow, raised her brows a little, and nodded. Today there
would be the Mass for the dead uncle, and then the transference of his coffin
to the barge that would take him home. Not surprising if the girl was disposed
to turn this day into a penitential exercise, for the repose of her uncle’s
soul and the merit of her own. “You won’t go out alone, will you?”
“I’m
going straight to the church,” promised Emma earnestly.
Constance
nodded again, and her eyelids began to close. She was asleep before Emma had
drawn the door to very softly, and slipped away towards the great court.
Brother
Cadfael rose for Prime like the rest, but left his cell before his companions,
and went to take counsel with the only authority in whom he could repose his
latest discovery. Such a violation was the province of the abbot, and only he
had the right to hear of it first.
With the door of the abbot’s austere cell
closed upon them, they were notably at ease together, two men who knew their
own minds and spoke clearly what they had to say. The rose petal, a little
shrunken and weary, but with its yellow and pink still silken-bright, lay in
the abbot’s palm like a golden tear.
“You
are sure this cannot have fallen when our daughter brought it as an offering?
It was a gentle gift,” said Radulfus.
“Not
one grain of dust fell. She carried it like a vessel of wine, in both hands. I
saw every move. I have not yet seen the coffin by daylight, but I doubt not it
has been dealt with competently, and looks as it looked when the
master-carpenter firmed it down. Nevertheless, it has been opened and closed
again.”
“I
take your word,” said the abbot simply. “This is vile.”
“It
is,” said Cadfael and waited.
“And
you cannot put name to the man who would do this thing?”
“Not
yet.”
“Nor
say if he has gained by it? As God forbid!”
“No,
Father! But God will forbid.”
“Give
your might to it,” said Radulfus, and brooded for a while in silence. Then he
said: “We have a duty to the law. Do what is best there, for I hear you have
the deputy sheriff’s ear. As for the affont to the church, to our house, to our
dead son and his heiress, I am left to read between rubrics. There will be a
Mass this morning for the dead man. The holy rite will cleanse all foulness
from his passing and his coffin. As for the child, let her be at peace, for so
she may, her dead is in the hand of God, there has no violence been done to his
soul.”
Brother
Cadfael said, with hearty gratitude: “She will rest the better if she knows
nothing. She is a good girl, her grief should have every consolation.”
“See
to it, brother, as you may. It is almost time for Prime.”
Cadfael
was hurrying from the abbot’s lodging towards the cloister when he saw Emma
turn in there ahead of him, and slowed his steps to be unnoticed himself while
he watched what she would do. On this of all days Emma was entitled to every
opportunity of prayer and meditation, but she also had a very
private secular preoccupation of her own, and which of these needs she was
serving by this early-rising zeal there was no telling.
In
at the south door went Emma, and in after her, just as discreetly, went Brother
Cadfael. The monks were already in their stalls, and concentrating all upon the
altar. The girl slipped silently round into the nave, as though she would find
herself a retired spot there in privacy; but instead of turning aside, she
continued her rapid, silent passage towards the west door, the parish door that
opened on to the Foregate, outside the convent walls. Except during times of
stress, such as the siege of Shrewsbury the previous year, it was never closed.
In
at one door and out at another, and she was free, for a little while, to go
where she would, and could return by the same way, an innocent coming back from
church.
Brother
Cadfael’s sandals padded soundlessly over the tiled floor after her, keeping
well back in case she should look round, though here within he was reasonably sure
she would not. The great parish door was unlatched, she had only to draw it
open a little way, her slenderness slipped through easily, and since this was
facing due west, no betraying radiance flooded in. Cadfael gave her a moment to
turn right or left outside the door, though surely it would be to the right,
towards the fairground. What should she have to do in the direction of the
river and the town?
She
was well in sight when he slid through the doorway and round the corner of the
west front, and looked along the Foregate. She did not hurry now, but curbed
her pace to that of the early buyers who were sauntering along the highroad,
halting at stalls already busy, handling goods, arguing over prices. The last
day of the fair was commonly the busiest. There were bargains to be snapped up
at the close, and lowered prices. There was bustle everywhere, even at this
hour, but the pace of the ambulant shoppers was leisurely. Emma matched hers to
it, as though she belonged among them, but for all that, she was making her way
somewhere with a purpose. Cadfael followed at a respectful distance.
Only
once did she speak to anyone, and then she chose the holder of one of the
larger stalls, and it seemed that she was asking him for directions, for he
turned and pointed ahead along the street, and towards the
abbey wall. She thanked him, and went on in the direction he had indicated, and
now she quickened her pace. Small doubt that she had known all along to whom
she was bound; apparently she had not known precisely where to find him. Now
she knew. By this time all the chief merchants gathered here knew where to find
one another.
Emma
had come to a halt, almost at the end of the Foregate, where a half-dozen
booths were backed into the abbey wall. It seemed that she had arrived at her
destination, yet now stood hesitant, gazing a little helplessly, as if what she
confronted surprised and baffled her. Cadfael drew nearer. She was frowning
doubtfully at the last of the booths, backed into a corner between buttress and
wall. Cadfael recognised it; a lean, suspicious face had peered out from that
hatch as the sheriff’s officers had hoisted Turstan Fowler on to a board and
borne him away to an abbey cell on the eve of the fair. The booth of Euan of
Shotwick. Here they came again, those imagined gloves, so feelingly described,
so soon stolen!
And
Emma was at a loss, for the booth was fast-closed, every panel sealed, and
business all around in full swing. She turned to the nearest neighbour, clearly
questioning, and the man looked, and shrugged, and shook his head. What did he
know? There had been no sign of life there since last night, perhaps the glover
had sold out and departed.
Cadfael
drew nearer. Beneath the austere white wimple, so sharp a change from the frame
of blue-black hair, Emma’s young profile looked even more tender and
vulnerable. She did not know what to do. She advanced a few steps and raised a
hand, as though she would knock at the closed shutter, but then she wavered and
drew back. From across the street a brawny butcher left his stall, patted her
amiably on the shoulder, and did the knocking for her lustily, then stood to
listen. But there was no move from within.
A
large hand clapped Cadfael weightily on the back, and the cavernous voice of
Rhodri ap Huw boomed in his ear in Welsh: “What’s this, then? Master Euan not
open for trade? That I should see the day! I never knew him to miss a sale
before, or any other thing to his advantage.”
“The
stall’s deserted,” said Cadfael. “The man may have left for home.”
“Not he! He was there past midnight, for
I took a turn along here to breathe the cool before going to my inn, and there
was a light burning inside there then.” No gleam from within now, though the
slanting sunlight might well pale it into invisibility. But no, that was not
so, either. The chinks between shutter and frame were utterly dark.
It
was all too like what Roger Dod had found at another booth, only one day past.
But there the booth had been barred from within, and the bar hoisted clear with
a dagger. Here there was a lock, to be mastered from within or without, and
certainly no visible key.
“This
I do not like,” said Rhodri ap Huw, and strode forward to try the door, and
finding it, as was expected, locked, to peer squint-eyed through the large
keyhole. “No key within,” he said shortly over his shoulder, and peered still.
“Not a movement in there.” He had Cadfael hard on his heels by then, and three
or four others closing in. “Give me room!”
Rhodri
clenched the fingers of both hands in the edge of the door, set a broad foot
against the timber wall, and hauled mightily, square shoulders gathered in one
great heave. Wood splintered about the lock, small flinders flying like motes
of dust, and the door burst open. Rhodri swayed and recovered in recoil, and
was first through the opening, but Cadfael was after him fast enough to ensure
that the Welshman touched nothing within. They craned into the gloom together,
cheek by jowl.
The
glover’s stall was in chaos, shelves swept clear, goods scattered like grain
over the floor. On a straw palliasse along the rear wall his cloak lay
sprawled, and on an iron stand beside, a quenched candle sagged in folds of
tallow. It took them a few seconds to accustom their eyes to the dimness and
see clearly. Tangled in his spilled stock of belts, baldricks, gloves, purses
and saddle-bags, Euan of Shotwick lay on his back, knees drawn up, a coarse
sacking bag drawn half-over his lean face and greying head. Beneath the hem of
the hood his thin-lipped mouth grinned open in a painful rictus, large white
teeth staring, and the angle at which his head lay had the horrible suggestion
of a broken wooden puppet.
Cadfael
turned and flung up the shutter of the booth, letting in the morning light. He
stooped to touch the contorted neck and hollow cheek. “Cold,”
said Rhodri, behind him, not attempting to verify his judgment, which for all
that was accurate enough. Euan’s flesh was chilling. “He’s dead,” said Rhodri
flatly.
“Some
hours,” said Cadfael.
In
the stress of the moment he had forgotten Emma, but the shriek she gave caused
him to swing round in haste and dismay. She had crept in fearfully to peer over
the shoulders of the neighbours, and stood staring with eyes wide with horror,
both small fists crushed against her mouth. “Oh, no!” she said in a whisper.
“Not dead! Not he, too…”
Cadfael
took her in his arms, and thrust her bodily before him out of the booth,
elbowing the gaping onlookers out of his way. “Go back! You mustn’t stay here.
Go back before you’re missed, and leave this to me.” He wondered if she even
heard his rapid murmur into her ear; she was shaking and white as milk, her
blue eyes fixed and huge with shock. He looked about him urgently for someone
to whom he could safely confide her, for he doubted if she should be left to
return alone, and yet he did not care to leave this scene until Beringar should
be here to take charge, or one of the sheriff’s sergeants at least. The sudden
alarmed shout of recognition that came from the rear of the gathering crowd was
a most welcome sound.
“Emma!
Emma!” Ivo Corbiиre came cleaving an unceremonious way through the press, like
a sudden vehement wind in a cornfield, bludgeoning the standing stems out of
its path. She turned at the call, and a spark of returning life sprang up in
her eyes. Thankfully Cadfael thrust her into the young man’s arms, which
reached eagerly and anxiously to receive her.
“For
God’s sake, what has happened to her? What…” His glance flashed from her
stunned visage to Cadfael’s, and beyond, to the open door with its splintered
panel. Over her head his lips framed silently for Cadfael: “Not again?
Another?”
“Take
her back,” said Cadfael shortly. “Take care of her. And tell Hugh Beringar to
come. We have sheriff’s business here within.”
All
the way back along the Foregate, Corbiиre kept a supporting arm about her, and
curbed his long stride to hers, and all the way he poured
soothing, caressing words into her ear, while she, until they had almost
reached the west door of the church, said nothing at all, simply walked
docilely beside him, distantly aware of the lulling sound and the comforting
touch. Then suddenly she said: “He’s dead. I saw him, I know.”
“A
bare glimpse you had,” said Ivo consolingly. “It may not be so.”
“No,”
said Emma, “I know the man is dead. How could it happen? Why?”
“There
are always such acts, somewhere, robberies, violence and evil. It is sad, but
it is not new.” His fingers pressed her hand warmly. “It is no fault of yours,
and alas, there is nothing you or I can do about it. I wish I could make you
forget it. In time you will forget.”
“No,”
she said. “I shall never forget this.”
She
had meant to return by the church, as she had left, but now it no longer
mattered. As far as he or any other was concerned, she had simply set out early
to buy some gloves, or at least to view what the glover had to offer. She went
in with Ivo by the gatehouse. By the time he had brought her tenderly on his
arm to the guest-hall she had regained her composure. There was a little colour
in her face again, and her voice was alive, even if its tone indicated that
life was painful.
“I’m
recovered now, Ivo,” she said. “You need not trouble for me further. I will
tell Hugh Beringar that he is needed.”
“Brother
Cadfael entrusted you to me,” said Ivo with gentle and confident authority,
“and you did not reject me. I shall fulfil my errand exactly. As I hope,” he
said smiling, “I may perform any other missions you may care to entrust to me
hereafter.”
Hugh
Beringar came with four of the sheriff’s men, dispersed the crowd that hung
expectantly round the booth of Euan of Shotwick, and listened to the accounts
rendered by the neighbouring stall-holders, by the butcher from over the road,
and by Rhodri ap Huw, for whom Cadfael interpreted sentence by sentence. In no
haste to go, for as he said, his best lad was back with the boat from
Bridgnorth and competent to take charge of what stock he still
had to sell, the Welshman nonetheless showed no unbecoming desire to linger,
once his witness was taken. Imperturbable and all-beholding, he ambled away at
the first indication that the law had done with him. Others, more persistent,
hung about the booth in a silent, watchful circle, but were kept well away from
earshot. Beringar drew the door to. The opened hatches gave light enough.
“Can
I take the man’s account for fair and true?” asked Hugh, casting a glance after
Rhodri’s retreating back. There was no backward glance from the Welshman, his
assurance was absolute.
“To
the letter, for all that happened here from the time I came on the scene. He’s
an excellent observer, there’s little he misses of what concerns him, or may
concern him, and what does not. He does business, too, his trade here is no
pretext. But it may be only half his business that we see.”
There
were only the two of them within there now, two living and the dead man. They
stood one either side of him, drawn back to avoid disturbing either his body or
the litter of leatherwork scattered about and over him.
“He
says there was a light showing through the chinks here past midnight,” said
Beringar. “The light is quenched now, not burned out. And if he locked his door
after closing the booth for the night…”
“As
he would,” said Cadfael. “Rhodri’s account of him rings true. A man complete in
himself, trusting no one, able to take care of himself, until now. He would
have locked his door.”
“Then
he also unlocked it, to let in his murderer. The lock never was forced until
now, as you saw. Why should a wary man unlock his door to anyone in the small
hours?”
“Because
he was expecting someone,” said Cadfael, “though not the someone who came.
Because, it may be, he had been expecting someone all these three days, and was
relieved when the expected message came at last.”
“So
relieved that he ceased to be cautious? Given your Welshman’s estimate of him,
I should doubt it.”
“So
should I,” agreed Cadfael, “unless there was a private word he was waiting for,
and it was known and given. A name, perhaps. For you see, Hugh, I think he was
already well aware that the one he had expected to deliver the
message was never going to tap at his door by night, or stop in the Foregate to
pass the time with him.”
“You
mean,” said Hugh, “Thomas of Bristol, who is dead.”
“Who
else? How many strange chances can come together, all against what is likely,
or even possible? A merchant is killed, his barge searched, his booth searched,
then, dear God, his coffin! I have not yet had time, Hugh, to tell you of
that.” He told it now. He had the rose-petal in the breast of his habit,
wrapped in a scrap of linen; it still spoke as eloquently as before. “You may
trust my eyes, I know it did not fall earlier, I know it has been in the coffin
with him. Now that same man’s niece makes occasion to come by stealth to this
glover’s stall, only to find the glover dead like her uncle. It is a long list
of assaults upon all things connected with Thomas of Bristol. Now, since this
unknown treasure was not found even in his coffin, for safe-conduct back to
Bristol in default of delivery, the next point of search has been here—where
Master Thomas should have delivered it.”
“They
would need to have foreknowledge of that.”
“Or
good reason to guess aright.”
“By
your witness,” said Hugh, pondering, “the coffin was opened and closed between
Compline and Matins. Before midnight. When would you say, Cadfael—your
experience is longer than mine—when would you say this man died?”
“In
the small hours. By the second hour after midnight, I judge, he was dead. After
the coffin, it seems, they were forced to the conclusion that somehow, for all
they had a watch on Master Thomas from his arrival, and disposed of him before
ever the fair started, yet somehow he, or someone else on his behalf, must have
slipped through their net, and delivered the precious charge. This poor soul
certainly opened his door last night to someone he believed had business with
him. The mention of a privileged name… a password… He let in his murderer, but
what he had expected was the thing promised.”
“Then
even now,” said Hugh sharply, “with two murders on their souls, they have not
what they wanted. He thought they were bringing it. They trusted to find it
here. And neither of them had it. Both were deceived.” He brooded with a brown fist clamping his jaw, and his black brows down-drawn in
unaccustomed solemnity. “And Emma came here… by stealth.”
“She
did. Not every man,” said Cadfael, “has your view of women, or mine. Most of
your kind, most of mine, would never dream of looking in a woman’s direction to
find anything of importance in hand. Especially a mere child, barely grown. Not
until every other road was closed, and they were forced to notice a woman there
in the thick of the matter. Who just might be what they sought.”
“And
who has now betrayed herself,” said Hugh grimly. “Well, at least she reached
the guest-hall safely, thanks to Corbiиre. I have left her with Aline, very
shaken, for all her strength of will, and she will not stir a step this day
unguarded. That I can promise. Between us I think we can take care of Emma. Now
let’s see if this poor wretch has anything to tell us that we don’t yet know.”
He
stooped and drew back the coarse sack that covered half the glover’s narrow
face, from eyebrow on one side to jaw on the other. A broken bruise in the
greying hair above the left temple indicated a right-handed blow as soon as the
door was opened to his visitor, meant to stun him, probably, until he could be
muffled in the sack and gagged like Warin. Here it was a case of gaining entry
and confronting a wide-awake man, not a timid sleeper.
“Much
the same manner as the other one,” said Cadfael, “and I doubt if they ever
meant to kill. But he was not so easily put out of the reckoning. He put up a
fight. And his neck is broken. By the look of it, one made round behind him to
secure this blindfold, and in the struggle he gave them, tried all too hard to
haul him backwards by it. He was wiry and agile, but his bones were aging, and
too brittle to sustain it. I don’t think it was intended. We should have found
him neatly bound and still alive, like Warin, if he had not fought them. Once
they knew he was dead, they made their search in haste, and left all as it
fell.”
Beringar
brushed aside the light tangle of girdles and straps and gloves that littered
the floor and lay over the body. Euan’s right arm was covered from the elbow
down by the skirts of his own gown, kicked out of the way of the searchers in
their hunt. When the folds were drawn down Hugh let out a sharp
whistle of surprise, for in the dead man’s hand was a long poniard, the naked
blade grooved, and ornamented with gilding near the hilt. At his belt,
half-hidden now under his right hip, the scabbard lay empty.
“A
man of his hands! And see, he’s marked one of them for us!” There was blood on
the point of the blade, and drawn up by the grooving for some three fingers’
breadth in two thin crimson lines, now drying to black.
“Rhodri
ap Huw said of him,” Cadfael remembered, “that he was a solitary soul who
trusted nobody—his own porter and his own watchman. He said he wore a weapon,
and knew how to use it.” He went on his knees beside the body, and cleared away
the debris that still lay about it, eying and handling from head to foot.
“You’ll have him away to the castle, I suppose, or the abbey, and look him over
more carefully, but I do believe the only blood he’s lost is this smear on his
brow. This on the dagger is not his.”
“If
only we could as easily say whose it is!” said Hugh dryly, sitting on his heels
with the nimbleness of the young on the other side of the body. Brother Cadfael
eased creaky elderly knees on the hard boards, and briefly envied him. The
young man lifted the stiffening arm, and tested the grip of the clenched
fingers. “He holds fast!” It took him some effort to loosen the convulsive
grasp enough to slip the hilt of the dagger free. In the slanting light from
the open hatch something gleamed briefly, waving at the tip of the blade, and
again vanished, as motes of dust come and go in gold in bright sunlight. There
was also what seemed at first to be a thin encrustation of blood fringing the
steel on one edge. Cadfael exclaimed, leaning to point. “A yellow hair—There it
shows again!” The flashing gleam curled and twisted as Hugh turned the dagger
in his hand.
“Not
a hair, a fine, yellowish thread. Thread of flax, not bleached. This grooving
has ripped out a shred of cloth, and the blood has stuck it fast. See!”
A
mere wisp of brown material it was, a fringe along the groove that had held it.
Narrow as a blade of grass, but when Cadfael carefully took hold of a thread at
the end and drew it out straight, it stretched to the length of his hand. The colour, though fouled by dried blood, showed plain at one edge, a
light russet-brown; and at the end of the sliver floated gaily the long, fine
flax thread, scalloped like a curly hair.
“A
sliced tear a hand long,” said Cadfael, “and ending at a hem, for surely this
thread sewed the edging, and the dagger ripped out a length of the stitching.”
He narrowed his eyes, and considered, imagining Euan facing the door as he
opened it, the instant blow that failed to tame him, and then his rapid drawing
of his poniard and striking with it. Almost brow to brow and breast to breast,
a man good with his right hand, and his attacker’s heart an open target.
“He
struck for the heart,” said Cadfael with conviction. “So would I, or so would I
have done once. The other man, surely, slipped behind him and spoiled the
stroke, but that is where he aimed. Someone, somewhere, has a torn cotte. It
might be in the left breast, or it might be in the sleeve. The man’s arms would
be raised, reaching to grapple him. I should say the left sleeve, ripping from
the hem halfway to the elbow. The sewing thread was caught first, and pulled
out a length of stitches.”
Hugh
considered that respectfully, and found no fault with it. “Much of a scratch,
would you guess? He did not drip blood to the doorway. It could not have been
enough to need much stanching.”
“The
sleeve would hold it. Likely only a graze, but a long graze. It will be there
to be seen.”
“If
we knew where to look!” Hugh gave a short bark of laughter at the thought of
sending sergeants about this teeming marketplace to ask every man to roll up
his left sleeve and show his arm. “A simple matter! Still, no reason why you
and I, and all the men I can spare and trust, should not be keeping our eyes
open all the rest of this day for a torn sleeve—or a newly cobbled one.”
He
rose, and turned to beckon his nearest man from the open hatch. “Well, we’ll
have him away from here, and do what we can. A word with your Rhodri ap Huw
wouldn’t come amiss, and I fancy you might get more out of him in his own
tongue than ever I should at second hand. If he knows this man so well, prick
him on to talk, and bring me what you learn.”
“That I’ll do,” said Cadfael, clambering
stiffly from his knees.
“I
must go first to the castle, and report what we’ve found. One thing I’ll make
certain of this time,” said Hugh. “The sheriff was in no mood to listen too
carefully last night, but after this he’ll have to turn young Corviser loose on
his father’s warranty, like the rest of them. It would take a more pig-headed
man than Prestcote to believe the lad had any part in the first death, seeing
the trail of offences that have followed while he was in prison. He shall eat
his dinner at home today.”
Rhodri
was not merely willing to spend an hour pouring the fruits of his wisdom and
experience into Brother Cadfael’s ear, he was hovering with that very thing in
mind as soon as the corpse of Euan of Shotwick had been carried away, and the
booth closed, with one of the sheriff’s men on guard. Though ever-present, he
had the gift of being unobtrusive until he chose to obtrude, and then could
appear from an unexpected direction, and as casually as if only chance had
brought him there.
“No
doubt you’ll have sold all you brought with you,” said Cadfael, encountering
him thus between the stalls, clearly untroubled by business.
“Goods
of quality are recognized everywhere,” said Rhodri, sharp eyes twinkling
merrily. “My lads are clearing the last few jars of honey, and the wool’s long
gone. But I’ve a half-full bottle there, if you care to share a cup at this
hour? Mead, not wine, but you’ll be happy with that, being a Welshman
yourself.”
They
sat on heaped trestles already freed from their annual use by the removal of
small tradesmen who had sold out their stock, and set the bottle between them.
“And
what,” asked Cadfael, with a jerk of his head towards the guarded booth, “do
you make of that affair this morning? After all that’s gone before? Have we more
birds of prey this way than usual, do you think? It may be they’ve taken fright
and left the shires where there’s still fighting, and we get the burden of it.”
Rhodri
shook his shaggy head, and flashed his large white teeth out of
the thicket in a grin. “I would say you’ve had a more than commonly peaceful
and well-mannered fair, myself—apart from the misfortunes of two merchants
only. Oh, tonight’s the last night, and there’ll be a few drunken squabbles and
a brawl or two, I daresay, but what is there in that? But chance has played no
part in what has happened to Thomas of Bristol. Chance never goes hounding one
man for three days through hundreds of his fellows, yet never grazes one of the
others.”
“It
has more than grazed Euan of Shotwick,” remarked Cadfael dryly.
“Not
chance! Consider, brother! Earl Ranulf of Chester’s eyes and ears comes to a
Shropshire fair and is killed. Thomas of Bristol, from a city that holds by
Earl Robert of Gloucester, comes to the same fair, and is killed the very night
of his coming. And after his death, everything he brought with him is turned
hither and yon, but precious little stolen, from all I hear.” And certainly he
had a way of hearing most of what was said within a mile of him, but at least
he had made no mention of the violation of Master Thomas’s coffin. Either that
had not reached his ears, and never would, or else he had been the first to
know of it, and would be the last ever to admit it. The parish door was always
open, no need to set foot in the great court or pass the gatehouse. “Something
Thomas brought to Shrewsbury is of burning interest to somebody, it seems to
me, and the somebody failed to get hold of it from man, barge or stall. And the
next thing that happens is that Euan of Shotwick is also killed in the night,
and all his belongings ransacked. I would not say but things were stolen there.
They may have learned enough for that, and his goods are small and portable,
and why despise a little gain on the side? But for all that— No, two men from
opposite ends of a divided country, meeting midway, on important private
business? It could be so! Gloucester’s man and Chester’s man.”
“And
whose,” wondered Cadfael aloud, “was the third man?”
“The
third?”
“Who
took such an interest in the other two that they died of it. Whose man would he
be?”
“Why,
there are other factions, and every one of them needs its
intelligencers. There’s the king’s party—they might well feel a strong interest
if they noted Gloucester’s man and Chester’s man attending the same fair midway
between. And not only the king—there are others who count themselves kings on
their own ground, besides Chester, and they also need to know what such a one
as Chester is up to, and will go far to block it if it threatens their own
profit. And then there’s the church, brother, if you’ll take it no offence is
meant to the Benedictines. For you’ll have heard by now that the king has dealt
very hardly with some of his bishops this last few weeks, put up all manner of
clerical backs, and turned his own brother and best ally, Bishop Henry of
Winchester, who’s papal legate into the bargain, into a bitter enemy. Bishop
Henry himself might well have a finger in this pie, though I doubt if he can
have had word of things afoot here in time, being never out of the south. But
Lincoln, or Worcester—all such lords need to know what’s going on, and for men
of influence there are always plenty of bully-boys for hire, who’ll do the
labouring work while their masters sit inviolable at home.”
And
so, thought Cadfael, could wealthy men sit inviolable here in their stalls, in
full view of hundreds, while their hired bully-boys do the dirty work. And this
black Welshman is laying it all out for me plain to be seen, and taking delight
in it, too! Cadfael knew when he was being deliberately teased! What he could
not be quite sure of was whether this was the caprice of a blameless but
mischievous man, or the sport of a guilty one taking pleasure in his own
immunity and cleverness. The black eyes sparkled and the white teeth shone. And
why grudge him his enjoyment, if something useful could yet be gleaned from it?
Besides, his mead was excellent.
“There
must,” said Cadfael thoughtfully, “be others here from Cheshire, even some from
close to Ranulfs court. You yourself, for instance, come from not so far away,
and are knowledgeable about those parts, and the men and the mood there. If you
are right, whoever has committed these acts knew where to look for the thing
they wanted, once they gave up believing that it was still among the effects of
Thomas of Bristol. Now how would they be able to choose, say, between Euan of
Shotwick and you? As an instance, of course! No offence!”
“None in the world!” said Rhodri
heartily. “Why, bless you! The only reason I know myself is because I am myself,
and know I’m not in Ranulf of Chester’s employ. But you can’t know that, not
certainly, and neither can any other. There’s a small point, of course—Thomas
of Bristol, I doubt, spoke no Welsh.”
“And
you no English,” sighed Cadfael. “I had forgotten!”
“There
was a traveller from down towards Gloucester stayed overnight at Ranulf s court
not a month ago,” mused Rhodri, twinkling happily at his own omniscience, “a
jongleur who got unusual favour, for he was called in to play a stave or two to
Ranulf and his lady in private, after they left the hall at night. If Earl
Ranulf has an ear for music, it’s the first I’ve heard of it. It would
certainly need more than a French virelai to fetch him in for his
father-in-law’s cause. He would want to know what were the prospects of
success, and what his reward might be.” He slanted a radiant smile along his
shoulder at Cadfael, and poured out the last of the mead. “Your health,
brother! You, at least, are delivered from the greed for gain. I have often
wondered, is there a passion large enough to take its place? I am still in the
world myself, you understand.”
“I
think there might be,” said Cadfael mildly. “For truth, perhaps? Or justice?”
Chapter
Two
THE
GAOLER UNLOCKED THE DOOR OF PHILIP’S CELL somewhat before noon, and stood back
to let the provost enter. Father and son eyed each other hard, and though
Geoffrey Corviser continued to look grimly severe, and Philip obdurate and
defiant, nevertheless the father was mollified and the son reassured. By and
large, they understood each other pretty well.
“You
are released to my warranty,” said the provost shortly. “The charge is not
withdrawn, not yet, but you’re trusted to appear when called, and until then,
let’s hope I may get some sensible work out of you.”
“I
may come home with you?” Philip sounded dazed; he knew nothing of what had been
going on outside, and was unprepared for this abrupt release. Hurriedly he
brushed himself down, all too aware that he presented no very savoury spectacle
to walk through the town at the provost’s side. “What made them change their
mind? There’s no one been taken for the murder?” That would clear him utterly
in Emma’s eyes, no doubts left.
“Which
murder?” said his father grimly. “Never mind now, you shall hear, once we have
you out of here.”
“Ay,
stir yourself, lad,” advised the goodhumoured warder, jingling his keys,
“before they change their minds again. The rate things are happening at this
year’s fair, you might find the door slammed again before you can get through
it.”
Philip
followed his father wonderingly out of the castle. The noon
light in the outer ward fell warm and dazzling upon him, the sky was a
brilliant, deep blue, like Emma’s eyes when she widened them in anxiety or
alarm. It was impossible not to feel elated, whatever reproaches might still
await him at home; and hope and the resilience of youth blossomed in him as his
father recounted brusquely all that had happened while his son fretted in
prison without news.
“Then
there have been two attacks upon Mistress Vernold’s boat and booth, her goods
taken, her men assaulted?” He had quite forgotten his own bedraggled
appearance, he was striding towards home with his head up and his visage roused
and belligerent, looking, indeed, very much as he had looked when he led his
ill-fated expedition across the bridge on the eve of the fair. “And no one
seized for it? Nothing done? Why, she herself may be in danger!” Indignation
quickened his steps. “For God’s sake, what’s the sheriff about?”
“He
has enough to do breaking up unseemly riots by you and your like,” said his
father smartly, but could not raise so much as a blush from his incensed
offspring. “But since you want to know, Mistress Vernold is in the guest-hall
of the abbey, safe enough, in the care of Hugh Beringar and his lady. You’d do
better to be thinking about your own troubles, my lad, and mind your own step,
for you’re not out of the wood yet.”
“What
did I do that was so wrong? I went only one pace beyond what you did yourself
the day before.” He did not even sound aggrieved about being judged hard, he
made that brief defence only absently, his mind all on the girl. “Even in the
guest-hall she may not be out of reach, if this is all some determined plot
against her uncle and all his family.” In the death of one more tradesman at
the fair he showed less interest, shocking though it was, since it seemed to
have little or nothing to do with the vindictive catalogue of offences against
Master Thomas and all his possessions. “She spoke so fairly,” he said. “She
would not have me accused of worse than I did.”
“True
enough! She was a fine, honest witness, no denying it. But no business of yours
now, she’s well cared for. It’s your mother you need to be thinking of, she’s
been in a fine taking over you all this while, and now they’re looking in other directions for the one who did the killing—with one eye
still on you, though, mind!—she’ll likely take some sweetening. One way or
another, you’ll get a warm welcome.”
Philip
was far beyond minding that, though as soon as he entered the house behind the
shoemaker’s shop he did indeed get a warm welcome, not one way or another, but
both ways at once. Mistress Corviser, who was large, handsome and voluble,
looked round from her fireside hob, uttered a muted shriek, dropped her ladle,
and came billowing like a ship in full sail to embrace him, shake him, wrinkle
her nose at the prison smell of him, abuse him for the damage to his best cotte
and hose, box his ears for laughing at her tirade, exclaim lamentably over the
dried scar at his temple, and demand that he sit down at once and let her crop
the hair that adhered to the matted blood, and clean up the wound. By far the
easiest thing to do was to submit to all, and let her talk herself out.
“The
trouble and shame you’ve put us to, the heartaches you’ve cost me, wretch, you
don’t deserve that I should feed you, or wash and mend for you. The provost’s
son in prison, think of our mortification! Are you not ashamed of yourself?”
She was sponging away the encrusted blood, and relieved to find so
insignificant a scar remaining; but when he said blithely: “No, mother!” she
pulled his hair smartly.
“Then
you should be, you good-for-nothing! There, that’s not so bad. Now I hope
you’re going to settle down to work, and make up for all the trouble you’ve
made for us, instead of traipsing about the town egging on other people’s sons
to mischief with your wild ideas…”
“They
were the same ideas father and all the guild merchant had, mother, you should
have scolded them. And you ask those who’re wearing my shoes whether there’s
much amiss with my work.” He was a very good workman, in fact, as she would
have asserted valiantly if anyone else had cast aspersions on his diligence and
ability. He hugged her impulsively, and kissed her cheek, and she put him off
impatiently, with what was more a slap than a caress. “Get along with you, and
don’t come moguing me until you’re cleared of the worse charge, and have paid
your fine for the riot. Now come and eat your dinner!”
It
was an excellent dinner, such as she produced on festivals and
saints’ days. After it, instead of shedding the clothes he had worn day and
night in his cell, he shaved carefully, made a bundle of his second-best suit,
and left the house with it under his arm.
“Now
where are you going?” she demanded inevitably.
“To
the river, to swim and get clean again.” They had a garden upstream, below the
town hall, as many of the burgesses had, for growing their own fruit and
vegetables, and there was a small hut there, and a sward where he could dry in
the sun. He had learned to swim there, shortly after he learned to walk. He did
not tell her where he was going afterwards. It was a pity he would have to
present himself in his second-best coat, but in this hot summer weather perhaps
he need not put it on at all; in shirt and hose most men look the same,
provided the shirt is good linen and well laundered.
The
water was not even cold in the sandy shallow by the garden, but after his meal
he did not stay in long, or swim out into deep water. But it was good to feel
like himself again, cleansed even of the memory of his failure and downfall.
There was a still place under the bank where the water hung almost motionless,
and showed him a fair image of his face, and the thick bush of red-brown hair which
he combed and straightened with his fingers. He dressed as carefully as he had
shaved, and set off back to the bridge, and over it to the abbey. The town’s
grievance, which he had had on his mind the last time he came this way, was
quite forgotten; he had other important business now on the abbey side of
Severn.
“There’s
one here,” said Constance, coming in from the great court with a small, private
smile on her lips, “who asks to speak with Mistress Vernold. And not a bad
figure of a young fellow, either, though still a thought coltish about the
legs. He asked very civilly.”
Emma
had looked up quickly at the mention of a young man; now that she had gone some
way towards accepting what had happened, and coming to terms with a disaster
which, after all, she had not caused, she had been remembering words Ivo had
used, almost disregarded then in her shocked daze, but significant and warming
now.
“Messire
Corbiиre?”
“No, not this time. This one I don’t
know, but he says his name is Philip Corviser.”
“I
know him,” said Aline, and smiled over her sewing. “The provost’s son, Emma,
the boy you spoke for in the sheriff’s court. Hugh said he would see him set
free today. If there’s one soul can say he has done no evil to you or any these
last two days, he’s the man. Will you see him? It would be a kindness.”
Emma
had almost forgotten him, even his name, but she recalled the plea he had made
for her belief in him. So much had happened between. She remembered him now,
unkempt, bruised and soiled, pallid-sick after his drunkenness, but still with
a despairing dignity. “Yes, I remember him. Of course I’ll see him.”
Philip
followed Constance into the room. Fresh from the river, with damp hair curling
thickly about his head, shaven and glowing and in fierce earnest, but without
the aggression of the manner she had first seen in him, this was a very
different person from the humiliated prisoner of the court. The last look he
had given her, chin on shoulder, as he was dragged out… yes, she saw the
resemblance there. He made his reverence to Aline, and then to Emma.
“Madam,
I am released on my father’s bail. I came to say my thanks to Mistress Emma for
speaking so fairly for me, when I had no right to expect goodwill from her.”
“I’m
glad to see you free, Philip,” said Aline serenely, “and looking none the
worse. You will like to speak with Emma alone, I daresay, and company other
than mine may be good for her, for here we talk nothing but babies.” She rose,
folding her sewing carefully to keep the needle in view as she carried it.
“Constance and I will sit on the bench by the hall door, in the sun. The light
is better there, and I am no such expert needlewoman as Emma. You can be
undisturbed here.”
Out
she went, and they saw a ray of sun from the open outer door sparkle in her
piled gold hair, before Constance followed, and closed the door between. The
two of them were left, gazing gravely at each other.
“The
first thing I wanted to do with freedom,” said Philip, “was to see you again,
and thank you for what you did for me. As I do, with all my
heart. There were some who bore witness there who had known me most of my life,
and surely had no grudge against me, and yet testified that I had been the
first to strike, and done all manner of things I knew I had not done. But you,
who had suffered through my act, though God knows I never willed it, you spoke
absolute truth for me. It took a generous heart and a fair mind to do so much
for an unknown whom you had no cause to love.” He had not chosen that word, it
had come naturally in the commonplace phrase, but when he heard it, it raised a
blush like fire in his own face, faintly reflected the next moment in hers.
“All
I did was to tell the truth of what I had seen,” she said. “So should we all
have done, it’s no virtue, but an obligation. It was shame that they did not.
People do not think what it is they are saying, or trouble to be clear about
what they have seen. But that’s all by now. I’m very glad they’ve let you go. I
was glad when Hugh Beringar said they must, taking into account what has been
happening, for which you certainly can bear no blame. But perhaps you have not
heard…”
“Yes,
I have heard. My father has told me.” Philip sat down beside her in the place
Aline had vacated, and leaned towards her earnestly. “There is some very evil
purpose against you and yours, surely, how else to account for so many
outrages? Emma, I am afraid for you… I fear danger threatening even you. I’m
grieved for your loss, and all the distress you’ve suffered. I wish there might
be some way in which I could serve you.”
“Oh,
but you need not be troubled for me,” she said. “You see I am in the best and
kindest hands possible, and tomorrow the fair will all be over, and Hugh
Beringar and Aline will help me to find a safe way to go home.”
“Tomorrow?”
he said, dismayed.
“It
may not be tomorrow. Roger Dod will take the barge down-river tomorrow, but it
may be that I must stay a day or two more. We have to find a party going south
by Gloucester, for safe-conduct, and with some other women for company. It may
take a day or two.”
Even
a day or two would be gold; but after that she would be gone, and he might
never see her again. And still, confronted by this cause for
unhappiness on his own part, he could only think of her. He could not rid
himself of the feeling that she was threatened.
“In
only two days, see how many ill things have happened, and always close to you,
and what may not still happen in a day or two more? I wish you were safe home
this moment,” he said passionately, “though God knows I’d rather lose my right
hand than the sight of you.” He was not even aware that that same right hand
had taken possession of her left one, and was clasping it hard. “At least find
me some way of serving you before you go. If nothing more, tell me you know
that I never did harm to your uncle…”
“Oh,
yes,” she said warmly, “that I can, most willingly. I never did truly believe
it. You are no such person, to strike a man dead by stealth. I never thought
it. But still we don’t know who did it! Oh, don’t doubt me, I’m sure of you.
But I wish it could be shown clear to the world, for your sake.”
It
was said very prettily and sincerely, and he took it to his heart gratefully,
but it was said out of generous fellow-feeling, and nothing deeper, and he was
gallingly sure of it while he hugged at least the kindness to him.
“For
mine, too,” she said honestly, “and for the sake of justice. It is not right
that a mean murderer should escape his due, and it does aggrieve me that my
uncle’s death should go unpaid for.”
Find
me some way of serving you, he had said; and perhaps she had. There was nothing
he would not have undertaken for her; he would have lain over the threshold of
any room in which she was, like a dog on guard, if she had needed it, but she
did not, she was cared for by the sheriff’s own deputy and his lady, and they
would watch over her until they saw her safely on her way home. But when she
spoke of the unknown who had slipped a dagger in her uncle’s back, her great
eyes flared with the angry blue of sapphires, and her face grew marble-clear
and taut. Her complaint was his commission. He would achieve something for her
yet.
“Emma,”
he began in a whisper, and drew breath to commit himself deep as the sea.
The
door opened, though neither of them had heard the knock; Constance put her head
into the room.
“Messire Corbiиre waits to see you, when
you are free,” she said, and withdrew, but left the door ajar. Evidently
Messire Corbiиre ought not to be kept waiting long.
Philip
was on his feet. Emma’s eyes had kindled at the name like distant stars,
forgetting him. “You may remember him,” she said, still sparing a morsel of her
attention for Philip, “the young gentleman who came to help us on the jetty,
along with Brother Cadfael. He has been very kind to me.”
Philip
did remember, though his bludgeoned senses at the time had seen everything
distorted; a slender, elegant, assured lordling who leaped a rolling cask to
catch her in his arm at the water’s edge, and further, to be just to him, had
appeared in the sheriff’s court and borne out Emma’s honest story— even if he
had also produced his falconer to testify to the silly threats Philip had been
indulging in, drunk as he was, later that evening. Testimony Philip did not
dispute, since he knew he had been incapable of clear thought or positive
recollection. He recalled his disgusting self, and smarted at the thought. And
the young lord with the bright gold crest and athlete’s prowess had showed so
admirable by contrast.
“I’ll
take my leave,” said Philip, and allowed her hand to slip out of his, though
with reluctance and pain. “For the journey, and always, I wish you well.”
“So
do I you,” she said, and with unconscious cruelty added: “Will you ask Messire
Corbiиre to come in?”
Never
in his life until then had Philip been required to draw himself to his full
stature, body and mind. His departure was made with a dignity he had not
dreamed he could achieve, and meeting Corbiиre face to face in the hall, he did
indeed bid him within, at Mistress Emma’s invitation, very civilly and amiably,
while he burned with jealousy inwardly. Ivo thanked him pleasantly, and if he
looked him over, did so with interest and respect, and with no apparent
recollection of ever having seen him in less acceptable circumstances.
No
one would have guessed, thought Philip, marching out into the sunshine of the
great court, that a working shoemaker and a landed lord rubbed shoulders there.
Well, he may have several manors in Cheshire and one in Shropshire, and be
distant kin of Earl Ranulf, and welcome at his court; but I have something I
can try to do for her, and I have a craft as honourable as his
noble blood, and if I succeed, whether she comes my way or no, she’ll never
forget me.
Brother
Cadfael came in at the gatehouse after some hours of fruitless prowling about
the fair and the riverside. Among hundreds of men busy about their own
concerns, the quest of a gashed sleeve, or one recently and hastily mended, is
much the same as hunting one straw in a completed stack. His trouble was that
he knew no other way to set about it. Moreover, the hot and settled weather
continued unbroken, and most of those about the streets and the stalls were in
their shirt-sleeves. There was a point there, he reflected. The glover’s dagger
had drawn blood, therefore it had reached the skin, but never a thread of white
or unbleached linen had it brought away with the sliver of brown cloth. If the
intruder had worn a shirt, he had worn it with sleeves rolled up, and it had
emerged unscathed, and could now cover his graze, and if the wound had needed
one, his bandage. Cadfael returned to tend the few matters needing him in his
workshop, and be ready for Vespers in good time, more because he was at a loss
how to proceed than for any other reason. An interlude of quiet and thought
might set his wits working again.
In
the great court his path towards the garden happened to cross Philip’s from the
guest-hall to the gatehouse. Deep in his own purposes, the young man almost
passed by unnoticing, but then he checked sharply, and turned to look back.
“Brother
Cadfael!” Cadfael swung to face him, startled out of just as deep a
preoccupation. “It is you!” said Philip. “It was you who spoke for me, after
Emma, in the sheriff’s court. And I knew you then for the one who came to help
me to my feet and out of trouble, when the sergeants broke up the fight on the
jetty. I never had the chance to thank you, brother, but I do thank you now.”
“I
fear the getting you out of trouble didn’t last the night,” said Cadfael
ruefully, looking this lanky youngster over with a sharp eye, and approving
what he saw. Whether it was time spent in self-examination in the gaol, or time
spent more salutarily still in thinking of Emma, Philip had done a great deal
of growing up in a very short time. “I’m glad to see you about again among us,
and none the worse.”
“I’m
not clear of the load yet,” said Philip. “The charge still
stands, even the charge of murder has not been withdrawn.”
“Then
it stands upon one leg only,” said Cadfael heartily, “and may fall at any
moment. Have you not heard there’s been another death?”
“So
they told me, and other violence, also. But surely this last bears no
connection with the rest? Until this, all was malice against Master Thomas.
This man was a stranger, and from Chester.” He laid a hand eagerly on Cadfael’s
sleeve. “Brother, spare me some minutes. I was not very clear in my wits that
night, now I need to know—all that I did, all that was done to me. I want to
trace every minute of an evening I can barely piece together for myself.”
“And
no wonder, after that knock on the head. Come and sit in the garden, it’s quiet
there.” He took the young man by the arm, and turned him towards the archway
through the pleached hedge, and sat him down on the very seat, had Philip known
it, where Emma and Ivo had sat together the previous day. “Now, what is it you
have in mind? I don’t wonder your memory’s hazy. That’s a good solid skull you
have on you, and a blessedly thick thatch of hair, or you’d have been carried
away on a board.”
Philip
scowled doubtfully into distance between the roses, hesitated how much to say,
how much to keep painfully to himself, caught Brother Cadfael’s comfortably
patient eye, and blurted: “I was coming now from Emma. I know she is in better
care than I could provide her, but I have found one thing, at least, that might
still be done for her. She wants and needs to see the man who killed her uncle
brought to justice. And I mean to find him.”
“So
does the sheriff, so do all his men,” said Cadfael, “but they’ve had little
success as yet.” But he did not say it in reproof or discouragement, but very
thoughtfully. “So, for that matter, do I, but I’ve done no better. One more
mind probing the matter could just as well be the mind that uncovers the truth.
Why not? But how will you set about it?”
“Why,
if I can prove—prove!—that I did not do it, I may also rub up against something
that will lead me to the man who did. At least I can make a start by trying to
follow what happened to me that night. Not only for my own defence,” he said
earnestly, “but because it seems to me that I gave cover to the
deed by what I had begun, and whoever did it may have had me and my quarrel in
mind, and been glad of the opening I made for him, knowing that when murder
came of the night, the first name that would spring to mind would be mine. So
whoever he may be, he must have marked my comings and goings, or I could be no
use to him. If I had been with ten friends throughout, I should have been out
of the reckoning, and the sheriff would have begun at once to look elsewhere.
But I was drunk, and sick, and took myself off alone to the river for a long
time, so much I do know. Long enough for it to have been true. And the murderer
knew it.”
“That
is sound thinking,” agreed Cadfael approvingly. “What, then, do you mean to
do?”
“Begin
from the riverside, where I got my clout on the head, and follow my own scent
until I get clear what’s very unclear now. I do remember what happened there,
as far as you hauling me out of the way of the sheriff’s men, and then being
hustled away between two others, but my legs were grass and my wits were
muddied, and I can’t for my life recall who they were. It’s a place to start,
if you knew them.”
“One
of them was Edric Flesher’s journeyman,” said Cadfael. “The other I’ve seen,
though I don’t know his name, a big, sturdy young fellow twice your width, with
tow-coloured hair…”
“John
Norreys!” Philip snapped his fingers. “I seem to recall him later in the night.
It’s enough, I’ll begin with them, and find out where they left me, and how—or
where I shook them off, for so I might have done, I was no fit company for
Christians.” He rose, draping his coat over one shoulder. “That whole evening
I’ll unravel, if I can.”
“Good
lad!” said Cadfael heartily. “I wish you success with all my heart. And if
you’re going to be threading your way through a few of the ale-houses of the
Foregate, as you seem to have done that night, keep your eyes open on my
behalf, will you? If you can find your murderer, you may very well also be
finding mine.” Carefully and emphatically he told him what to look for. “An arm
raising a flagon, or spread over a table, may show you what I’m seeking. The
left sleeve sliced open for a hand’s-length from the cuff of a russet-brown
coat, that was sewn with a lighter linen thread. It would be on
the underside of the arm. Or where arms are bared, look for the long scratch
the knife made when it slit the sleeve, or for the binding that might cover it
if it still bleeds. But if you find him, don’t challenge him or say word to
him, only bring me, if you can, his name and where to find him again.”
“This
was the glover’s slayer?” asked Philip, marking the details with grave nods of
his brown head. “You think they may be one and the same?”
“If
not the same, well known to each other, and both in the same conspiracy. Find
one, and we shall be very close to the other.”
“I’ll
keep a good watch, at any rate,” said Philip, and strode away purposefully
towards the gatehouse to begin his quest.
Chapter
Three
AFTERWARDS
BROTHER CADFAEL PONDERED many times over what followed, and wondered if prayer
can even have a retrospective effect upon events, as well as influencing the
future. What had happened had already happened, yet would he have found the
same situation if he had not gone straight into the church, when Philip left
him, with the passionate urge to commit to prayer the direction of his own
efforts, which seemed to him so barren? It was a most delicate and complex
theological problem, never as far as he knew, raised before, or if raised, no
theologian had ventured to write on the subject, probably for fear of being
accused of heresy.
Howbeit,
the urgent need came over him, since he had lost some offices during the day,
to recommit his own baffled endeavours to eyes that saw everything, and a power
that could open all doors. He chose the transept chapel from which Master
Thomas’s coffin had been carried that morning, resealed into sanctity by the
Mass sung for him. He had time, now, to kneel and wait, having busied himself
thus far in anxious efforts like a man struggling up a mountain, when he knew
there was a force that could make the mountain bow. He said a prayer for
patience and humility, and then laid that by, and prayed for Emma, for the soul
of Master Thomas, for the child that should be born to Aline and Hugh, for
young Philip and the parents who had recovered him, for all who suffered
injustice and wrong, and sometimes forgot they had a resource beyond the
sheriff.
Then
it was high time for him to rise from his knees, and go and see
to his primary duty here, whatever more violent matters clamoured for his
attention. He had supervised the herbarium and the manufactory derived from it,
for sixteen years, and his remedies were relied upon far beyond the abbey
walls; and though Brother Mark was the most devoted and uncomplaining of
helpers, it was unkind to leave him too long alone with such a responsibility.
Cadfael hastened towards his workshop with a lightened heart, having shifted
his worries to broader shoulders, just as Brother Mark would be happy to do on
his patron’s arrival.
The
heavy fragrance of the herb-garden lay over all the surrounding land, after so
many hours of sunshine and heat, like a particular benediction meant for the
senses, not the soul. Under the eaves of the workshop the dangling bunches of
dried leafage rustled and chirped like nests of singing birds in waves of
warmed air, where there was hardly any wind. The very timbers of the hut,
dressed with oil against cracking, breathed out scented warmth.
“I
finished making the balm for ulcers,” said Brother Mark, making dutiful report,
and happily aware of work well done. “And I have harvested all the poppy-heads
that were ripe, but I have not yet broken out the seed, I thought they should
dry in the sun a day or two yet.”
Cadfael
pressed one of the great heads between his fingers, and praised the judgment.
“And the angelica water for the infirmary?”
“Brother
Edmund sent for it half an hour ago. I had it ready. And I had a patient,” said
Brother Mark, busy stacking away on a shelf the small clay dishes he used for
sorting seeds, “earlier on, soon after dinner. A groom with a gashed arm. He
said he did it on a nail in the stables, reaching down harness, though it
looked like a knife-slash to me. It was none too clean, I cleansed it for him,
and dressed it with some of your goose-grass unguent. They were gambling with
dice up there in the loft last night, I daresay it came to a fight, and
somebody drew on him. He’d hardly admit to that.” Brother Mark dusted his
hands, and turned with a smile to report for the sum of his stewardship. “And
that’s all. A quiet afternoon, you need not have worried.” At sight of
Cadfael’s face his brows went up comically, and he asked in surprise: “Why are you staring like that? Nothing there, surely, to open your
eyes so wide.”
My
mouth, too, thought Cadfael, and shut it while he reflected on the strangeness
of human effort, and the sudden rewards that fell undeserved. Not undeserved,
perhaps, in this case, since this had fallen to Brother Mark, who modestly made
no demands at all.
“Which
arm was gashed?” he asked, further baffling Brother Mark, who naturally could
not imagine why that should matter.
“The
left. From here, the outer edge of the wrist, down the underside of the
forearm. Almost to the elbow. Why?”
“Had
he his coat on?”
“Not
when I saw him,” said Mark, smiling at the absurdity of this catechism. “But he
had it over his sound arm. Is that important?”
“More
than you know! But you shall know, later, I am not playing with you. Of what
colour was it? And did you see the sleeve that should cover that arm?”
“I
did. I offered to stitch it for him—I had little to do just then. But he said
he’d already cobbled it up, and so he had, very roughly, and with black thread.
I could have done better for him, the original was unbleached linen thread. The
colour? Reddish dun, much like most of the grooms and men-at-arms wear, but a
good cloth.”
“Did
you know the man? Not one of our own abbey servants?”
“No,
a guest’s man,” said Brother Mark, patient in his bewilderment. “Not a word to
his lord he said! It was one of Ivo Corbiиre’s grooms, the older one, the surly
fellow with the beard.”
Gilbert
Prestcote himself, unescorted and on foot, had taken an afternoon turn about
the fairground to view the public peace with his own eyes, and was in the great
court on his way back to the town, conferring with Hugh Beringar, when Cadfael
came in haste from the garden with his news. When the blunt recital was ended,
they looked at him and at each other with blank and wary faces.
“Corbiиre’s
within at this moment,” said Hugh, “and I gather from Aline has
been, more than an hour. Emma has him dazed, I doubt if he’s had any other
thought, these last two days. His men have been running loose much as they
pleased, provided the work was done. It could be the man.”
“His
lord has the right to be told,” said Prestcote. “Households grow lax when they
see the country torn, and their betters flouting law. There’s nothing been said
or done to alarm this fellow, I take it? He has no reason to make any move? And
surely he values the shelter of a name like Corbiиre.”
“No
word has been said to any but you,” said Cadfael. “And the man may be telling
the truth.”
“The
tatter of cloth,” said Hugh, “I have here on me. It should be possible to match
or discard.”
“Ask
Corbiиre to come,” said the sheriff.
Hugh
took the errand to himself, since Ivo was a guest in his rooms. While they
waited in braced silence, two of the abbey’s men-at-arms came in at the
gatehouse with unstrung longbows, and Turstan Fowler between them with his
arbalest, the three of them hot, happy and on excellent terms. On the last day
of the fair there were normally matches of many kinds, wrestling, shooting at
the butts along the river meadows, long-bow against cross-bow, though the
long-bow here was usually the short bow of Wales, drawn to the breast, not the
ear. The six-foot weapon was known, but a rarity. There were races, too, and
riding at the quintain on the castle tiltyard. Trade and play made good
companions, and especially good profits for the ale-houses, where the winners
very soon parted with all they had won, and the losers made up their losses.
These
three were wreathed together in argumentative amity, passing jokes along the
line; each seemed to be vaunting his own weapon. They had strolled no more than
halfway across the court when Hugh emerged from the guest-hall with Ivo beside
him. Ivo saw his archer crossing towards the stable-yard, and made him an
imperious signal to stay.
There
was no fault to be found with Turstan’s service since his disastrous fall from
grace on the first evening; motioned to hold aloof but remain at call, he
obeyed without question, and went on amusing himself with his rivals. He must
have done well at the butts for they seemed to be discussing his arbalest, and
he braced a foot in the metal stirrup and drew the string to
the alert for them, demonstrating that he lost little in speed against their
instant arms. No doubt the dispute between speed and range would go on as long
as both arms survived. Cadfael had handled both in his time, as well as the
eastern bow, the sword, and the lance of the mounted man. Even at this grave
moment he spared a long glance for the amicable wrangle going on a score of
paces away.
Then
Ivo was there among them, and shaken out of his easy confidence and grace. His
face was tense, his dark eyes large and wondering under the proudly raised
auburn brows and golden cap of curls. “You wanted me, sir? Hugh has not been specific,
but I took it this was urgent matter.”
“It
is a matter of a man of yours,” said the sheriff.
“My
men?” He shook a doubtful head, and gnawed his lip. “I know of nothing… Not
since Turstan drank himself stiff and stupid, and he’s been a penitent and
close to home ever since, and he did no harm then to any but himself, the dolt.
But they all have leave to go forth, once their work’s done. The fair is every
man’s treat. What’s amiss concerning my men?”
It
was left to the sheriff to tell him. Ivo paled visibly as he listened, his
ruddy sunburn sallowing. “Then my man is suspect of the killing I brushed arms
with—Good God, this very morning! That you may know, his name is Ewald, he
comes from a Cheshire manor, and his ancestry is northern, but he never showed
ill traits before, though he is a morose man, and makes few friends. I take
this hard. I brought him here.”
“You
may resolve it,” said Prestcote.
“So
I may.” His mouth tightened. “And will! About this hour I appointed to ride, my
horse has had little exercise here, and he’ll be bearing me hence tomorrow.
Ewald is the groom who takes care of him. He should be saddling him up in the
stables about this time. Shall I send for him? He’ll be expecting my summons.
No!” he interrupted his own offer, his brows contracting. “Not send for him, go
for him myself. If I sent Turstan, there, you might suspect that a servant
would stand by a servant, and give him due warning. Do you think he has not
been watching us, this short while? And do you think this colloquy has the look
of simple talk among us?”
Assuredly
it had not. Turstan, dangling his braced bow, had lost interest
in enlightening his rivals, and they, sensing that there was something afoot
that did not concern them, were drawing off and moving away, though with
discreet backward glances until they vanished into the grange court.
“I’ll
go myself,” said Ivo, and strode away towards the stable-yard at a great pace.
Turstan, hesitant, let him pass, since he got no word out of him in passing,
but then turned and hurried on his heels, anxiously questioning. For a little
way he followed, and they saw Ivo turn his head and snap some hasty orders at
his man. Chastened, Turstan drew back and returned towards the gatehouse, and
stood at a loss.
Some
minutes passed before they heard the sharp sound of hooves on the cobbles of
the stable-yard, brittle and lively. Then the tall, dusky bay, glowing like the
darkest of copper and restive for want of work, danced out of the yard with the
stocky, bearded groom holding his bridle, and Ivo stalking a yard or so ahead.
“Here
is my man Ewald,” he said shortly, and stood back, as Cadfael noted, between
them and the open gateway. Turstan Fowler drew nearer by discreet inches, and
silently, sharp eyes flicking from one face to another in quest of
understanding. Ewald stood holding the bridle, uneasy eyes narrowed upon
Prestcote’s unrevealing countenance. When the horse, eager for action, stirred
and tossed his head, the groom reached his left hand across to take the bridle,
and slid the right one up to the glossy neck, caressing by rote, but without
for an instant shifting his gaze.
“My
lord says your honour has something to ask me,” he said in a slow and grudging
voice.
Under
his left forearm the cobbled mend in his sleeve showed plainly, the cloth
puckered between large stitches, and the end of linen thread shivered in sun
and breeze like a gnat dancing.
“Take
off your coat,” ordered the sheriff. And as the man gaped in real or pretended
bewilderment: “No words! Do it!”
Slowly
Ewald slipped out of his coat, somewhat awkwardly because he was at pains to
retain his hold on the bridle. The horse had been promised air and exercise,
and was straining towards the gate, the way to what he desired. He had already
shifted the whole group, except Cadfael, who stood mute and apart, a little
nearer the gate.
“Turn back your sleeve. The left.”
He
gave one wild glance round, then lowered his head like a bull, set his jaw, and
did it, his right arm through the bridle as he turned up the coarse homespun to
the elbow. Brother Mark had bound up the gash in a strip of clean linen over
his dressing. The very cleanness of it glared.
“You
have hurt yourself, Ewald?” said Prestcote, quietly grim.
He
has his chance now, thought Cadfael, if he has quick enough wit, to change his
story and say outright that he took a knife-wound in a common brawl, and told
Brother Mark the lie about a nail simply to cover up the folly. But no, the man
did not stop to think; he had his story, and trusted it might still cover him.
Yet if Mark, on handling the wound, could tell a cut from a tear, so at the
merest glance could Gilbert Prescote.
“I
did it on a nail in the stables, my lord, reaching down harness.”
“And
tore your sleeve through at the same time? It was a jagged nail, Ewald. That’s
stout cloth you wear.” He turned abruptly to Hugh Beringar. “You have the slip
of cloth?”
Hugh
drew out from his pouch a folded piece of vellum, and opened it upon the
insignificant strip of fabric, that looked like nothing so much as a blade of
dried grass fretted into fibres and rotting at the edge. Only the wavy tendril
of linen thread showed what it really was, but that was enough. Ewald drew away
a pace, so sharply that the horse backed off some yards towards the gateway, and
the groom turned and took both hands to hold and soothe the beast. Ivo had to
spring hurriedly backwards to avoid the dancing hooves.
“Hand
here your coat,” ordered Prestcote, when the bay was appeased again, and
willing to stand, though reluctantly.
The
groom looked from the tiny thing he had recognised to the sheriff’s composed
but unrelenting face, hesitated only a moment, and then did as he was bid, to
violent effect. He swung back his arm and flung the heavy cotte into their
faces, and with a leap was over the bay’s back and into the saddle. Both heels
drove into the glossy sides, and a great shout above the pricked ears sent the
horse surging like a flung lance for the gateway.
There
was no one between but Ivo. The groom drove the bay straight at
him, headlong. The young man leaped aside, but made a tigerish spring to grasp
at the bridle as the horse hurtled by, and actually got a hold on it and was
dragged for a moment, until the groom kicked out at him viciously, breaking the
tenuous hold and hurling Ivo out of the way, to fall heavily and roll under the
feet of the sheriff and Hugh as they launched themselves after the fugitive.
Out at the gateway and round to the right into the Foregate went Ewald, at a
frantic gallop, and there was no one mounted and ready to pursue, and for once
the sheriff was without escort or archers.
But
Ivo Corbiиre was not. Turstan Fowler had rushed to help him to his feet, but
Ivo waved him past, out into the Foregate, and heaving himself breathlessly
from the ground, with grazed and furious face ran limping after. The little
group of them stood in the middle of the highroad, helplessly watching the bay
and his rider recede into distance, and unable to follow. He had killed, and he
would get clear away, and once some miles from Shrewsbury, he could disappear
into forest and lie safe as a fox in its lair.
In
a voice half-choked with rage, Ivo cried: “Fetch him down!”
Turstan’s
arbalest was still braced and ready, and Turstan was used to jumping to his
command. The quarrel was out of his belt, fitted and loosed, in an instant, the
thrum and vibration of its flight made heads turn and duck and women shriek
along the Foregate.
Ewald,
stooped low over the horse’s neck, suddenly jerked violently and reared up with
head flung high. His hands slackened from the reins and his arms swung lax on
either side. He seemed to hang for a moment suspended in air, and then swung
heavily sidewise, and heeled slowly out of the saddle. The bay, startled and
shocked, ran on wildly, scattering the frightened vendors and buyers on both
sides, but his flight was uncertain now, and confused by this sudden lightness.
He would not go far. Someone would halt and soothe him, and lead him back.
As for the groom Ewald, he was dead before ever the
first of the appalled stallholders reached him, dead, probably, before ever he
struck the ground.
Chapter
Four
“HE WAS MY VILLEIN,” asserted Ivo strenuously, in
the room in the gatehouse where they had brought and laid the body, “and I
enjoy the power of the high justice over my own, and this one had forfeited
life. I need make no defence, for myself or my archer, who did nothing more
than obey my order. We have all seen, now, that this fellow’s wound is no tear
from a nail, but the stroke of a dagger, and the fret you took from the
glover’s blade matches this sleeve past question. Is there doubt in any mind
that this was a murderer?”
There
was none. Cadfael was there with them in the room, at Hugh’s instance, and he
had no doubts at all. This was the man Euan of Shotwick had marked, before he
himself died. Moreover, some of Euan of Shotwick’s goods and money had been
found among the sparse belongings Ewald had left behind him; his saddle-roll
held a pouch of fine leather full of coins, and two pairs of gloves made for
the hands of girls, presents, perhaps, for wife or sister. This was certainly a
murderer. Turstan, who had shot him down, obviously did not consider himself
anything of the kind, any more than one of Prestcote’s archers would have done,
had he been given the order to shoot. Turstan had taken the whole affair
stolidly, as none of his business apart from his duty to his lord, and gone
away to his evening meal with an equable appetite.
“I
brought him here,” said Ivo bitterly, wiping smears of blood from his grazed
cheek. “It is my honour he has offended, as well as the law of
the land. I had a right to avenge myself.”
“No
need to labour it,” said Prestcote shortly. “The shire has been saved a trial
and a hanging, which is to the good, and I don’t know but the wretch himself
might prefer this way out. It was a doughty shot, and that’s a valuable man of
yours. I never thought it could be done so accurately at that distance.”
Ivo
shrugged. “I knew Turstan’s quality, or I would not have said what I did, to
risk either my horse or any of the hundreds about their harmless business in
the Foregate. I don’t know that I expected a death…”
“There’s
only one cause for regret,” said the sheriff. “If he had accomplices, he can
never now be made to name them. And you say, Beringar, that there were probably
two?”
“You’re
satisfied, I hope,” said Ivo, “that neither Turstan nor my young groom Arald
had any part with him in these thefts?”
Both
had been questioned, he had insisted on that. Turstan had been a model of virtue
since his one lapse, and the youngster was a fresh-faced country youth, and
both had made friends among the other servants and were well liked. Ewald had
been morose and taciturn, and kept himself apart, and the revelation of his
villainy did not greatly surprise his fellows.
“There’s
still the matter of the other offences. What do you think? Was it this man in
all of them?”
“I
cannot get it out of my mind,” said Hugh slowly, “that Master Thomas’s death
was the work of one man only. And without reason or proof, by mere pricking of
thumbs, I do not believe it was this man. For the rest—I don’t know! Two, the
merchant’s watchman said, but I am not sure he may not be increasing the odds
to excuse his own want of valour—or his very good sense, however you look at
it. Only one, surely, would enter the barge in full daylight, no doubt briskly,
as if he had an errand there, something to fetch or something to bestow. Where
there were two, this must surely be one of them. Who the other was, we are
still in the dark.”
After
Compline Cadfael went to report to Abbot Radulfus all that had happened. The
sheriff had already paid the necessary courtesy visit to inform
the abbot, but for all that Radulfus would expect his own accredited observer
to bring another viewpoint, one more concerned with the repute and the
standards of a Benedictine house. In an order which held moderation in all
things to be the ground of blessing, immoderate things were happening.
Radulfus
listened in disciplined silence to all, and there was no telling from his face
whether he deplored or approved such summary justice.
“Violence
can never be anything but ugly,” he said thoughtfully, “but we live in a world
as ugly and violent as it is beautiful and good. Two things above all concern
me, and one of them may seem to you, brother, a trivial matter. This death, the
shedding of this blood, took place outside our walls. For that I am grateful.
You have lived both within and without, what must be accepted and borne is the
same to you, within or without. But many here lack your knowledge, and for
them, and for the peace we strive to preserve here as refuge for others beside
ourselves, the sanctity of this place is better unspotted. And the second thing
will matter as deeply to you as to me: Was this man guilty? Is it certain he
himself had killed?”
“It
is certain,” said Brother Cadfael, choosing his words with care, “that he had
been concerned in murder, most likely with at least one other man.”
“Then
harsh though it may be, this was justice.” He caught the heaviness of Cadfael’s
silence, and looked up sharply. “You are not satisfied?”
“That
the man took part in murder, yes, I am satisfied. The proofs are clear. But
what is justice? If there were two, and one bears all, and the other goes free,
is that justice? I am certain in my soul that there is more, not yet known.”
“And
tomorrow all these people will depart about their own affairs, to their own
homes and shops, wherever they may be. The guilty and the innocent alike. That
cannot be the will of God,” said the abbot, and brooded a while in silence.
“Nevertheless, it may be God’s will that it should be taken out of our hands.
Continue your vigil, brother, through the morrow. After that others, elsewhere,
must take up the burden.”
Brother Mark sat on the edge of his cot,
in his cell in the dortoire, with his elbows on his knees and his head in his
hands, and grieved. From a child he had lived a hard life, privation, brutality
and pain were all known to him as close companions until he came into this
retreat, at first unwilling. But death was too monstrous and too dark for him,
coming thus instant in terror, and without the possibility of grace. To live
misused, ill-fed, without respite from labour, was still life, with a sky above
it, and trees and flowers and birds around it, colour and season and beauty.
Life, even so lived, was a friend. Death was a stranger.
“Child,
it is with us always,” said Cadfael, patient beside him. “Last summer
ninety-five men died here in the town, none of whom had done murder. For
choosing the wrong side, they died. It falls upon blameless women in war, even
in peace at the hands of evil men. It falls upon children who never did harm to
any, upon old men, who in their lives have done good to many, and yet are
brutally and senselessly slain. Never let it shake your faith that there is a
balance hereafter. What you see is only a broken piece from a perfect whole.”
“I
know,” said Brother Mark between his fingers, loyal but uncomforted. “But to be
cut off without trial…”
“So
were the ninety-four last year,” said Cadfael gently, “and the ninety-fifth was
murdered. Such justice as we see is also but a broken shred. But it is our duty
to preserve what we may, and fit together such fragments as we find, and take
the rest on trust.”
“And
unshriven!” cried Brother Mark.
“So
went his victim also. And he had neither robbed nor killed, or if he had, only
God knows of it. There has many a man gone through that gate without a
safe-conduct, who will reach heaven ahead of some who were escorted through
with absolution and ceremony, and had their affairs in order. Kings and princes
of the church may find shepherds and serfs preferred before them, and some who
claim they have done great good may have to give place to poor wretches who have
done wrong and acknowledge it, and have tried to make amends.”
Brother
Mark sat listening, and at least began to hear. Humbly he recognised and
admitted the real heart of his grievance. “I had his arm between my hands, I
saw him wince when I cleansed his wound, and I felt his pain.
It was only a small pain, but I felt it. I was glad to help him, it was
pleasure to anoint the cut with balm, and wrap it clean, and know he was eased.
And now he’s dead, with a cross-bow bolt through him…” Briefly and angrily, Brother
Mark brushed away tears, and uncovered his accusing face. “What is the use of
mending a man, if he’s to be broken within a few hours, past mending?”
“We
were speaking of souls,” said Cadfael mildly, “not mere bodies, and who knows
but your touch with ointment and linen may have mended to better effect the one
that lasts the longer? There’s no arrow cleaves the soul but there may be balm
for it.”
Chapter
Five
HEAD-DOWN
ON HIS OWN TRACES, Philip had run his friend John Norreys to earth at last at the
butts by the riverside, where the budding archers of the town practised, and
together they hunted out Edric Flesher’s young journeyman from the yard behind
his master’s shop. Philip’s odyssey on the eve of the fair had begun with these
two, who had had him bundled into their arms by Brother Cadfael when the
sheriff’s men descended on the Gaye.
By
their own account, they had hauled him away through the orchards and the narrow
lanes behind the Foregate, avoiding the highroads, and sat him down in the first
booth that sold drink, to recover his addled wits. And very ungrateful they had
found him, as soon as the shock of his blow on the head began to pass, and his
legs were less shaky under him.
Furious
with himself, he had turned his ill-temper on them, snarled at them, said John
tolerantly, that he was capable of looking after himself, and they had better
go and warn some of the other stalwarts who had rushed on along the Foregate
overturning stalls and scattering goods, before the officers reached them. Which
they had taken good-humouredly enough, knowing his head was aching villainously
by that time, and had followed him for a while at a discreet distance as he
blundered away through the fair-ground, until he turned on them again and
ordered them away. They had stood to watch him, and then shrugged and left him
to his own devices, since he would have none of them.
“You had your legs again,” said John
reasonably, “and since you wouldn’t let us do anything for you, we thought best
to let you go your own way. Let alone, you wouldn’t go far, but if we followed,
you might do who knows what, out of contrariness.”
“There
was another fellow who looked after you a thought anxiously,” said the
butcher’s man, thinking back, “when we left that booth with you. Came out after
us, and set off the same way you took. He thought you were already helpless
drunk, I fancy, and might need helping home.”
“That
was kind in him,” said Philip, stiffening indignantly, and meaning that it was
damned officious of whoever it was. “That would be what hour? Not yet eight?”
“Barely.
I did hear the bell for Compline shortly after, over the wall. Curious how it
carries over all the bustle between.” In the upper air, so it would; people in
the Foregate regulated their day by the office bells.
“Who
was this who followed me? Did you know him?”
They
looked at each other and hoisted indifferent shoulders; among the thousands at
a great fair the local people are lost. “Never seen him before. Not a
Shrewsbury man. He may not have been following, to call it that, at all, just
heading the same way.”
They
told him exactly where he had left them, and the direction he had taken. Philip
made his way purposefully to the spot indicated, but in that busy concourse,
spreading along the Foregate and filling every open space beyond, he was still
without a map. All he knew was that before nine, according to the witness in
the sheriff’s court, he had been very drunk and still drinking in Wat’s tavern,
and blurting out hatred and grievance and the intent of vengeance against
Master Thomas of Bristol. The interval it was hard to fill. Perhaps he had made
his way there at once, and been well advanced in drink before the stranger
noted his threats.
Philip
gritted his teeth and set off along the Foregate, so intent on his own quest
that he had no ears for anything else, and missed the news that was being
busily conveyed back and forth through the fair, with imaginative variations
and considerable embellishments before it reached the far corner of the
horse-fair. It was news more than two hours old by then, but Philip had heard
no word of it, his mind was on his own problem. All round him
stalls were being stripped down to trestle and board, and rented booths being
locked up, and the keys delivered to abbey stewards. Business was almost put
away, but the evening was not yet outworn, there would be pleasure after
business.
Walter
Renold’s inn lay at the far corner of the horse-fair, not on the London
highroad, but on the quieter road that bore away north-eastwards. It was handy
for the country people who brought goods to market, and at this hour it was
full. It went against the grain with Philip even to order a pot of ale for
himself while he was on this desperate quest, but alehouses live by sales, and
at least he was so formidably sober now that he could afford the indulgence.
The potboy who brought him his drink was hardly more than a child, and he did
not remember the tow hair and pock-marked face. He waited to speak with Wat
himself, when there was a brief interlude of calm.
“I
heard they’d let you go free,” said Wat, spreading brawny arms along the table
opposite him. “I’m glad of it. I never thought you’d do harm, and so I told
them where they asked. When was it they loosed you?”
“A
while before noon.” Hugh Beringar had said he should eat his dinner at home,
and so he had, though at a later hour than usual.
“So
nobody could point a finger at you over the latest ill-doings. Such a fair as
we’ve had! Good weather and good sales, and good attendance all round, even good
behaviour,” said Wat weightily, considering the whole range of his experience
of fairs. “And yet two merchants murdered, the second of them a northern man
found only this morning broken-necked in his stall. You’ll have heard about
that? When did we ever have such happenings! It’s not the lads of Shrewsbury, I
said when they asked me, that get up to such villainies, you look among the
incomers from other parts. We’re decent folk herebouts!”
“Yes,
I know of that,” said Philip. “But it’s not that death they pointed at me, it’s
the first, the Bristol merchant…” North and south had met here, he reflected,
fatally for both. Now why should that be? Both the victims strangers from far
distances, where some born locally were as well worth plundering.
“This one they could hardly charge to
your account,” said Wat, grinning broadly, “even if you’d been at large so
early. It’s all past and gone. You hadn’t heard? There was a grand to-do along
the Foregate, a few hours ago. The murderer’s found out red-handed, and made a
break for his freedom on his lord’s horse, and kicked his lord into the dust on
the way. And he’s shot down dead as a storm-struck tree, at his lord’s orders.
A master’s shot, they say. The glover’s soon avenged. And you’d not heard of
it?”
“Not
a word! The last I heard they were looking for a man who might have a slit
sleeve to show, and a gash in his arm. When was this, then?” It seemed that
Brother Cadfael must have found his man, unaided, after all.
“Not
an hour before Vespers it must have been. All I heard was the shouting at the
abbey end of the Foregate. But they tell me the sheriff himself was there.”
About
five in the afternoon, perhaps less than an hour after Philip had left Brother
Cadfael and gone back into the town to look for John Norreys. A short hunt that
had been, no need any longer for him to cast a narrowed eye at men’s sleeves
wherever he went. “And it’s certain they got the right man?”
“Certain!
The merchant had marked him, and they say there were goods and money from the
glover’s stall found in his pack. Some groom called Ewald, I heard…”
A
mere sneak-thief, then, who had gone too far. Nothing there to bear on Philip’s
own quest. He was free to concentrate his mind once again, and even more
intently, upon his own pilgrimage. It had begun as a penitential exercise, but
was gradually abandoning that aspect. Certainly he had made a fool of himself,
but the original impulse on which he had acted, and roused others to act, had
not been so foolish, after all, and was nothing to be ashamed of. Only when it
collapsed about him in ruins had he thrown good sense to the winds, and
indulged his misery like a sulking child.
“Now
if only I could find out as certainly who it was did for Master Thomas! It was
that night there was grave matter urged against me, and I will own I laid
myself open. It’s all very well being let out on my father’s bail, but no one
has yet said I’m clear of the charge. The rest I’ll pay my score for, but I
want to prove I never did the merchant any violence. I know I was here that
night—the eve of the fair, you’ll remember? From what hour?
I’ve no recollection of times, myself. According to his men, Master Thomas was
alive until a third of the hour past nine.”
“Oh,
you were here, no question!” Wat could not help grinning at the memory. “There
was noise enough, we were busy, but you made yourself heard! No offence, lad,
who hasn’t made a fool of himself in his cups from time to time? It can’t have
been more than a quarter after eight when you came in, and I doubt you’d had
much, up to then.”
Only
a quarter after the hour of Compline—then he must have come straight here after
shaking off his friends. Not straight, perhaps that was an inappropriate word,
but weavingly and unsteadily, though at that rate not calling anywhere else on
the way. It was a natural thing to do, to hurry clean through the thick of the
fair, and put as much ground as possible between himself and his solicitous
companions before calling a halt.
“I
tell you what, boy,” said the expert kindly, “if you’d taken it slowly you’d
have been sober enough. But you had to rush the matter. I doubt I’ve ever seen
a fellow put so much down in the time, no wonder your belly turned against it.”
It
was not cheering listening, but Philip swallowed it doggedly. Evidently he had
been as foolish as he had been dreading, and the archer’s account of his
behaviour had not been at all exaggerated.
“And
was I yelling vengeance against the man who struck me? That’s what they said of
me.”
“Well,
now, I wouldn’t go so far as that, and yet it’s not too far off the mark,
either. Let’s say you were not greatly loving him, and no wonder, we could all
see the dunt he’d given you. Arrogant and greedy you called him, and a few
other things I don’t recall, and mark your words, you kept telling us, pride
like his was due for a disastrous fall, and soon. That must be what they had in
mind who witnessed against you. I never heard word of any going to this hearing
from my tavern, not until afterwards. Who were they that testified, then?”
“It
was one man,” said Philip. “Not that I can blame him, it seems he told no
lies—indeed, I never thought he had, I know I was the world’s fool that night.”
“Why,
bless you, lad, with a cracked head a man’s liable to act like one cracked, he
has the right. But who’s this one man? What with all the
incomers at the fair, I had more strangers than known customers of these
evenings.”
“It
was a man attending one of the abbey guests,” said Philip. “Turstan Fowler,
they said his name was. He said he was here drinking, and went from ale to
wine, and then to strong liquor—it seems he ended up as drunk as I was myself,
they took him up helpless later, and slung him into a cell at the abbey
overnight. A well-set-up fellow, but slouching and unkempt when I saw him in the
court. About thirty-five years old, at a guess, sunburned, a bush of brown
hair…”
Wat
shook his head, pondering the description. “I don’t know him, not by that,
though I’ve got a rare memory for faces. An ale-house keeper has to have. Ah,
well, if he’s a stranger he’d no call to give false witness, I suppose he was
but honest, and put the worst meaning on your bletherings for want of knowing
you.”
“What
time was it when I left here?” Philip winced ever at the recollection of the
departure, sudden and desperate, with churning stomach and swimming head, and
both hands clamped hard over his grimly locked jaw. Barely time to weave a
frantic way across the road and into the edge of the copse beyond, where he had
heaved his heart out, and then blundered some distance further in cover towards
the orchards of the Gaye, and collapsed shivering and retching into the grass,
to pass into a sodden sleep. He had not dragged himself out of it until the
small hours.
“Why,
reckoning from Compline, I’d say an hour had passed, it would be about nine of
the clock.”
Thomas
of Bristol had set out from his booth to return to his barge only a quarter of
an hour or so later. And someone, someone unknown, had intercepted him on the
way, dagger in hand. No wonder the law had looked so narrowly at Philip
Corviser, who had reason to resent and hate, and had blundered out of sight and
sound of other men around that time, after venting his grievance aloud for all
to hear.
Wat
rose to go and cope with the custom that was overwhelming his two potboys, and
Philip sat brooding with his chin on his fist. Most of the flares must be out
by now along the Foregate, most of the stalls packed up and ready for
departure. Another balmy summer night, heaven dropping fat blessings on the
abbey receipts and the profits of trade, after a lost summer of
warfare and a winter of uncertainty. And the town walls still unrepaired, and
the streets still broken!
The
door stood propped wide on the warm, luminous twilight, and the traffic in and
out was brisk. Youngsters came with jugs and pitchers to fetch for their
elders, maids tripped in for a measure of wine for their masters, labourers and
abbey servants wandered in to slake their thirst between spells of work. Saint
Peter’s Fair was drawing to its contented and successful close.
Through
the open door came a fresh-faced youngster in a fine leather jerkin, and on his
heels a sturdy, brown-faced man at least fifteen years older, in the same good
livery. It took Philip a long moment of staring to recognise Turstan Fowler,
sober, well-behaved, in good odour with his lord and all the world. Still
longer to cause him to reflect afresh how he himself must have looked, drunk,
if the difference could stretch so far. He watched the little potboy serve
them. Wat was busy with others, and the room was full. The end of the fair was
always a busy time. Another day, and these same hours would hang heavy and
dark.
Philip
never quite knew why he turned his head away, and hoisted a wide shoulder
between himself and Ivo Corbiиre’s men. He had nothing against either of them,
but he did not want to be recognised and condoled with, or congratulated on his
release, or in any way, sympathetic or not, have public attention called to
him. He kept his shoulder hunched between, and was glad to have the room so
full of people, and most of them strangers.
“Fairs
are good business,” remarked Wat, returning to his place and plumping down on
the bench with a sigh of pleasure, “but I wish we could spread them round the
rest of the year. My feet are growing no younger, and I’ve hardly been off them
an hour in all, the last three days. What was it we were saying?”
“I
was trying to describe for you the fellow who reported me as threatening
revenge,” said Philip. “Cast a look over yonder now, and you’ll see the very
man. The two in leather who came in together—the elder of the two.”
Wat
let his sharp eyes rove, and surveyed Turstan Fowler with apparent disinterest,
but very shrewdly. “Slouching and hangdog, was he? Smart as a new coat now.”
His gaze returned to Philip’s face. “That’s the man? I remember
him well enough. I seldom forget a man’s face, but his name and condition I’ve
no way of knowing.”
“He
can’t have looked quite so trim that evening,” said Philip, “seeing he owned to
being well soused. He was lost to the world two hours later, by his own tale.”
“And
he said he got it all here?” Wat’s eyes had narrowed thoughtfully.
“So
he said. ‘Where I got my skinful’ is what he said.”
“Well,
let me tell you something interesting, friend…” Wat leaned confidentially
across the table. “Now I see him, I know how I saw him the last time, for if
you’ll credit me, he looked much as he looks now. And what’s more, now I know
of the connection he had with you and your affairs, I can recall small things that
happened that night, things I never gave a thought to before, and neither would
you have done. He was in here twice that evening, or rather, he was in the
doorway once, before he came over the threshold later. In that doorway he
stood, and looked round him, a matter of ten minutes or so after you came in. I
made nothing of it that he gave you a measuring sort of look, for well he
might, you were in full cry then. But look at you he did, and weighed you up,
and went away again. And the next we saw of him, it might be half an hour
later, he came in and bought a measure of ale, and a big flask of strong geneva
liquor, and sat supping his ale quietly, and eyeing you from time to time—as
again well he might, it was about then you were greenish and going suspicious
quiet. But do you know when he drank up and left, Philip, lad? The minute after
you made for the door in a hurry. And his flask under his arm, unopened. Drunk?
Him? He was stone cold sober when he went out of here.”
“But
he took the juniper liquor with him,” pointed out Philip, reasonably. “He was
drunk enough two hours later, there were several of them to swear to that. They
had to carry him back to the abbey on a trestle-board.”
“And
how much of the juniper spirit did they find remaining? Did they ever mention
that? Did they find the flask at all?”
“I
never heard mention of it,” owned Philip, startled and doubtful. “Brother
Cadfael was there, I could ask him. But why?”
Wat laid a kindly if patronising hand on
his shoulder. “Lad, it’s easy to see you never went beyond wine or ale, and if
you’ll heed me you’ll leave the strong stuff to strong stomachs. I said a large
flask, and large I meant. There was a quart of geneva spirits in that bottle!
If any man drank that dry in two hours, it wouldn’t be dead drunk they’d be
carrying him away, it would be plain dead. Or if he did live to tell of it, it
wouldn’t be the next day, nor for several after. Sober as the sheriff himself
was that fellow when he went out of here on your heels, and why he should want
to lie about it is more than I can say, but lie about it he did, it seems. Now
you tell me why a man should go to some pains to convict himself of a debauch
he never even had, and get himself slung into a cell for recompense. Unless,”
added Wat, considering the problem with lively interest, “it was to get himself
out of something worse.”
The
elder potboy, a freckled lad born and bred in the Foregate, came by with a
cluster of empties in either hand, and paused to nudge Wat in the ribs with an
elbow, and lean to his ear.
“Do
you know who you have there, master?” A jerk of his head indicated the two in
leather jerkins. “The young one’s fellow-groom to the one that got a bolt
through him along the Foregate a while ago. And the other—Will Wharton just
told me, and he was close by and saw it all!—that’s the fellow who loosed the
bolt! His comrade in the same price, mark! Should he be here and in such
spirits the same night? That’s a stronger stomach than mine. ‘Fetch him down!’
says the master, and down the fellow fetches him, sharp and cool. You’d have
thought his hand would have shook too much to get near the target, but
no!—thump between the shoulders and through to the breast, so Will says. And
that’s the very man that did it, supping ale like any Christian.”
They
were both of them staring at him open-mouthed, and turned away only to stare
again, briefly and intently, at Turstan Fowler sitting at ease with his
tankard, sturdy legs splayed under the table. It had never even occurred to
Philip to ask in whose service the dead malefactor was employed, and perhaps
Wat would not have known the name if he had asked. He would have mentioned it
else.
“That’s
the man? You’re sure?” pressed Philip.
“Will Wharton is sure, and he helped to
pick up the poor devil who was killed.”
“Turstan
Fowler? The falconer to Ivo Corbiиre? And Corbiиre ordered him to shoot?”
“The
name I don’t know, for neither did Will. Some young lord at the abbey
guest-hall. Very handsome sprig, yellow-haired, Will says. Though it’s no great
blame to him for wanting a murderer and thief stopped in his tracks, granted,
and any road, the man had just stolen his horse, and kicked him off into the
dust when he tried to halt him. And I suppose when a lord orders, his man had
better jump to obey. Still, it’s a grim thing to work side by side with a man
maybe months and years, and then to be told, strike him dead! And to do it!”
And the potboy rolled up his eyes and loosed a long, soft whistle, and passed
on with his handful of tankards, leaving them so sunk in reconsideration that
neither of them had anything to say.
But
there could not be anything in it of significance for him, surely? Philip
looked back briefly as he left the inn, and Turstan Fowler and the young groom
were sitting tranquilly with their ale, talking cheerfully with half a dozen
other sober drinkers around them. They had not noticed him, or if they had, had
not recognised him, and neither of them seemed to have anything of grave moment
on his mind. Strange, though, how this same man seemed to be entangled in every
untoward episode, never at the centre of things yet always somewhere in view.
As
for the matter of the flask of juniper spirits, what did it really signify? The
man had been picked up too drunk to talk, no one had looked round for his
bottle, it might well have been left lying, still more than half-full, if the
stuff was as potent as Wat said, and some scavenger by night might have picked
it up and rejoiced in his luck. There were a dozen ways of accounting for the
circumstances. And yet it was strange. Why should he have said he was drunk
before he left Wat’s inn, if he had really left it cold sober? More to the
point, why should he have left so promptly on Philip’s heels? Yet Wat was a
good observer.
The
tiny discrepancies stuck like barbs in Philip’s mind. It was far too late to
trouble anyone else tonight, Compline was long over, the monks
of Shrewsbury, their guests, their servants, would all be in their beds or
preparing to go there, except for the few lay stewards who had almost completed
their labours, and would be glad enough to make a modestly festive night of it.
Moreover, his parents would be vexed that he had abandoned them all the day and
he could expect irate demands for explanations at home. He had better make his
way back.
All
the same, he crossed the road and made for the copse, as on the night he was
repeating, and found some faint signs of his wallow still visible, dried into
the trampled grass. Then back towards the river, avoiding the streets, keeping
to the cover of woodland, and there was the sheltered hollow where he had slept
off the worst of his orgy, before gathering himself up stiffly and hobbling
back to the town. There was enough lambent starlight to see his way, and show
him the scuffled and flattened grasses.
But
no, this was not the place! Here there was a faint, trodden path, and he had
certainly moved much deeper into the bushes and trees, down-river, hiding even
from the night. This glade looked very like the other, but it was not the same.
Yet someone or something, large as a man, had lain here, and not peacefully.
Surely more than one pair of feet had ploughed the turf. A pair of opportunist
lovers, enjoying one of the traditional pleasures of the fair? Or another kind
of struggle? No, hardly a struggle, though something had been dragged downhill
towards the river, which was just perceptible as a gleam between the trees.
There was a patch of bare soil, dry and pale as clay, between the spreading
roots of the birch tree against which he leaned, and ribbons of dropped bark
littered it. The largest of them showed curiously dark instead of silvery, like
the rest. He stooped and picked it up, and his fingertips recoiled from the
black, encrusted stain. In the grass, if he searched by daylight, there might
well be other such blots.
In
looking for the place of his own humiliation, he had found something very
different, the place where Master Thomas had been killed. And below, from that
spur of grass standing well above the undermined bank, his body had been thrown
into the river.
After
the Fair
Chapter One
BROTHER
CADFAEL CAME OUT FROM PRIME, next morning, to find Philip hovering anxiously in
the great court, fidgeting from one foot to the other as if the ground under
him burned, and so intent and grim of face that there was no doubting the
urgency of what he had to impart. At sight of Cadfael he came bounding
alongside to lay a hand on his sleeve.
“Will
you come with me to Hugh Beringar? You know him, he’ll listen if you vouch for
me. I didn’t know if he’d be stirring this early, so I waited for you. I think
I’ve found the place where Master Thomas was killed.”
It
was certainly not what he had been looking for, and came as a total irrelevance
for a moment to Brother Cadfael, who checked and blinked at an announcement so
unexpected. “You’ve done what!”
“It’s
true, I swear it! It was so late last night, I couldn’t pester anyone with it
then, and I’ve not been there by daylight—but someone bled there—someone was
dragged down to the water—“
“Come!”
said Cadfael, recovering. “We’ll go together.” And he set out at a brisk trot
for the guest-hall, Philip’s long strides keeping easy pace with him. “If
you’re right… He’ll want you to show the place. Can you find it again with
certainty?”
“I
can, you’ll see why.”
Hugh
came out to them yawning, in shirt and hose, but wide awake and shaven all the
same. “Speak low!” he said, finger on lip, and softly closed
the door of his rooms behind him. “The women are still asleep. Now, what is it?
I know better than to turn away anyone who comes with Brother Cadfael’s
warranty.”
Philip
told only what was needful. For his own personal need there would be time
later. What mattered now was the glade in the edge of the woods, beyond the
orchards of the Gaye.
“I
was following my own scent, last night, and I made too short a cast at the way
I took down to the river. I came on a place in the trees there—I can find it
again—where some heavy thing had lain, and been dragged down to the water. The
grass is flattened where he lay, and combed downhill, where he was dragged, and
for all the three days between, it still shows the traces. I think there are
also spots of blood.”
“The
merchant of Bristol?” asked Hugh, after an instant of startled silence.
“I
think so. Daylight may show for certain.”
Hugh
turned to drain his morning ale in purposeful haste, and demolish the end of
oatcake he had been eating. “You slept at home? In the town?” He was brushing
his black crest hastily as he talked, tying the laces of his shirt and reaching
for his cotte. “And came to me rather than to the sheriff! Well, no harm, we’re
nearer than he, it will save time.” Sword and sword-belt he left lying, and
thrust his feet into his shoes. “Cadfael, you’ll be missing breakfast, take
these cakes with you, and drink something now, while you may. And you, friend,
have you eaten?”
“No
escort?” said Cadfael.
“To
what end? Your eyes and mine are all we require here, and the fewer great boots
stamping about the sward, the better. Come, before Aline wakes, she has a bird’s
hearing, and I’d rather have her rest. Now, Philip, lead! You’re on your home
turf, take us the quickest way.”
Aline
and Emma were at breakfast, resigned to Hugh’s sudden and silent departures,
when Ivo came asking admittance. Punctilious as always, he asked for Hugh.
“But
as that husband of mine has already gone forth somewhere on official business,”
said Aline, amused, “and as it’s certainly you he really wants to see, shall we
let him in? I felt sure he would not go away without paying his
respects to you yet again. He has probably been exercising his wits to find a
way of ensuring it shan’t be the last time, either. He was hardly at his best
last night, and no wonder, after so many shocks, and grazed and bruised from
his fall.”
Emma
said nothing, but her colour rose agreeably. She had risen from her bed with a
sense of entering a life entirely new, and more her own to determine than ever
it had been before. By this hour Master Thomas’s barge must be well down the
Severn on its way home. She was relieved of the necessity of avoiding Roger
Dod’s grievous attentions, and eased of the sense of guilt she felt in doing
him what was probably the great wrong of fearing and distrusting his intentions
towards her. Her belongings were neatly packed for travelling, in a pair of
saddle-bags bought at the fair, for whatever was to become of her now, she
would be leaving the abbey today. If no immediate escort offered for the south,
she would go home with Aline, to await whatever arrangements Hugh could make for
her, and in default of any other trustworthy provision, he himself had promised
her his safe-conduct home to Bristol.
The
bustle of departure filled the stable-yard and the great court, and half the
rooms in the guest-hall had already been vacated. No doubt Turstan Fowler and
the young groom were also assembling their lord’s purchases and effects, and
saddling up the bay horse, returned to the abbey by an enterprising errand-boy
who had been lavishly rewarded, and their own shaggy ponies. Two of them! The third
would be on a leading rein.
Emma
felt cold when she remembered what had befallen the rider of the third pony,
and the things he had done. So sudden a death filled her with horror. But the
man had done murder, and had not scrupled to ride down his own lord when he was
unmasked. It was unreasonable to blame Ivo for what had happened, even if his
order had not been given in an understandable rage at the misuse of his
patronage and the assault upon his own person. Indeed, Emma had been touched,
the previous evening, when the very vehemence with which Ivo had defended his
action had so clearly betrayed his own doubts and regrets. It had ended in her
offering reassurance and comfort. It was a terrible thing in itself, she thought, to have the power of life and death over your
fellowmen, whatever crimes they might have committed.
If
Ivo had lacked something of his normal balance and confidence last night, he
had certainly regained them this morning. His grooming was always immaculate,
and his dress, however simple, sat upon his admirable body with a borrowed
elegance. It had been hateful to him to be spilled into the dust, and rise
limping and defaced before a dozen or more witnesses. This morning he had made
sure of his appearance, and wore even the healing grazes on his left cheek like
ornaments; but as soon as he entered, Emma saw that he was still limping after
his fall.
“I’m
sorry to have missed your husband,” he said as he came into the room where they
were sitting, “but they tell me he’s already gone forth. I had a scheme to put
to him for approval. Dare I put it to you, instead?”
“I’m
already curious,” said Aline, smiling.
“Emma
has a problem, and I have a solution. I’ve been thinking about it ever since
you told me, Emma, two days ago, that you would not be returning to Bristol
with the barge, but must find a safe escort south by road. I have no right at
all to advance any claim, but if Beringar will consent to trust you to me… You
need to get home, I’m sure, as quickly as you can.”
“I
must,” said Emma, eyeing him with wondering expectation. “There are so many
things I must see to there.”
Ivo
addressed himself very earnestly to Aline. “I have a sister at Stanton Cobbold
who is determined to take the veil, and the convent of her choice has consented
to take her. And by luck it happens that she wished to join a Benedictine
house, and the place is the priory at Minchinbarrow, which is some few miles
beyond Bristol. She is waiting for me to take her there, and to tell the truth,
I’ve been delaying to give her time to change her mind, but the girl’s set on
her own way. I’m satisfied she means it. Now if you’ll confide Emma to my care,
as I swear you may with every confidence, for it will be my pleasure to serve
her, then why should not she and Isabel travel down very comfortably together?
I have men enough to provide a safe guard, and naturally I should myself be
their escort. That’s the plan I wanted to put to your husband,
and I hope he would have felt able to fall in with it and give his approval.
It’s great pity he is not here—“
“It
sounds admirable,” said Aline, wide-eyed with pleasure, “and I’m sure Hugh
would feel completely happy in trusting Emma to your care. Had we not better
ask Emma herself what she has to say?”
Emma’s
flushed face and dazzled smile were speaking for her. “I think it would be the
best possible answer, for me,” she said slowly, “and I’m most grateful for so
kind a thought. But I must really go as soon as possible, and your sister— you
said, you wanted her to have time to be sure…”
Ivo
laughed, a little ruefully. “I’ve already reached the point of giving up the
hope of persuading her to stay in the world. Never fear that you may be forcing
Isabel’s hand, ever since she was accepted she has been trying to force mine.
And if it’s what she wants, who am I to prevent? She has everything ready, it
will give her only pleasure if I come home to say that we can start tomorrow.
If you’re willing to trust yourself to me alone for the few miles to Stanton
Cobbold, and sleep under our roof tonight, we can be on our way in the morning.
We can provide you horse and saddle, if you care to ride, or a litter for the
pair of you, as you please.”
“Oh,
I can ride,” she said, glowing. “It would be a delight.”
“We
would try and make it so. If,” said Ivo, turning his grazed smile almost
diffidently upon Aline, “if I may have your approval, and my lord Beringar’s. I
would not presume without that. But since this is a journey I must make, sooner
or later, and Isabel insists the sooner the better, why not take advantage of
it to serve Emma’s need, too?”
“It
would certainly solve everything very happily,” agreed Aline. And there could
be no doubt, thought Emma, bolstering her own dear wish with the persuasion of
virtue, that Aline would be relieved and happy if Hugh could be spared a
journey, and she several days deprived of his company. “Emma knows,” said
Aline, “that she may choose as she thinks best, for both you and we, it seems,
are equally at her service. As for approval, why, of course I approve, and so,
I’m sure, would Hugh.”
“I
wish he would put in an appearance,” said Ivo, “I should be the
happier with his blessing. But if we are to go, I think we should set out at
once. I know I said all’s ready with Isabel, but for all that we may need to
make the most of this day.”
Emma
wavered between her desire and her regret at leaving without making her due and
grateful farewell to Hugh. But it was gain for him, great gain, to be rid of
the responsibility he had assumed, and so securely as this promised. “Aline,
you have been the soul of kindness to me, and I leave you with regret, but it
is better to spare an extra journey, in such times, and then, Hugh has been
kept so busy on my account already, and you’ve seen so little of him these
days… I should like to go with Ivo, if you’ll give me your blessing. Yet I hate
to go without thanking him properly…”
“Don’t
fret about Hugh, he will surely think you wise to take advantage of so kind and
fortunate an offer. I will give him all the pretty messages you’re thinking of.
Once I lose sight of him, now, I never know when he’ll return, and I’m afraid
Ivo is right, you may yet need every moment of the day, or certainly Isabel
may. It’s a great step she’s taking.”
“So
I’ve told her,” he said, “but my sister has the boldness of mind to take great
steps. You won’t mind, Emma, riding pillion behind me, the few miles we have to
go today? At home we’ll find you saddle and horse and all.”
“Really,”
said Aline, eyeing the pair of them with a small and private smile, “I begin to
be envious!”
He
sent the young groom to fetch out her saddle-bags. Their light weight was added
to the bales of Corbiиre’s purchases on the spare pony, her cloak, which she
certainly would not need on so fine a day, folded and stowed away with the
bags. It was like setting out into a new world, sunlit and inviting, but
frighteningly wide. True, she had solemn duties waiting for her in Bristol, not
least the confession of a failure, but for all that, she felt as if she had
almost shed the past, and could be glad of the riddance, and was stepping into
this unknown world unburdened and unguarded, truly her own mistress.
Aline
kissed her affectionately, and wished them both a happy journey. Emma cast
frequent glances towards the gatehouse until the last moment, in case Hugh
should appear, but he did not; she had still to leave her messages to Aline for delivery. Ivo mounted first, since the bay, as he said, was in a
skittish mood and inclined to play tricks, and then turned to give her a
steady, sustaining hand as Turstan Fowler hoisted her easily to the pillion.
“Even
with two of us up,” said Ivo over his shoulder, smiling, “this creature can be
mettlesome when he’s fresh out. For safety hold me fast about the waist, and
close your hands on my belt—so, that’s well!” He saluted Aline very gracefully
and courteously. “I’ll see she reaches Bristol safely, I promise!”
He
rode out at the gatehouse in shirt-sleeves, just as he had ridden in, his men,
now two only, at his heels, and the pack-pony trotting contentedly under his
light load. Emma’s arms easily spanned Ivo’s slenderness, and the feel of his
spare, strong body was warm and muscular and vital through the fine linen. As
they threaded the Foregate, now emptying fast, he laid his own left hand over
her clasped ones, pressing them firmly against his flat middle, and though she
knew he was simply assuring himself that her hold was secure, she could not
help feeling that it was also a caress.
She
had laughed and shaken her head over Aline’s romantic fantasies, refusing to
believe in any union between landed nobility and trade, except for mutual
profit. Now she was not so sure that wisdom was all with the sceptics.
The
hollow where the big, heavy body had lain still showed at least the approximate
bulk of Master Thomas’s person, and round about it the grass was trodden, as
though someone, or perhaps more than one, had circled all round him as he lay
dead. And so they surely had, for here he must have been stripped and searched,
the first of those fruitless searches Brother Cadfael had deduced from the
events following. Out of the hollow, down to the raised bank of the river, went
the track by which he had been dragged, the grass, growing longer as it emerged
from shade, all brushed in one direction. Nor was there any doubt about the
traces of blood, meagre though they were. The sliver of birch bark under the
tree showed a thin crust, dried black. Careful search found one or two more
spots, and a thin smear drawn downhill, where it seemed the dead man had been
turned on his back to be hauled the more easily down to the water.
“It’s deep here,” said Hugh, standing on
the green hillock above the river, “and undercuts the bank, it would take him
well out into the current. I fancy the clothes went after him at once, we may
find the rest yet. One man could have done it. Had they been two, they would
have carried him.”
“Would
you say,” wondered Cadfael, “that this is a reasonable way he might take to get
back to his barge? He’d know his boat lay somewhat down-river from the bridge,
I suppose he might try a chance cut through from the Foregate, and overcast by
a little way. You see the end of the jetty, where the barge tied up, is only a
small way upstream from us. Would you say he was alone, and unsuspecting, when
he was struck down?”
Hugh
surveyed the ground narrowly. It was not the scene of a struggle, there was the
flattened area of the body’s fall, and the trampling of feet all round its
stillness. The brushings of the grass this way and that were ordered, not the
marks of a fight.
“Yes.
There was no resistance. Someone crept behind, and pierced him without word or
scruple. He went down and lay. He was on his way back, preferring the byways,
and came out a little downstream of where he aimed. Someone had been watching and
following him.”
“The
same night,” said Philip flatly, “someone had been watching and following me.”
He
had their attention at once, both of them eyeing him with sharp interest. “The
same someone?” suggested Cadfael mildly.
“I
haven’t told you my own part,” said Philip. “It went out of my head when I
stumbled on this place, and guessed at what it meant. What I set out to do was
to find out just what I did that night, and prove I never did murder. For I’d
come to think that whoever intended this killing had his eye on me from the
start. I came from that riot on the jetty, with my head bleeding and my mood
for murder, I was a gift, if I could but be out of sight and mind when murder
was done.” He told them everything he had discovered, word for word. By the end
of it they were both regarding him with intent and frowning concentration.
“The
man Fowler?” said Hugh. “You’re sure of this?”
“Walter
Renold is sure, and I think him a good witness. The man was
there to be seen, I pointed him out, and Wat told me what he’d seen of him that
night. Fowler looked in, saw and heard the condition I was in, and went away
again for it might be as much as half an hour, says Wat. Then he came back,
took one measure of ale to drink, and bought a big flask of geneva spirit.”
“And
left with it unopened,” Brother Cadfael recalled, “as soon as you took yourself
off with your misery into the bushes. No need to blush for it now, we’ve all
done as foolishly once or twice in our lives, many of us have bettered it. And
the next that’s known of him,” he said, meeting Hugh’s eyes across the glade,
“is two hours later, when we discover him lying sodden-drunk under a store of
trestles by the Foregate.”
“And
Wat of the tavern swears he was sober as a bishop when he quit the inn.”
“And
I would swear by Wat’s judgment,” said Philip stoutly. “If any man drank that
flagon dry in two hours, he says, it would be the death of him, or go very
near. And Fowler was testifying in court next day, and little the worse for
wear.”
“Good
God!” said Hugh, shaking his head. “I stooped over him, I pulled back the cloak
from his shoulders. The fellow reeked. His breath would have felled an ox. Am I
losing my wits?”
“Or
was it rather the reek you loosed by moving the cloak? I begin to have curious
thoughts,” said Cadfael, “for I fancy that juniper liquor was bought for his
outside, not his inside.”
“A
costly freak,” mused Hugh, “the price such liquors are. Cheap enough, though,
if it bought him immunity from all suspicion of a thing that could have cost him
a deal higher. What was the first thing I said?—more fool I! By the look of
him, I said, he must have been here some hours already. And where did he go
from there? Safely into an abbey punishment cell, and lay there overnight. How
could he be guilty of anything but being a drunken sot? Children and drunken
men are the world’s only innocents! If murder was done that night, who was to
look at a man who had put himself out of the reckoning from the time Master
Thomas was last seen alive to the time when his body was brought back to
Shrewsbury?”
Cadfael’s
mind had probed even beyond that point, though nothing beyond
was yet clear. “I have a fancy, Hugh, to look again at the place where we
picked up that sodden carcase, if it can be found. Surely an honest drunk
should have had his bottle lying beside him for all to see. But I remember
none. If we missed it, and some stray scavenger found it by night, still
half-full or more, well and good. But if by any chance it was hidden—so that no
questions need ever be asked about how much had been drunk, and what manner of
head could have borne it—would that be the act of a simple sot? He could not
walk through the fairground stinking as he did, whether from outside or in. His
baptism was there, where we found him tucked away. So should his bottle have
been.”
“And
if he was neither simple nor a sot that night, Cadfael, how do you read his
comings and goings? He looked in at the tavern, took note of this lad’s state,
listened to his complaints, and went away—where?”
“As
far as Master Thomas’s booth, perhaps, to make sure the merchant was there,
busy about his wares, and likely to be busy for a while longer? And so back to
the tavern to keep watch on Philip, so handy a scapegoat, and so clearly on the
way to ending the evening blind and deaf. And afterwards, when he had followed
him far enough into the copse to know he was lost to the world, back to dog
Master Thomas’s footsteps as he made his way back to the barge. Made his way,
that is, as far as this place.”
“It
is all conjecture,” said Hugh reasonably.
“It
is. But read it so, and it makes sense.”
“Then
back with his flask of spirits ready, to slip unseen into a place withdrawn and
private, and become the wretched object we found. How long would it take, would
you say, to kill his man, search and strip him down to the river?”
“Counting
the time spent following him unseen, and returning unnoticed to the fairground
after all was done, more than an hour of those two hours lost between drunk and
sober. No,” said Cadfael sombrely, “I do not think he spent any of that time
drinking.”
“Was
it he, also, who boarded the barge? But no, that he could not, he was at the
sheriff’s court. Concerning the merchant of Shotwick, we already know his
slayer.”
“We
know one of them,” said Cadfael. “Can any of these matters be
separated from the rest? I think not. This pursuit is all one.”
“You do grasp,” said Hugh, after a long moment of
furious thought, “what it is we are saying? Here are these two men, one proven
a murderer, the other suspect. And yesterday the one of them fetched down the
other to his death. Coldly, expertly… Before we say more,” said Hugh abruptly,
casting a final glance about the glade, “let’s do as you suggested, look again
at the place where we found him lying.”
Chapter
Two
PHILIP,
WHO WAS LEARNING HOW TO LISTEN AND BE SILENT, followed at their heels all the
way back through the orchards and gardens of the Gaye. Neither of them found
fault with his persistence. He had earned his place, and had no intention of
being put off. All the larger boats were already gone from the jetty. Soon the
labourers would begin dismantling the boards and piers until the following
year, and stowing them away in the abbey storehouses. Along the Foregate stalls
were being taken down and stacked for removal, while two of the abbey carts
worked their way along from the horse-fair towards the gatehouse.
“More
than halfway along, I remember,” said Hugh, “and well back from the roadway.
There were few lights, most of the stalls here were for the country people who
come in by the day. Somewhere in this stretch.”
There
had been trestles stacked that night, and canvas awnings leaning against them
ready for use. This morning there were also piles of trestles and boards, ready
now to be put away for the next fair. They surveyed all the likely area, but to
lay a finger on the exact place was impossible. One of the collecting carts had
reached this stretch, and two lay servants were hoisting the heaped planks
aboard, and stacking the trestles one within another in high piles. Cadfael
watched as the ground was gradually cleared.
“You’ve
found some unexpected discards,” he commented, for a corner of the cart carried
a small pile of odd objects, a large shoe, a short cotte, bedraggled but by no means old or ragged, a child’s wooden doll with one arm missing, a
green capuchon, a drinking-horn.
“There’ll
be many more such, brother,” said the carter, grinning, “before the whole
ground’s cleared. Some will be claimed. I fancy some child will want to know
where she lost her doll. And the cotte is good stuff, some young gentleman took
a drop too much, and forgot to collect that when he moved. The shoe’s as good
as new, too, and a giant’s size, somebody may sneak in, shamefaced, to ask
after that. I hope he had not far to go home with only one. But it wasn’t a
rowdy night—not like many a night I’ve seen.” He slid powerful arms under a
stack of trestles, and hoisted them bodily. “You’d hardly credit where we found
that flagon mere.”
His
nod indicated the front of the car, to which Cadfael had hitherto devoted no
attention. Slung by a thin leather thong from the shaft hung a flattened glass
bottle large enough to hold a quart. “Stuck on top of the canvas over one of
the country stalls. An old woman who sells cheeses had the stall, I know her,
she comes every year, and seeing she’s not so nimble nowadays, we put up the
stall for her the night before the fair opened. The bottle all but brained
Daniel here, when we took it down, this morning! Fancy tossing a bottle like
that away as if it had no value! He could have got a free drink at Wat’s if
he’d taken it back, whoever he was.”
His
armful of trestles thumped into the cart, and he turned to heave a stack of
boards after it.
“It
came from Wat’s tavern then, did it?” asked Cadfael, very thoughtfully gazing.
“It
has his mark on the thong. We all know where they belong, these better vessels.
But they’re not often left for us.”
“And
where was the stall where this one was left?” asked Hugh over Cadfael’s
shoulder.
“Not
ten yards back from where you’re standing.” They could not resist looking back
to measure, and it would do. It would do very well. “The odd thing is, the old
woman swore, when she came to put out her wares, that there was a stink of
spirits about the place. Said she could smell it in her skirts at night, as if
she’d been wading in it. But after the first day she forgot
about it. She’s half-Welsh, and has a touch of the strange about her, I daresay
she imagined it.”
Cadfael
would have said, rather, that she had a keen nose, and some knowledge of the
distilling of spirits, and had accurately assessed the cause of her uneasiness.
Somewhere in the grass close to her stall, he was now certain, a good part of
that quart of liquor had been poured out generously over clothing and ground,
no wonder the turf retained it. A taste of it, perhaps, to scent the breath and
steady the mind, might have gone down a throat; but no more, for the mind had
been steady indeed, when stranger stooped over its fleshly habitation, and sniffed
at its flagrant drunkenness. Strangers, all but one! Cadfael began to see what
could hardly be called light, for he was looking into a profound darkness.
“It
so happens,” he said, “that we have some business with Walter Renold. Will you
let us take your bottle back to him? You shall have the credit for it with
him.”
“Take
it, brother,” agreed the carter cheerfully, unleashing the bottle from the
shaft. “Tell him Rychart Nyall sent it. Wat knows me.”
“Nothing
in it, I suppose, when you found it?” hazarded Cadfael, hefting the fated thing
in one hand.
“Never
a drop, brother! Fair-goers may abandon the bottle, but they make sure of
what’s inside before they fall senseless!”
The
boards were stowed, the stripped ground lay trampled and naked, the cart moved
on. It would take no more than a handful of days and the next summer showers,
and all the green, fine hair would grow again, and the bald clay coil into
ringlets.
“It’s
mine, surely,” said Wat, receiving the bottle into a large hand. “The only one
of its kind I’m short. Who buys this measure of spirits, even at a fair? Who
has the money to afford it? And who chooses it afore decent ale and wine? Not
many! I’ve known men desperate to sink their souls fast, at whatever cost, but
seldom at a fair. They turn genial at fairs, even the sad fellows get the wind
of it, and mellow. I marvelled at that one, even when he asked for it and paid
the price, but he was plainly some lord’s servant, he had his orders. He had
money, and I sell liquor. But yes, if it’s of worth to you,
that same fellow Philip here knows of, that’s the measure he bought.”
A
retired corner of Wat’s large taproom was as good a place as any to sit down
and think before action, and try to make sense of what they had gathered.
“Wat
has just put words to it,” said Cadfael. “We should have been quicker to see.
He was plainly some lord’s servant, he had his orders, he had money. One man
from a lord’s household suborned to murder by an unknown, one such setting out
on his own account to enrich himself by murder and theft, that I could believe
in. But two? From the same household? No, I think not! They never strayed from
their own manor. They served but one lord.”
“Their
own? Corbiиre?” whispered Philip, the breath knocked out of him by the enormity
of the implications. “But he… The way I heard it, the groom tried to ride him
down. Struck him into the dust when he tried to stop him. How can you account
for that? There’s no sense in it.”
“Wait!
Take it from the beginning. Say that on the night Master Thomas died, Fowler
was sent out to deal with him, to get possession of whatever it is someone so
much desires. His lord has spied out the land, told him of a handy scapegoat
who may yet be useful, given him money for the drink that will put him out of
the reckoning when the deed is done. The man would demand immunity, he must be
seen to be out of the reckoning. His lord keeps in close touch, joins us when
we go forth to look for the missing merchant. Recollect, Hugh, it was Corbiиre,
not we, who discovered his truant man. We had passed him by, and that would not
have done. He must be found, must be seen to be so drunk as to have been
helpless and harmless some hours, and must then be manifestly under lock and
key many hours more. Ten murders could have been committed that night, and no
one would ever have looked at Turstan Fowler.”
“All
for nothing,” pointed out Hugh. “Sooner or later he had to tell his master that
murder had been done in vain. Master Thomas did not carry his treasure on him.”
“I
doubt if he found that out until morning, when he had his man let out of
prison. Therefore he brought Fowler to lay evidence that made sure the finger
was pointed at Philip here, and while we were all blamelessly
busy at the sheriff’s hearing, sent his second man to search the barge. And
again, vainly. Am I making sense of it thus far?”
“Sound
enough,” said Hugh sombrely. “The worst is yet to come. Which man, do you
suppose, did the work that day?”
“I
doubt if they ever involved the young one. Two were enough to do the business.
The groom Ewald, I think. Those two were the hands that did all. But they were
not the mind.”
“That
same night, then, they broke into the booth, and made their search there, and
still without success. The next night came the attack that killed Euan of
Shotwick.” Hugh said no word of the violation of Master Thomas’s coffin. “And,
as I remember you argued, once more in vain. So far, possible enough. But come
to yesterday’s thorny business. For God’s sake, how can sense be made of that affair?
I was there watching the man, I saw him change colour, I swear it! Shock and
anger and affronted honour, he showed them all. He would not send for the
groom, for fear a fellow-servant might warn him, he would fetch him himself. He
placed himself between his man and the gate, he risked maiming or worse, trying
to halt his flight…”
“All
that,” agreed Cadfael heavily, “and yet there is sense in it all, though a more
abominable sense even than you or I dreamed of. Ewald was in the stables, there
was no escape for him unless he could break out of our walls. Corbiиre came at
the sheriff’s bidding, and was told all. His man was detected past denying, and
driven into a corner, he would pour out everything he knew, lay the load on his
lord. Consider the order in which everything happened from that moment. Fowler
had been at the butts, and had his arbalest with him. Corbiиre set off to
summon Ewald from the stables, Turstan made to follow him, yes, and some words
were exchanged that sent him back. But what words? They were too distant to be
heard. Nor could we guess what was said in the stable-yard. We waited—you’ll
agree?—several minutes before they came. Long enough for Corbiиre to tell the
groom how things stood, bid him keep his head, promise him escape. Bring the
horse, I will ensure that only I stand between you and the gate, pick your
moment, mount and away. Lie up in hiding—doubtless at his manor—and you shan’t
be the loser. But make it clear that I have no part in
this—attack me, make it good for your part, I will make it good for mine. And
so he did—the finest player of a part that ever I saw. He set himself between
Ewald and the gate, and between them they used the lively horse to edge us all
that way. He made a gallant grab at the rein, and took a heavy fall, and the
groom was clear.”
They
were both gazing at him in mute fascination, wide-eyed.
“Except
that his lord had one more trick to play,” said Cadfael. “He had never intended
to let him go. Escape was too great a risk, he might yet be taken, and open his
mouth. ‘Fetch him down!’ said Corbiиre, and Turstan Fowler did it. Without
compunction, like master, like man. A dangerous mouth—dangerous to both of
them—closed at no cost.”
There
was a long moment of appalled silence. Even Beringar, whose breadth of mind
could conceive, though with detestation, prodigies of evil and treachery, was
shocked out of words. Philip stared aghast, huge of eye, and came slowly to his
feet. His experience was narrow, local and decent, it was hard to grasp that
men could be monsters.
“You
mean it! You believe it! But this man—he visits her, he pays court to her! And
you say there was something he wanted from her uncle, and has missed
getting—not on his body, not in his barge, not in his booth—where is there
left, but with Emma? And we delay here!”
“Emma
is with my wife,” said Hugh reasonably, “in the abbey guest-hall, what harm can
come to her there?”
“What
harm?” cried Philip passionately. “When you tell me we are dealing not with
men, but with devils?” And he whirled on the heel of a trodden shoe and ran,
out of the tavern and arrow-straight along the road towards the Foregate, long
legs flashing.
Cadfael
and Hugh were left regarding each other mutely across the table, but for no
more than a moment. “By God,” said Hugh then, “we learn of the innocents! Come
on, we’d best make haste after. The lad’s shaken me!”
Philip
came to the guest-hall out of breath. With chest heaving from his running he
asked for Aline, and she came out, smiling but alone.
“Why, Philip, what’s the matter?” Then
she thought she knew, and was sorry for a lovesick boy who came too late even
to take a dignified farewell, and receive what comfort a few kind words,
costing nothing, could provide him. “Oh, Philip, I am sorry you’ve missed her,
but they could not linger, it was necessary to leave in good time. She would
have wished me to say her goodbye to you, and wish you…” The words faded on her
lips. “Philip, what is it? What ails you?”
“Gone?”
he said, hard and shrill. “She’s gone? They, you said! Who? Who is gone with
her?”
“Why,
she left with Messire Corbiиre, he has offered to escort her to Bristol with
his sister, who goes to a convent there. It seemed a lucky chance… Philip! What
have I said? What is wrong?” He had let out a great groan of fury and anguish,
and even reached a hand to grip her wrist.
“Where?
Where is he taking her? Now, today!”
“To
his manor of Stanton Cobbold for tonight—his sister is there…”
But
he was gone, the instant she had named the place, running like a purposeful
demon, and not towards the gatehouse, but across the court to the stable-yard.
There was no time to ask leave of any man, or respect any man’s property,
whatever the consequences. Philip took the best-looking horse he saw ready to
hand, which by luck—Philip’s luck, not the owner’s!—stood saddled and waiting
for departure, on a tether in the yard. Before Aline, bewildered and
frightened, reached the doorway of the hall, Philip was already out of the
gate, and a furious groom was haring across the court in voluble and hopeless
pursuit.
Since
the nearest way to the road leading south towards Stretton and Stanton Cobbold
was to turn left at the gate, and left again by the narrow track on the near
side of the bridge, Brother Cadfael and Hugh Beringar, hastening along the
Foregate, saw nothing of the turmoil that attended Philip’s departure. They
came to the gatehouse and the great court without any intimation that things
could have gone amiss. There were still guests departing, the normal bustle of
the day after the fair, but nothing to give them pause. Hugh made straight for
the guest-hall, and Cadfael, following hard on his heels, was
suddenly arrested by a large hand on his shoulder, and a familiar, hearty voice
hailing him in amiable Welsh.
“The
very man I was looking for! I come to make my farewells, brother, and thank you
for your companionship. A good fair! I’m off to my boat now, and away home with
a handsome profit.”
Rhodri
ap Huw beamed merrily from within the covert of his black beard and thorn-bush
of black hair.
“Far
from a good fair to two, at least, who came looking for a profit,” said Cadfael
ruefully.
“Ah,
but in cash, or some other currency? Though it all comes down to cash in the
end, cash or power. What else do men labour for?”
“For
a cause, perhaps, now and then one. You said yourself, I remember, no place
like one of the great fairs for meeting someone you’d liefer not be seen
meeting. Nowhere so solitary as the middle of a market place!” And he added
mildly: “I daresay Owain Gwynedd himself may have had his intelligencers here.
Though they’d need to have good English,” he said guilelessly, “to gather much
profit from it.”
“They
would so. No use employing me. I daresay you’re right, though. Owain needs to
have forward information, as much as any man, if he’s to keep his princedom
safe, and add a few more miles to it here and there. Now I wonder which of all
these traders I’ve rubbed shoulders with will be making his report in Owain’s
ear!”
“And
what advice he’ll be giving him,” said Cadfael.
Rhodri
stroked his splendid beard, and his dark eyes twinkled. “I think he might take
him word that the message Earl Ranulf expected from the south—who knows, maybe
even from overseas—will never be delivered, and if he wants to get the best out
of the hour, he should be aiming to enlarge his rule away from Chester’s
borders, for the earl will be taking no risks, but looking well to his own.
Owain would do better to make his bid in Maelienydd and Elfael, and let Ranulf
alone.”
“Now
I come to think,” mused Cadfael, “it would be excellent cover for Owain’s
intelligencers to ask the help of an interpreter in these parts, and be seen to
need him. Tongues wag more freely before the deaf man.”
“A good thought,” approved Rhodri.
“Someone should suggest it to Owain.” Though there was every indication that
the prince of Gwynedd needed no other man’s wits to fortify his own, but had
been lavishly endowed by God in the first place. Cadfael wondered how many
other tongues this simple merchant knew. French, almost certainly enough for
his purposes. Flemish, possibly a little, he had undoubtedly travelled in
Flanders. It would be no surprise if he knew some Latin, too.
“You’ll
be coming to Saint Peter’s Fair next year?”
“I
may, brother, I may, who knows! Will you come forth again and speak for me, if
I do?”
“Gladly.
I’m a Gwynedd man myself. Take my greetings back with you to the mountains. And
good speed on the way!”
“God
keep you!” said Rhodri, still beaming, and clapped him buoyantly on the
shoulder, and set off towards the riverside.
Hugh
had no sooner set foot in the hall when Aline flew into his arms, with a cry of
relief and desperation mingled, and began to pour into his ears all her
bewilderment and anxiety.
“Oh,
Hugh, I think I must have done something terrible! Either that, or Philip
Corviser has gone mad. He was here asking after Emma, and when I told him she
was gone he rushed away like a madman, and there’s a merchant from Worcester in
the stables accusing him of stealing his horse and making off with it, and what
it all means I daren’t guess, but I’m afraid…”
Hugh
held her tenderly, dismayed and solicitous. “Emma’s gone? But she was coming
home with us. What happened to change it?”
“You
know he’s been paying attentions to her… He came this morning asking for you—he
said he has a sister who is entering the nunnery at Minchinbarrow, and since he
must escort her there, and it’s barely five miles from Bristol, he could as
well take Emma home in his sister’s company. He said they’d sleep overnight at
his manor, and set off tomorrow. Emma said yes, and I thought no wrong, why
should I? But the very name has sent Philip off like a man demented…”
“Corbiиre?” demanded Hugh, holding her
off by the shoulders to peer anxiously into her face.
“Yes!
Yes, Ivo, of course—but what’s so wrong in that? He takes her to his sister at
Stanton Cobbold—I thought it ideal, so did she, and you were not here to say
yes or no. Besides, she is her own mistress…”
True,
the girl had a will of her own, and liked the man who had made the offer, and
was flattered at being singled out for his favours. Even for the sake of her
own independence she would have chosen to go, and Hugh, had he been present,
would not then have known or suspected enough to prevent. He tightened his arms
comfortingly round his trembling wife, his cheek pressed against her hair. “My
love, my heart, you could not have done anything but what you did, and I should
have done the same. But I must go after. No questions now, you shall know
everything later. We’ll bring her back— there’ll be no harm done…”
“It’s
true, then!” whispered Aline, her breath fluttering against his throat.
“There’s reason to fear harm? I’ve let her go into danger?”
“You
could not stop her. She chose to go. Think no more of your part, you played none—how
could you know? Where’s Constance? Love, I hate to leave you like this…”
He
was thinking, of course, like all men, she thought, that any grievous upset to
his wife in this condition was a potential upset to his son. That roused her.
She was not the girl to keep a man dancing anxious attention on her, even if
she had a wife’s claim on him, when he was needed more urgently elsewhere. She
drew herself resolutely out of his arms.
“Of
course you must leave me. I’ve taken no harm, and shall take none. Go, quickly!
They have a good three hours start of you, and besides, if you delay, Philip
may run his head into trouble alone. Send quickly for what men you can muster,
and I’ll go see what I can do to placate the merchant whose horse has been
borrowed…” He was loath, all the same, to let go of her. She took his head
between her hands, kissed him hard, and turned him about just as Cadfael came
in at the hall door.
“She’s
gone with Corbiиre,” said Hugh, conveying news in the fewest words possible.
“Bound for his one Shropshire manor. The boy’s off after them, and so must I.
I’ll send word to Prestcote to have a guard follow as fast as
may be. You’ll be here to take care of Aline…”
Aline
doubted that, seeing the spark flare up in Brother Cadfael’s bright and militant
eye. Hastily she said: “I need no one to nurse me. Only go—both of you!”
“I have licence,” said Cadfael, clutching at virtue
to cover his ardour. “Abbot Radulfus gave me the charge of seeing that his
guest came to no harm under his roof, and I’ll stretch that to extend beyond
his roof, and make it good, too. You have a horse to spare, Hugh, besides that
raw-boned dapple of yours. Come on! It’s a year since you and I rode together.”
Chapter
Three
THE
MANOR OF STANTON COBBOLD lay a good seventeen miles from Shrewsbury, in the
south of the shire, and cheek by jowl with the large property of the bishops of
Hereford in those parts, which covered some nine or ten manors. The road lay
through the more open and sunlit stretches of the Long Forest, and at its
southernmost fringe plunged in among the hump-backed hills at the western side
of a long, bare ridge that ran for some miles. Here and there a wooded valley
backed into its bare flank, and into one of these Corbiиre turned, along a firm
cart-track. It was the height of the early afternoon then, the sun at its
highest, but even so the crowding trees cast sudden chill and shadow. The bay
horse had worked off his high spirits, and went placidly under his double
burden. Once in the forest they had halted briefly, and Ivo had produced wine
and oat-cakes as refreshment on the journey, and paid Emma every possible
delicate attention. The day was fair, the countryside strange to her and
beautiful, and she was embarked on an agreeable adventure. She approached Stanton
Cobbold with only the happiest anticipation, flattered by Ivo’s deference, and
eager to meet his sister.
A
rivulet ran alongside the track, coming down from the ridge. The path narrowed,
and the trees closed in.
“We
are all but home,” said Ivo over his shoulder; and in a few minutes more the
rising ground opened before them into a narrow, level plot enclosed before with
a wooden stockade. Within, the manor house backed solidly into the hillside,
trees at the back, trees shutting it in darkly at either end. A
boy came running to open the gate for them, and they rode into the enclosure.
Barns and byres lined the stockade within. The manor itself showed a long
undercroft of stone, buttressed, and pierced with two doors wide enough for
carts, and a living floor above, also of stone for most of its length, where
the great hall and the kitchens and pantries lay, but at the right, stone gave
place to timber, and stone mullions to wooden window-frames and stout shutters;
and this wooden living apartment was taller than the stone portion, and seemed
to have an additional floor above the solar. A tall stone stair led up to the
hall door.
“Modest
enough,” said Ivo, turning his head to smile at her, “but it has room and a
welcome for you.”
He
was well served. Grooms came running before the horse had halted, a maid
appeared in the hall doorway, and began to flutter down to meet them.
Ivo
kicked his feet free of the stirrups, swung a leg nimbly over the horse’s
bowing head, and leaped down, waving Turstan Fowler aside, to stretch up his
arms to Emma and lift her down herself. Her slight weight gave him no trouble,
he held her aloft for a long moment to prove it, laughing, before he set her
down.
“Come,
I’ll take you up to the solar.” He put off the maid with a flick of his hand,
and she stood aside and followed them demurely up the steps, but let them go on
without her when they reached the hall. The thick stone walls struck inward
with a palpable chill. The hall was large and lofty, the high ceiling
smoke-stained, but now, in the summer, the huge fireplace was empty and cold.
The mullioned windows let in air far more genial than that within, and a
comforting light, but they were narrow, and could do little to temper the
oppression of the room. “Not my most amiable home,” said Ivo with a grimace,
“but in these Welsh borders we built for defence, not for comfort. Come up to
the solar. The timber end was built on later, but even there this is a chill,
dark house. Even on summer evenings we need some firing.”
A
short staircase at the end of the hall led up to a broad gallery and a pair of
doors. “The chapel,” he said, indicating that on the left. “There are two small
bedchambers above, dark, since they look into the hillside and the trees at
close quarters. And in here, if you’ll forgive me while I attend to your baggage and mine, and see the horses stabled, I’ll rejoin you
shortly.”
The
solar into which he led her contained a massive table, a carved bench,
cushioned chairs, tapestries draping the walls, and rugs on the floor, and was
a place of some comfort and elegance, if also somewhat dim and cold, chiefly by
reason of the looming hillside and the shrouding trees, and the narrow windows
that let in so little of the day, and so filtered through heavy branches. Here there
was no fireplace, the only chimney serving the hall and the kitchens; but the
centre of the floor was set with large paving stones to make a hearth proof
against cinders, and on this square a brazier burned, even on this summer day.
Charcoal and wood glowed, discreetly massed, to give a central spark of comfort
without smoke. Summer sunlight failed to warm through the arm’s-length
thickness of the stone walls below, and here the sun, though confronted only
with friendly timber, hardly ever reached.
Emma
went forward into the room and stood looking about her curiously. She heard Ivo
close the door between them, but it was only a very small sound in a large
silence.
She
had expected his sister to appear immediately on his return, and felt a pang of
disappointment, though she knew it was unreasonable. He had sent no word ahead,
how could the girl have known? She might, with good reason, be out walking on
the open hill in the full summer warmth, or she might have duties elsewhere.
When she did come, it would be to the pleasure of having her brother home, and
with a visitor of her own sex and approximate age, into the bargain, and to
hear that she was to have her will without further delay. Yet her absence was a
disappointment, and his failure to remark on it or apologise for it was a check
to her eagerness.
She
began to explore the room, interested in everything. Her own city home was
cushioned and comfortable by comparison, though no less dark and shut in, if
not among trees, among the buildings the trees provided. She was aware that she
had been born to comparative wealth, but wealth concentrated into one
commodious and well-furbished dwelling, whereas this border manor represented
only perhaps a tenth of what Ivo possessed, without regard to the land attached
to all those manors. He had said himself that this was not the most
genial of his homes, yet it held sway over she could not guess how many miles
of land, and how many free tenants and unfree villeins. It was another world.
She had looked at it from a distance, and been dazzled, but never to blindness.
She
felt a conviction suddenly that it was not for her, though whether she was glad
or sorry remained a mystery.
All
the same, there was knowledge and taste here beyond her experience. The brazier
was a beautiful thing, a credit to the smith who made it; on three braced legs
like saplings, the fire-basket a trellis of vine-leaves. If it had a fault, it
was that it was raised rather too high, she thought, to be completely stable.
The cushions of the chairs were of fine embroidery of hunting scenes, though
dulled by use and friction and the touch of slightly greasy fingers. On a shelf
built under the table there were books, a psalter, a vellum folder of music,
and a faded treatise with strange diagrams. The carving of chairs and table and
bench-ends was like live plants growing. The tapestries that covered all the
walls between windows and door were surely old, rich, wonderfully worked, and
once had had glorious colours that showed still, here and there, in the
protected folds; but they were smoke-blackened almost beyond recognition,
rotted here and there into tinder. She parted a fold, and the hound, plunging
with snarling jaws and stretched paws between her fingers, disintegrated into
powdery dust, and floated on the air in slow dissolution. She let fall the
threads she held, and retreated in dismay. The very dust on her palms felt like
ash.
She
waited, but nobody came. Probably the time she waited was not as long as she
supposed, by no means as long as it felt to her, but it seemed an age, a year
of her life.
In
the end, she thought she might not be offending by wandering along the gallery
into the chapel. She might at least hear if there was any activity below. Ivo
had bought Flemish tapestries for his new Cheshire manor, he might well be
unbaling them and delighting in their fresh colours. She could forgive a degree
of neglect in such circumstances.
She
set her hand to the latch of the door, and trustingly lifted it. The door did
not give. She tried it again, more strongly, but the barrier remained
immovable. No doubt of it, the door was locked.
What
she felt first was sheer incredulity, even amusement, as if
some foolish accident had dropped a latch and shut her in by mistake. Then came
the instinctive wish of every creature locked in, to get out; and only after
that the flare of alarm and the startled and furious reappraisal, in search of
understanding. No mistake, no! Ivo’s own hand had turned the key on her.
She
was not the girl to fall into a frenzy and batter on the door. What good would
that do? She stood quite still with the latch in her hand, while her wits ran
after truth as fiercely as the hound in the tapestry after the hart. She was
here in an upstairs room, with no other door, and windows not only narrow for
even her slender body to pass through, but high above ground, by reason of the
slope. There was no way out until someone unlocked the door.
She
had come with him guilelessly, in good faith, and he turned into her gaoler.
What did he want of her? She knew she had beauty, but suddenly was certain he
would not go to such trouble on that account. Not her person, then, and there
was only one thing in her possession for which someone had been willing to go
to extremes. Deaths had followed it wherever it passed. One of those deaths a
servant of his had helped to bring about, and he had dealt out summary justice.
A sordid attack for gain, a theft that accidentally ended in murder, and the
stolen property found to prove it! She had accepted that as everyone had
accepted it. To doubt it was to see beyond into a pit too black to be credited,
but she was peering into that darkness now. It was Ivo, and no other, who had
caged her.
If
she could not pass through the windows, the letter she carried could, though
that would be to risk others finding it. Its weight was light, it would not
carry far. All the same, she crossed to the windows and peered out through the
slits at the slope of grass and the fringe of trees below; and there, sprawled
at ease against the bole of a beech with his arbalest beside him, was Turstan
Fowler, looking up idly at these very windows. When he caught sight of her face
between the timbers of the frame, he grinned broadly. No help there.
She
withdrew from the window, trembling. Quickly she drew up, from its
resting-place between her breasts, the small, tightly-rolled vellum bag she had
carried ever since Master Thomas had hung it about her neck, before they
reached Shrewsbury. It measured almost the length of her hand, but was
thin as two fingers of that same hand, and the thread on which it hung was of
silk, cobweb-fine. It did not need a very large hiding-place. She coiled the
silk thread about it, and rolled it carefully into the great swathe of
blue-black tresses coiled within her coif of silken net, until its shape was
utterly shrouded and lost. When she had adjusted the net to hold it secure, and
every strand of hair lay to all appearances undisturbed, she stood with hands
clasped tightly to steady them, and drew in long breaths until the racing of
her heart was calmed. Then she put the brazier between herself and the door,
and looking up across the room, felt the heart she had just steeled to
composure leap frantically in her breast.
Once
again she had failed to hear the key turn in the lock. He kept his defences
well oiled and silent. He was there in the doorway, smiling with easy
confidence, closing the door behind him without taking his eyes from her. She
knew by the motion of his arm and shoulder that he had transferred the key to
the inner side, and again turned it. Even in his own manor, with his household
about him, he took no risks. Even with no more formidable opponent than Emma
Vernold! It was, in its way, a compliment, but one she could have done without.
Since
he could not know whether she had or had not tried the door, she chose to
behave as if nothing had happened to disturb her. She acknowledged his entrance
with an expectant smile, and opened her lips to force out some harmless
enquiry, but he was before her.
“Where
is it? Give it to me freely, and come to no harm. I would advise it.”
He
was in no hurry, and he was still smiling. She saw now that his smile was a
deliberate gloss, as cold, smooth and decorative as a coat of gilt. She gazed
at him wide-eyed, the blank, bewildered stare of one suddenly addressed in an
unknown tongue. “I don’t understand you! What is it I’m to give you?”
“Dear
girl, you know only too well. I want the letter your uncle was carrying to Earl
Ranulf of Chester, the same he should have delivered at the fair, by prior
agreement, to Euan of Shotwick, my noble kinsman’s eyes and ears.” He was
willing to go softly with her, since time was now no object, he even found the
prospect amusing, and was prepared to admire her playing of the game, provided
he got his own way in the end. “Never tell me, sweet, that you
have not even heard of any such letter. I doubt if you make as good a liar as I
do.”
“Truly,”
she said, shaking her head helplessly, “I understand you not at all. There is
nothing else I could say to you, for I know nothing of a letter. If my uncle
carried one, as you claim, he never confided in me. Do you suppose a man of
business takes his womenfolk into his confidence over important matters? You’re
mistaken in him if you believe that.”
Corbiиre
came forward an idle pace or two into the room, and she saw that no trace of
his limp remained. The brazier had burned into a steady, scarlet glow, the
light from it reflected like the burnish of sunset along the waving gold of his
hair. “So I thought,” he agreed, and laughed at the memory. “It took me a long
time, too long, to arrive at you, my lady. I would not have trusted a woman,
no… But Master Thomas, it seems, had other ideas. And I grant you, he had an
unusual young woman to deal with. For what it’s worth, I admire you. But I
shall not let that stand in my way, believe me. What you hold is too precious
to leave me any scruples, even if I were given to such weaknesses.”
“But
I don’t hold it! I can’t give you what I have not in my possession. How can I
convince you?” she demanded, with the first spurt of impatience and
indignation, though she knew in advance that she was wasting all pretences. He
knew.
He
shook his head at her, smiling. “It is not in your baggage. We’ve taken apart
even the seams of your saddlebags. Therefore it is here, on your person. There
is no other possibility. It was not on your uncle, it was neither in his barge
nor in his booth. Who was left but you? You, and Euan of Shotwick, if I had
somehow let a messenger slip through my guard. You, I knew, would keep, and
come tamed to my hand—but for a sudden qualm I had, that you might have sent it
back in Thomas’s coffin for safe-keeping, but that was to overrate you, my
dear, clever as you are. And Euan never received it. Who was then left, but
you? Not his crew—all of them far too simple, even if he had not had orders to
keep strict secrecy, as I know he had. I doubt if he told even you what was in
the letter.”
It
was true, she had no idea of its contents. She had simply been given it to wear
and guard, as the obvious innocent who would never come under
suspicion of being anyone’s courier, but its importance had been impressed upon
her most powerfully. Lives, her uncle had said, hung upon its safe delivery,
or, failing that, its safe return to the sender. Or, in the last resort, its
total destruction.
“I
am tired of telling you,” she said forcefully, “that you are wrong in supposing
that I know anything about it, or believe it ever existed but in your
imagination. You brought me here, my lord, on the pretext of providing me the
companionship of your sister, and conducting us both to Bristol. Do you intend
to do as you promised?”
He
threw his head back and laughed aloud, the red glow dancing on his fine
cheekbones. “You would not have come with me if there had not been a woman in
the story. If you behave sensibly now you may yet meet, some day, the only
sister I have. She’s married to one of Ranulf’s knights, and keeps me informed
of what goes on in Ranulf’s court. But devil a nun she’d ever have made, even
if she were not already a wife. But send you safe home to Bristol—yes, that
I’ll do, when you’ve given me what I want from you. And what I will have!” he
added with a snap, and his shapely, smiling lips thinned and tightened into a
sword-blade.
There
was a moment, then, when she almost considered obeying him, and giving up what
she had kept so obstinately through so many shocks. Fear was a reality by this
time, but so was anger, all the more fierce because she was so resolutely
suppressing it. He came a step towards her, his smile as narrow as a cat’s
bearing down on a bird, and she moved just as steadily to keep the brazier
between them; that also amused him, but he had ample patience.
“I
don’t understand,” she said, frowning as if she had begun to feel genuine
curiosity, “why you should set such store on a letter. If I had it, do you
think I should refuse it to you, when I’m in your power? But why does it matter
to you so much? What can there be in a mere letter?”
“Fool
girl, there can be life and death in a letter,” he said condescending to her
simplicity, “wealth, power, even land to be won or lost. Do you know what that
single packet could be worth? To King Stephen, his kingdom entire! To me, maybe
an earldom. And to a number of others, their necks! For I think you must know,
for all your innocence, that Robert of Gloucester has his plans
made to bring the Empress Maud to England, and make a fight of it for her claim
to the throne, and has been touting through his agents here to get Earl
Ranulf’s support for her cause when they do land. My noble kinsman has a hard
heart, and has demanded proof of the strength of that cause before he lifts a
hand or stirs a foot to commit himself. Names, numbers, every detail, if I know
my Ranulf, they’ve been forced to set down in writing for him. All the tale of
the king’s enemies, the names of all those who pay him lip service now but are
preparing to betray him. There could be as many as fifty names on the list, and
it will serve, believe me, for Ranulf s ruin no less, since if his name is not
there, he had reached the point of considering adding it. What will not King
Stephen give, to have that delivered into his hand? All committed to writing,
it may be even the date they plan to sail, and the port where they hope to
land. All his enemies cut off before they can forgather, a prison prepared for
Maud before ever she gets foot ashore. That, my child, is what I propose to
offer to the king, and never doubt but I shall get my price for it.”
She
stood staring at him with drawn brows and shocked eyes across the brazier, and
felt her blood chill in her veins and all her body grow cold. And he was not
even a partisan! He had killed, or procured others to kill for him, three times
already, not for a cause, but coldly and methodically for his own gain and
advancement. He cared nothing at all for which of them wore the crown, Stephen
or Maud. If he could have got his hands rather on information of value to Maud,
and felt that she was likely to prevail and reward him well, he would have
betrayed Stephen and all his supporters just as blithely.
For
the first time she was terrified, the weight of all those imperilled lives lay
upon her heart like a great stone. She had no doubt that this estimate of what
would be in the letter must be very close to the truth, close enough to destroy
a great many men who adhered to the same side her uncle had served with
devotion. He had been a passionate partisan, and it had cost him his life. Now,
unless she could bring about a miracle, the message he had carried would cost
many more lives, bloodshed, bereavement, ruin. And all for the enrichment and
advancement of Ivo Corbiиre! She had followed and supported Master Thomas as a
matter of family loyalty. Now that meant nothing any longer,
and all she felt was a desperate desire to avoid more killing, not to betray
any man on either side of the quarrel to his enemies on the other. To help
every fugitive, to hide every hunted man, to keep the wives unwidowed and the
children still fathered, was better by far than to fight and kill either for
Stephen or for Maud.
And
she would not let him have them! Whatever the cost, he should not tread his way
unscathed to his earldom over other men’s faces.
“I
have nothing against you,” Corbiиre was saying, confident and at ease. “Give me
the letter, and you shall reach Bristol in safety, and not be the loser. But
don’t think I’ll scruple to pay you in full, either, if you thwart me.”
She
stood fixed and still, her hands cupping her face, as though pressing hard to
contain fear. The tips of her fingers worked unseen under the edge of her
tissue net into the coils of her hair, feeling for the little cylinder of
vellum, but face to face with her he saw no movement at all.
“Come,
you are not so attractive to me that you need fear rape,” he said, disdainfully
smiling, “provided you are sensible, but for all that, it would be no hardship
to me to strip you with my own hands, if you are obstinate. It might even give
me pleasure, if the act proves stimulating. Give, or have it taken from you by
force. You should know by now that I let no man stand in my way, much less a
little shopkeeper’s girl of no account.”
Of
no account! No, she had never been of any account to him, never for a moment,
only of use in his ruthless pursuit of his own ambitious interests. Still she
stood as if frozen, except that when he advanced upon her at leisure, his smile
now wolfish and hungry, she circled inch by inch to keep the brazier between
them. Its heart was a red glow. She stood close, as if only that core of warmth
gave her some comfort and protection; and suddenly she tore down the coil of
her hair and clawed out the letter, tearing off her silken net with it in her
haste. She dared not simply cast it into the fire, it might roll clear or be
too easily retrieved. She made a desperate lunge, and thrusting it deep into
the heart of the glow, held it there for an agonised moment, snatching back
burned fingers with a faint cry that sounded half of pain and half of triumph.
He
uttered a bellow of rage, and lunged as quickly to snatch it
out again, but the net had flared at a touch, tiny worms of fire climbed to
lick his hand, and all he touched of the precious letter, before he recoiled,
was the wax of the seal, which had melted at once, and clung searingly to his
fingers as he wrung them and whined with pain. She heard herself laughing, and
could not believe she was the source of the sound. She heard him frantically
cursing her, but he was too intent on recovering his prize to turn upon her
then. He tore off his cotte, wrapped a corner of the skirt about his hand, and
leaned to grasp again at the glowing cylinder thrust upright in the
fire-basket. And he would get it, defaced and incomplete, perhaps, but enough
for his purpose. The outer covering was not yet burned through everywhere. He
should not have it, she would not bear it! She stooped as he snatched at it,
clutched with her good hand at the leg of the brazier, and overturned it over
his ankles and feet.
He
screamed aloud and leaped back. Glowing coals flew, cascading over the floor,
starting a brown furrow, a flurry of smoke and a stink of burning wood across
the nearest rug, and reached the tinder-dry skirts of the tapestries on the
wall between the two windows. There was a strange sound like a great indrawn
breath, and an instant serpent of flame climbed the wall, and after it a tree
of fire grew, thickened, put out lightning branches on all sides, enveloped all
the space between the windows, and coursed both ways like hounds at fault, to
reach the dusty hangings on the neighbouring walls. A brittle shell of fire
encased the room before Emma could even stir from her horrified stillness. She
saw the huntsmen and huntresses in the tapestries blaze for an instant into
quivering life, the hounds leap, the forest trees shimmer in fierce light,
before they disintegrated into glittering dust. Smoke rose from a dozen burning
fragments over half the floor, and vision dimmed rapidly.
Somewhere
in that abrupt hell beyond the hearth, Ivo Corbiиre, shirt and hair aflame, a
length of blazing tapestry fallen upon him, rolled and shrieked in agony, the
sounds he made tearing her senses. Behind her one wall of the room was still
clean, but the circling flames were licking round both ways towards it.
There
was a rug untouched at her back, she dragged it up and tried to reach the
burning man with it, but smoke thickened quickly, stinging and
blinding her eyes, and flashing tongues of fire jetted out of the smoke and
drove her back. She flung the rug, in case he could still clutch at it and roll
himself in its smothering folds, but she knew then that it was too late for
anyone to help him. The room was already thick with smoke, she clutched her
wide sleeve over mouth and nostrils, and drew back from the awful screaming
that shrilled in her ears. And he had the key of the room on him! No hope of
reaching him now, no hope of recovering the key. The room was ablaze, timber at
window and wall and floor began to cry out in loud cracks and splitting groans,
spurting strange jets of flame.
Emma
drew back, shielding her face, and hammered at the door, shrieking for help
against the furious sounds of the fire. She thought she heard cries somewhere
below, but distantly. She knotted her hands in the tapestries on either side
the door, where the flames had not yet reached, tore the rotting fabric down,
rolled it up tightly to resist sparks, and hurled it into the furnace on the
other side of the room. Let the door at least remain passable. All the hangings
that were not yet burning she dragged down. Her seared hand she had forgotten,
she used it as freely as the other. All those other lives, surely, were safe
enough, no one was ever going to read the letter that had failed to reach
Ranulf of Chester. Even that fearful life shut in this room with her must be
all but over, the sounds were almost lost in the voice of the fire. A busy,
preoccupied voice, not unlike the obsessed hum of the fairground. She had a
life to lose, too. She was young, angry, resolute, she would not lose it
tamely. She hammered at the door, and called again. No one came. She heard no
voices, no hasty footsteps on the stairs to the gallery, nothing but the
singing of the fire, mounting steadily from a hum to a roar, like a rioting
crowd, but better harmonised, the triumphant utterance of a single will.
Emma stooped to the keyhole, and called through it
as long as breath and strength lasted. She could neither see nor think by then,
all about her was gathering blackness, and a throttling hand upon her throat.
From stooping she sank to her knees, and from her knees sagged forward along
the base of the door, and lay there with mouth and nose pressed against the gap
that let in a thread of clean air. After a while she was not aware of anything,
even of breathing.
Chapter
Four
PHILIP
LOST HIMSELF BRIEFLY in the tangle of small valley tacks that threaded the
hills, after leaving the Long Forest, and was forced to hunt out a local man
from the first assart he came to, to put him on the road for Stanton Cobbold.
The region he knew vaguely, but not the manor. The cottar gave him precise
instructions, and turning to follow his own pointing, saw the first thin column
of smoke going up into a still sky, and rapidly thickening and darkening as he
stared at it.
“That
could be the very place, or near it. The woods are dry enough for trouble. God
send they can keep it from the house, if some fool’s set a spark going…”
“How
far is it?” demanded Philip, wildly staring.
“A
mile and over. You’d best…” But Philip was gone, heels driving into his stolen
horse’s sides, off at a headlong gallop. He kept his eyes upon that growing,
billowing column of smoke more often than upon the road, and took risks on
those little-used and eccentric paths that might have fetched him down a dozen
times if luck had not favoured him. With every minute, the spectacle grew more
alarming, the red of flames belching upward spasmodically against the black of
smoke. Long before he reached the manor, and came bursting out of the trees
towards the stockade, he could hear the bursting of beams, splitting apart in
the heat with louder reports than any axe-blow. It was the house, not the
forest.
The
gate stood open, and within, frantic servants ran confusedly, dragging out from
hall and kitchen whatever belongings they could, salvaging from
the stables and byres, dangerously near to the wooden part of the house,
terrified and shrieking horses, and bellowing cattle. Philip stared aghast at
the tower of smoke and flames that engulfed one end of the house. The long
stone building of hall and undercroft would stand, though as a gutted shell,
but the timbered part was already a furnace. Confused men and screaming maids
ran about distractedly and paid him no heed. The disaster had overtaken them so
suddenly that they were half out of their wits.
Philip
kicked his feet out of the stirrups which were short for him, but which he had
never paused to lengthen, and vaulted from the horse, leaving it to wander at
will. One of the cowmen blundered across his path, and Philip seized him by the
arm and wrenched him round to face him.
“Where’s
your lord? Where’s the girl he brought here today?” The man was dazed and slow
to answer; he shook him furiously. “The girl—what has he done with her?”
Gaping
helplessly, the man pointed into the pillar of smoke. “They’re in the solar—my
lord as well… It’s there the fire began.”
Philip
dropped him without a word, and began to run towards the stair to the hall
door. The man howled after him: “Fool, it’s the hob of hell in there, nothing
could live in it! And the door’s locked—he had the key with him… You’ll go to
your death!”
Nothing
of this made any impression upon Philip, until mention of the locked door
checked him sharply. If there was no other way in, by a locked door he would
have to enter. He cast about him at all the piles of hangings and furnishings
and utensils they had dragged out into the courtyard, for something he could
use to break through such a barrier. The kitchen had been emptied, there were meat-choppers
and knives, but, better still, there was a pile of arms from the hall. One of
Corbiиre’s ancestors, it seemed, had favoured the battle-axe. And these craven
creatures of the household had made no attempt to use so handy a weapon! Their
lord could roast before they would risk a burned hand for him.
Philip
went up the stone steps three at a time, and into the black and stifling cavern
of the hall. The heat, after all, was not so intense here, the stone walls were
thick, and the floor, too, was laid with stones over the great beams of the undercroft. The worst enemy was the smoke that bit acrid and
poisonous into his throat at the first breath. He spared the few moments it
took to tear off his shirt and bind it round his face to cover nose and mouth,
and then began to grope his way at reckless speed along the wall towards the
other end of the hall, whence the heat and the fumes came. He did not think at
all, he did what he had to do. Emma was somewhere in that inferno, and nothing
mattered but to get her out of it.
He
found the foot of the staircase to the gallery by stumbling blindly over the
first step, and went up the flight stooped low, because it seemed that the bulk
of the smoke was rolling along the roof. The shape of the solar door he found by
the framework of smoke pouring in a thin, steady stream all round it. The wood
itself was not yet burning. He hammered and strained at the door, and called,
but there was no sound from within but the crackling of the fire. No way but to
go through.
He
swung the axe like a berserker Norseman, aiming at the lock. The door was
stout, the wood old and seasoned, but less formidable axes had felled the trees
that made it. His eyes smarted, streaming tears that helped by damping the
cloth that covered his mouth. The blows started the beams of the door, but the
lock held. Philip went on swinging. He had started a deep crack just above the
lock, so deep that he had trouble withdrawing the axe. Time after time he
struck at the same place, aware of splinters flying, and suddenly the lock
burst clear with a harsh, metallic cry, and the edge of the door gave, only to
stick again when he had thrust it open no more than a hand’s breadth. The upper
part, when he groped round it, offered no resistance. He felt along the floor
within, and closed his hand upon a coil of silky hair. She was there, lying
along the doorway, and though the heat that gushed out at him was terrifying,
yet only the smoke, not the flames, had reached her.
The
opening of the door had provided a way through for the wind that fed the
flames, such a brightness burned up beyond the black that he knew he had only
minutes before the blaze swept over them both. Frantically he leaned to get a
grasp of her arm and drag her aside, so that he could open the door for the
briefest possible moment, just wide enough to lift her through, and again draw
it to against the demon within.
There was a great explosion of scarlet
and flame, that sent a tongue out through the opening to singe his hair, and
then he had her, the soft, limp weight hoisted on his shoulder, the door
dragged to again behind them, and he was half-falling, half-running down the
staircase with her in his arms, and the devil of fire had done no worse than
snap at their heels. He did not even realise, until he took off his shoes much
later, that the very treads of the stairs had been burning under his feet.
He
reached the hall doorway with head lolling and chest labouring for breath, and
had to sit down with his burden on the stone steps, for fear of falling with
her. Greedily he dragged the clean outside air into him, and pulled down the
smoke-fouled shirt from about his face. Vision and hearing were blurred and
distant, he did not even know that Hugh Beringar and his guard had come
galloping into the courtyard, until Brother Cadfael scurried up the steps to
take Emma gently from him.
“Good
lad! I have her. Come away down after us—lean on me as we go, so! Let’s find
you a safe corner, and we’ll see what we can do for you both.”
Philip,
suddenly shivering, and so feeble he dared not trust his legs to stand, asked
in urgent, aching terror “Is she…?”
“She’s
breathing,” said Brother Cadfael reassuringly. “Come and help me care for her,
and with God’s blessing, she’ll do.”
Emma
opened her eyes upon a clean, pale sky and two absorbed and anxious faces.
Brother Cadfael’s she knew at once, for it bore its usual shrewdly amiable
aspect, though how he had come to be there, or where, indeed, she was, she
could not yet divine. The other face was so close to her own that she saw it
out of focus, and it was wild and strange enough, grimed from brow to chin, the
blackness seamed with dried rivulets of sweat, the brown hair along one temple
curled and brown from burning! but it had two fine, clear brown eyes as honest as
the daylight above, and fixed upon her with such devotion that the face, marred
as it was, and never remarkable for beauty, seemed to her the most pleasing and
comforting she had ever seen. The face on which her eyes had last looked,
before it became a frightful lantern of flame, had been the face of ambition,
greed and murder, in a plausible shell of beauty. This face was
the other side of the human coin.
Only
when she stirred slightly, and he moved his position to accommodate her more
comfortably, did she realise that she was lying in his arms. Feeling and
awareness came back gradually, even pain took its time. Her head was cradled in
the hollow of his shoulder, her cheek rested against the breast of his cotte. A
craftsman’s working clothes, homespun. Of course, he was a shoemaker. A
shopkeeper’s boy, of no account! There was much to be said for it. The stink of
smoke and burning still hung about them both, in spite of Cadfael’s attentions
with a pannikin of water from the well. The shopkeeper’s boy of no account had
come into the manor after her, and brought her out alive. She had mattered as
much as that to him. A little shopkeeper’s girl…
“Her
eyes are open,” said Philip in an eager whisper. “She’s smiling.”
Cadfael
stooped to her. “How is it with you now, daughter?”
“I
am alive,” she said, almost inaudibly, but with great joy.
“So
you are, God be thanked, and Philip here next after God. But lie still, we’ll
find you a cloak to wrap you in, for you’ll be feeling the cold that comes
after danger. There’ll be pain, too, my poor child.” She already knew about the
pain. “You’ve a badly burned hand, and I’ve no salves here, I can do no more
than cover it from the air, until we get back to town. Leave your hand lie
quiet, if you can, the stiller the better. How did it come that you escaped
clean, but for the one hand so badly burned?”
“I
put it into the brazier,” said Emma, remembering. She saw with what startled
eyes Philip received this, and realised what she had said; and suddenly the
most important thing of all seemed to her that Philip should not know
everything, that his candid clarity should not be made to explore the use of
lies, deceptions and subterfuges, no matter how right the cause they served.
Some day she might tell someone, but it would not be Philip. “I was afraid of
him,” she said, carefully amending, “and I tipped over the brazier. I never
meant to start such a fire…”
Somewhere
curiously distant from the corner of peace where she lay, Hugh Beringar and the
sergeant and officers who had followed him from Shrewsbury were mustering the distracted servants in salvage, and damping down all the outhouses
that were still in danger from flying sparks and debris, so that the beasts
could be housed, and a roof, at least, provided for the men and maids. The fire
had burned so fiercely that it was already dying down, but not for some days
would the heat have subsided enough for them to sift through the embers for Ivo
Corbiиre’s body.
“Lift
me,” entreated Emma. “Let me see!”
Philip
raised her to sit beside him in the clean, green grass. They were in a corner
of the court, their backs against the stockade. Round the perimeter the barns
and byres steamed in the early evening sun from the buckets of water which had
been thrown over them. Close to the solar end, men were still at work carrying
buckets in a chain from the well. There would be roofs enough left to shelter
horses, cattle and people, until better could be done for them. They had the
equipment of the kitchen, the stores in the undercroft might be damaged, but
would not all be spoiled. In this summer weather they would do well enough, and
someone must make shift to have the manor restored before the winter. All that
terror, in the end, had taken but one life.
“He
is dead,” she said, staring at the ruin from which she, though not he, had
emerged alive.
“No
other possibility,” said Cadfael simply.
He
surmised, but she knew. “And the other one?”
“Turstan
Fowler? He’s prisoner. The sergeant has him in charge. It was he, I believe,”
said Cadfael gently, “who killed your uncle.”
She
had expected that at the approach of Beringar and the law he would have helped
himself to a horse and taken to his heels, but after all, he had known of no
reason why he should. No one had been accusing him when he left Shrewsbury.
Everyone at the abbey ought to have taken it for granted that Emma had been
duly conducted home to Bristol. Why should they question it? Why had they
questioned it? She had much to learn, as well as much to tell. There would be
time, later. Now there was no time for anything but living, and exulting in
living, and being glad and grateful, and perhaps, gradually and with
unpractised pleasure, loving.
“What
will become of him?” she asked.
“He’ll
surely tell all he knows, and lay the worst blame where it
belongs, on his lord.” Cadfael doubted, all the same, whether Turstan could
hope to evade the gallows, and doubted whether he should, but he did not say so
to her. She was deeply preoccupied at this moment with life and death, and
willed mercy even to the lowest and worst in the largeness of the mercy shown
to her. And that was good, God forbid he should say any word to deface it.
“Are
you cold?” asked Philip tenderly, feeling her shiver in his arm.
“No,”
she said at once, and turned her head a little in the hollow of his shoulder,
resting her forehead against his grimy cheek. He felt the soft curving of her
lips in the hollow of his throat as she smiled, and was filled with so secure a
sense of possession that no one would ever be able to take her away from him.
Hugh
Beringar came to them across the trampled grass of the court, even his neatness
smoked and odorous.
“What
can be done’s done,” he said, wiping his face. “We had better get her back to
Shrewsbury, there’s no provision here. I’m leaving my sergeant and most of the
men here for the time being, but the place for you,” he said, smiling somewhat
wearily at Emma, “is in a comfortable bed, with your hurt properly dressed, and
no need for you to think or stir until you’re restored. Bristol will have to
wait for you. We’ll take you to Aline at the abbey, you’ll be easy there.”
“No,”
said Philip, with large assurance. “I am taking Emma to my mother in
Shrewsbury.”
“Very
well, so you shall,” agreed Hugh, “it’s hardly a step further. But give Cadfael
time at the abbey to hunt out the salves and potions he wants from his
workshop, and let Aline see for herself that we’ve not let Emma come to any
great harm. And don’t forget, friend, you owe Aline something for entertaining
the fellow you robbed of his horse, and guarding your back for you until you
can restore him.”
Beneath
his coating of soot Philip could still blush. “True enough, I’m likely to end
in gaol again for theft, but not until I’ve seen Emma safe lodged in my
mother’s care.”
Hugh
laughed, and clapped him amiably on the shoulder. “Nor then nor ever, while I’m
in office—not unless you choose to kick the law in the teeth on some other
occasion. We’ll satisfy the merchant, Aline will have sweetened him into complacency, you’ll find. And his horse has been rubbed down
and watered and rested, while you’ve been otherwise occupied, and we’ll take
him back with us unloaded, none the worse for his adventures. There are horses
enough here, I’ll find you the pick of them, a steady ride fit to bear two.” He
had had one eye on Emma while he had been mustering water-carriers and
husbanding household effects, he knew better than to try to wrest her out of
Philip’s arms, or send for a horse-litter to carry her back. There were two
here so joined together that only a fool would attempt to part them even for a
few hours; and Hugh was no fool.
They
wrapped her gently in a brychan borrowed from the salvaged bedding, rather for
comfortable padding than for warmth, for the evening was still serene and mild,
though she might yet suffer the cold that comes after effort is all over. She
accepted everything with serenity, like one in a dream, though the pain of her
hand must, they reasoned, be acute. She seemed to feel nothing but a supreme
inner peace that made everything else of no account. They mounted Philip on a
great, broad-backed, steady-paced gelding, and then lifted Emma up to him in
her swathing blanket, and she settled into the cradle of his lap and arms and
braced shoulder as though God had made her to fit there.
“And
perhaps so he did,” said Brother Cadfael, riding behind with Hugh Beringar
close beside him.
“So
he did what?” wondered Hugh, starting out of very different considerations, for
two officers brought a bound Turstan Fowler behind them.
“Direct
all,” said Cadfael. “It is, after all, a way he has.”
Halfway
back towards Shrewsbury she fell asleep in his arms, nestled on his breast. For
the fall of her black, smoke-scented hair he could see only the lower part of
her face, but the mouth was soft and moist and smiling, and all her weight
melted and moulded into the cradle of his loving body as into a marriage-bed.
In her dream she had gone somewhere beyond the pain of her burned hand. It was
as if she had thrust her hand into the future, and found it worth the price.
The left hand, the unmarked one, lay clasped warmly round him, inside his coat,
holding him close to her in her dream.
Chapter
Five
THE
SUMMER DARKNESS OF FINE NIGHTS, which is never quite dark, showed a horse-fair
deserted, no trace of the past three days but the trampled patches and the
marks of trestles in the grass. All over for another year. The abbey stewards
had gathered in the profits of rent and toll and tax, delivered their accounts,
and gone to their beds. So had the monks of the abbey, the lay servants, the
novices and the pupils. A sleepy porter opened the gate for them; and
mysteriously, at the sounds of their arrival, though circumspect and subdued,
the great court awoke to life. Aline came running from the guest-hall with the
aggrieved merchant, now remarkably complacent, at her back, Brother Mark from
the dortoir, and Abbot Radulfus’s own clerk from the abbot’s lodging, with a
bidding to Brother Cadfael to attend there as soon as he arrived, however late
the hour.
“I
sent him word what was toward,” said Hugh, “as we left. It was right he should
know. He’ll be anxious to hear how it ended.”
While
Aline took Emma and Philip, half awake and dazedly docile, to rest and refresh
themselves in the guest-hall, and Brother Mark ran to the herbarium to collect
the paste of mulberry leaves and the unguent of Our Lady’s mantle, known
specifics for burns, and the men-at-arms went on to the castle with their
prisoner, Brother Cadfael duly attended Radulfus in his study. Whether at midday
or midnight, the abbot was equally wide-awake. By the single candle burning he
surveyed Cadfael and asked simply: “Well?”
“It is well, Father. We are returned with
Mistress Vernold safe and little the worse, and the murderer of her uncle is in
the sheriff’s hands. One murderer—the man Turstan Fowler.”
“There
is another?” asked Radulfus.
“There
was another. He is dead. Not by any man’s hand, Father, none of us has killed
or done violence. He is dead by fire.”
“Tell
me,” said the abbot.
Cadfael
told him the whole story, so far as he knew it, and briefly. How much more Emma
knew was a matter for conjecture.
“And
what,” the abbot wished to know, “can this communication have been, to cause
any man to commit such crimes in pursuit of it?”
“That
we do not know, and no man now will know, for it is burned with him. But where
there are two warring factions in a land,” said Cadfael, “men without scruples
can turn controversy to gain, sell men for profit, take revenge on their
rivals, hope to be awarded the lands of those they betray. Whatever evil was
intended, now will never come to fruit.”
“A
better ending than I began to fear,” said Radulfus, and drew a thankful sigh.
“Then all danger is now over, and the guests of our house are come to no harm.”
He pondered for a moment. “This young man who did so well for us and for the
girl—you say he is son to the provost?”
“He
is, Father. I am going with them now, with your permission, to see them safely
home and dress their burns. They are not too grave, but they should be cleansed
and tended at once.”
“Go
with God’s blessing!” said the abbot. “It is convenient, for I have a message
to the provost, which you may deliver for me, if you will. Ask Master Corviser,
with my compliments, if he will be kind enough to attend here tomorrow morning,
about the end of chapter. I have some business to transact with him.”
Mistress
Corviser had undoubtedly been fulminating for hours about her errant son, a
good-for-nothing who was no sooner bailed out of prison than he was off in
mischief somewhere else until midnight and past. Probably she had said at least
a dozen times that she washed her hands of him, that he was past
praying for, and she no longer cared, let him go to the devil his own way. But
for all that, her husband could not get her to go to bed, and at every least
sound that might be a footstep at the door or in the street, steady or
staggering, she flew to look out, with her mouth full of abuse but her heart
full of hope.
And
then, when he did come, it was with a great-eyed girl in his arm, a thick
handful of his curls singed off at one temple, the smell of smoke in his coat,
his shirt in tatters, a monk of Saint Peter’s at his heels, and a look of
roused authority and maturity about him that quite overcame his draggled and
soiled state. And instead of either scolding or embracing him, she took both
him and the girl by the hand and drew them inside together, and went about
seating, feeding, tending them, with only few words, and those practical and
concerned. Tomorrow Philip might be brought to tell the whole story. Tonight it
was Cadfael who told the merest skeleton of it, as he cleansed and dressed
Emma’s hand, and the superficial burns on Philip’s brow and arm. Better not
make too much of what the boy had done. Emma would take care of that, later;
his mother would value it most of all from her.
Emma
herself said almost nothing, islanded in her exhaustion and bliss, but her eyes
seldom left Philip, and when they did, it was to take in with deep content the
solid, dark furnishings and warm panelling of this burgess house, so familiar
to her that being accepted here was like coming home. Her rapt, secret smile
was eloquent; mothers are quick to notice such looks. Emma had already
conquered, even before she was led gently away to the bed prepared for her, and
settled there by Mistress Corviser with all the clucking solicitude of a hen
with one chick, with a posset laced with Brother Cadfael’s poppy syrup to make
sure that she slept, and forgot her pain.
“As
pretty a thing as ever I saw,” said Mistress Corviser, coming back softly into
the room, and closing the door between. She cast a fond look at her son, and
found him asleep in his chair. “And to think that’s what he was about, while I
was thinking all manner of bad things about him, who should have known him
better!”
“He
knows himself a deal better than he did a few days ago,” said
Cadfael, repacking his scrip. “I’ll leave you these pastes and ointments, you
know how to use them. But I’ll come and take a look at her later tomorrow. Now
I’ll take my leave, I confess I’m more than ready for my own bed. I doubt if I
shall hear the bell for Prime tomorrow.”
In
the yard Geoffrey Corviser was himself stabling the horse from Stanton Cobbold
with his own. Cadfael gave him the abbot’s message. The provost raised
sceptical eyebrows. “Now what can the lord abbot want with me? The last time I
came cap in hand to chapter, I got a dusty answer.”
“All
the same,” advised Cadfael, scrubbing thoughtfully at his blunt brown nose, “in
your shoes I think I’d be curious enough to come and see. Who knows but the
dust may have settled elsewhere by this time!”
It
was no wonder if Brother Cadfael, though he did manage to rise for Prime, took
advantage of his carefully chosen place behind a pillar to doze his way through
chapter. He was so sound asleep, indeed, that for once he was in danger of
snoring, and at the first melodious horn-call Brother Mark took fright, and
nudged him awake.
The
provost had obeyed the abbot’s invitation to the latter, and arrived only at
the very end of chapter. The steward of the grange court had just announced
that he was in attendance when Cadfael opened his eyes.
“What
can the provost be here for?” whispered Mark.
“He
was asked to come. Do I know why? Hush!”
Geoffrey
Corviser came in in his best, and made his reverence respectfully but coolly.
He had no solid cohort at his back this time, and to tell the truth, though he
may have felt some curiosity, he was attaching very little importance to this
encounter. His mind was on other things. True, the problems of the town
remained, and at any other time would have taken foremost place in his concern,
but today he was proof against public cares by reason of private elation in a
son vindicated and praised, a son to be proud of.
“You
sent for me, Father Abbot. I am here.”
“I
thank you for your courtesy in attending,” said the abbot mildly. “Some days
ago, Master Provost, before the fair, you came with a request to me which I
could not meet.”
The provost said not a word; there was
none due, and he felt no need to speak at a loss.
“The
fair is now over,” said the abbot equably. “All the rents, tolls and taxes have
been collected, and all have been delivered into the abbey treasury, as is due
by charter. Do you endorse that?”
“It
is the law,” said Corviser, “to the letter.”
“Good!
We are agreed. Right has therefore been done, and the privilege of this house
is maintained. That I could not infringe by any prior concession. Abbots who
follow me would have blamed me, and with good reason. Their rights are
sacrosanct. But now they have been met in full. And as abbot of this house, it
is for me to determine what use shall be made of the monies in our hold. What I
could not grant away in imperilment of charter,” said Radulfus with
deliberation, “I can give freely as a gift from this house. Of the fruits of
this year’s fair, I give a tenth to the town of Shrewsbury, for the repair of
me walls and repaving of the streets.”
The
provost, enlarged in his family content, flushed into startled and delighted
acknowledgement, a generous man accepting generosity. “My lord, I take your
tenth with pleasure and gratitude, and I will see that it is used worthily. And
I make public here and now that no part of the abbey’s right is thereby changed.
Saint Peter’s Fair is your fair. Whether and when your neighbour town should
also benefit, when it is in dire need, that rests with your judgment.”
“Our
steward will convey you the money,” said Radulfus, and rose to conclude a
satisfactory encounter. “This chapter is concluded,” he said.
Chapter
Six
AUGUST
CONTINUED BLESSEDLY FINE, and all hands turned gladly to making sure of the
harvest. Hugh Beringar and Aline set off with their hopes and purchases for
Maesbury, as did the merchant of Worcester for his home town, a day late, but
well compensated with a fee for the hire of his horse in an emergency, on the
sheriff’s business, and a fine story which he would retail on suitable
occasions for the rest of his life. The provost and council of Shrewsbury drafted
a dignified acknowledgement to the abbey for its gift, warm enough to give
proper expression to their appreciation of the gesture, canny enough not to
compromise any of their own just claims for the future. The sheriff put on
record the closure of a criminal affair, as related to him by the young woman
who had been lured away on false pretences, with the apparent design of
stealing from her a letter left in her possession, but of the contents of which
she was ignorant. There was some suspicion of a conspiracy involved, but as
Mistress Vernold had never seen nor been told the significance of what she
held, and as in any case it was now irrevocably lost by fire, no further action
was necessary or possible. The malefactor was dead, his servant, self-confessed
a murderer at his master’s orders, awaited trial, and would plead that he had
been forced to obey, being villein-born and at his lord’s mercy. The dead man’s
overlord had been informed. Someone else, at the discretion of the earl of
Chester, would take seisin of the manor of Stanton Cobbold.
Everyone drew breath, dusted his hands,
and went back to work.
Brother
Cadfael went up into the town on the second day, to tend Emma’s hand. The
provost and his son were at work together, in strong content with each other
and the world. Mistress Corviser returned to her kitchen, and left leech and
patient together.
“I
have wanted to talk to you,” said Emma, looking up earnestly into his face as
he renewed the dressing. “There must be one person who hears the truth from me,
and I would rather it should be you.”
“I
don’t believe,” said Cadfael equably, “that you told the sheriff a single thing
that was false.”
“No,
but I did not tell him all the truth. I said that I had no knowledge of what
was in the letter, or even for whom it was intended, or by whom it was sent.
That was true, I had no such knowledge of my own, though I did know who brought
it to my uncle, and that it was to be handed to the glover for delivery. But
when Ivo demanded the letter of me, and I span out the time asking what could
be so important about a letter, he told me what he believed to be in it. King
Stephen’s kingdom stood at stake, he said, and the gain to the man who provided
him the means to wipe out his enemies would stretch as wide as an earldom. He
said the empress’s friends were pressing the earl of Chester to join them, and
he would not move unless he had word of all the other powers her cause could
muster, and this was the promised despatch, to convince him his interest lay
with them. As many as fifty names there might be, he said, of those secretly
bound to the empress, perhaps even the date when Robert of Gloucester hopes to
bring her to England, even the port where they plan to land. All these sold in
advance to the king’s vengeance, life and limb and lands, he said, and the earl
of Chester with them, who had gone so far as to permit this approach! All these
offered up bound and condemned, and he would get his own price for them. This
is what he told me. This is what I do not know of my own knowledge, and yet in
my heart and soul I do know it, for I am sure what he said was true.” She
moistened her lips, and said carefully: “I do not know King Stephen well enough
to know what he would do, but I remember what he did here, last
summer. I saw all those men, as honest in their allegiance as those who hold
with the king, thrown into prison, their lives forfeit, their families stripped
of land and living, some forced into exile… I saw deaths and revenges and still
more bitterness if the tide should turn again. So I did what I did.”
“I
know what you did,” said Brother Cadfael gently. He was bandaging the healing
proof of it.
“But
still, you see,” she persisted gravely, “I am not sure if I did right, and for
right reasons. King Stephen at least keeps a kind of peace where his writ runs.
My uncle was absolute for the empress, but if she comes, if all these who hold
with her rise and join her, there will be no peace anywhere. Whichever way I
look I see deaths. But all I could think of, then, was preventing him from
gaining by his treachery and murders. And there was only one way, by destroying
the letter. Since then I have wondered… But I think now that I must stand by
what I did. If there must be fighting, if there must be deaths, let it happen
as God wills, not as ambitious and evil men contrive. Those lives we cannot
save, at least let us not help to destroy. Do you think I was right? I have
wanted someone’s word, I should like it to be yours.”
“Since
you ask what I think,” said Cadfael, “I think my child, that if you carry scars
on the fingers of this hand lifelong, you should wear them like jewels.”
Her
lips parted in a startled smile. She shook her head over the persistent tremor
of doubt. “But you must never tell Philip,” she said with sudden urgency,
holding him by the sleeve with her good hand. “As I never shall. Let him
believe me as innocent as he is himself…” She frowned over the word, which did
not seem to her quite what she had wanted, but she could not find one fitter
for her purpose. If it was not innocence she meant—for of what was she
guilty?—was it simplicity, clarity, purity? None of them would do. Perhaps
Brother Cadfael would understand, none the less. “I felt somehow mired,” she
said. “He should never set foot in intrigue, it is not for him.”
Brother Cadfael gave her his promise, and walked
back through the town in a muse, reflecting on the complexity of women. She was
perfectly right. Philip, for all his two years advantage, his intelligence, and
his new and masterful maturity, would always be the younger,
and the simpler, and—yes, she had the just word, after all!—the more innocent.
In Cadfael’s experience, it made for very good marriage prospects, where the
woman was fully aware of her responsibilities.
On
the thirtieth of September, just two months after Saint Peter’s Fair, the
Empress Maud and her half-brother Robert of Gloucester landed near Arundel and
entered into the castle there. But Earl Ranulf of Chester sat cannily in his
own palatine, minded his own business, and stirred neither hand nor foot in her
cause.
About
the Author
ELLIS PETERS is
the nom-de-crime of English novelist Edith Pargeter, author of scores of
books under her own name. She is the recipient of the Silver Dagger Award,
conferred by the Crime Writers Association in Britain, as well as the coveted
Edgar, awarded by the Mystery Writers of America. Miss Pargeter is also well
known as a translator of poetry and prose from the Czech and has been awarded
the Gold Medal and Ribbon of the Czechoslovak Society for Foreign Relations for
her services to Czech literature. She passed away in 1995, at the age of 82, at
home in her beloved Shropshire.
St. Peter's Fair
St. Peter’s Fair
St. Peter’s Fair is a grand, festive event, attracting merchants
from across England and beyond. There is a pause in the civil war racking the
country in the summer of 1139, and the fair promises to bring some much-needed
gaiety to the town of Shrewsbury. Until, that is, the body of a wealthy
merchant is found murdered in the river Severn. Was Thomas of Bristol the
victim of murderous thieves? And, if so, why were his valuables abandoned
nearby? Brother Cadfael offers to help the merchant’s lovely niece, Emma. But
while he is searching for the killer, the dead man’s wares are ransacked and
two more men are murdered. Emma almost certainly knows more than she is
telling, as others will soon realize. Cadfael desperately races to save the young
girl, knowing that in a country at war with itself, betrayal can come from any
direction, and even good intentions can kill.
St. Peter’s Fair
The Fourth Chronicle of Brother Cadfael, of the
Benedictine Abbey of Saint Peter and Saint Paul, at Shrewsbury
By
Ellis
Peters
The
Eve of the Fair
Chapter
One
IT
BEGAN AT THE NORMAL DAILY CHAPTER in the Benedictine monastery of Saint Peter
and Saint Paul, of Shrewsbury, on the thirtieth day of July, in the year of Our
Lord 1139. That day being the eve of Saint Peter ad Vincula, a festival of
solemn and profitable importance to the house that bore his name, the routine
business of the morning meeting had been devoted wholly to the measures
necessary to its proper celebration, and lesser matters had to wait.
The
house, given its full dedication, had two saints, but Saint Paul tended to be
neglected, sometimes even omitted from official documents, or so abbreviated
that he almost vanished. Time is money, and clerks find it tedious to inscribe
the entire title, perhaps as many as twenty times in one charter. They had had
to amend their ways, however, since Abbot Radulfus had taken over the rudder of
this cloistral vessel, for he was a man who brooked no slipshod dealings, and
would have all his crew as meticulous as himself.
Brother
Cadfael had been out before Prime in his enclosed herb-garden, observing with
approval the blooming of his oriental poppies, and assessing the time when the
seed would be due for gathering. The summer season was at its height, and
promising rich harvest, for the spring had been mild and moist after plenteous
early snows, and June and July hot and sunny, with a few compensatory showers
to keep the leafage fresh and the buds fruitful. The hay harvest was in, and
lavish, the corn looked ripe for the sickle. As soon as the annual fair was
over, the reaping would begin. Cadfael’s fragrant domain, dewy
from the dawn and already warming into drunken sweetness in the rising sun,
filled his senses with the kind of pleasure on which an ascetic church
sometimes frowns, finding something uneasily sinful in pure delight. There were
times when young Brother Mark, who worked with him this delectable field, felt
that he ought to confess his joy among his sins, and meekly accept some
appropriate penance. He was still very young, there were excuses to be found
for him. Brother Cadfael had more sense, and no such scruples. The manifold
gifts of God are there to be delighted in, to fall short of joy would be
ingratitude.
Having
put in two hours of work before Prime, and having no office in connection with
the abbey fair, which was engaging all attention, Cadfael was nodding, as was
his habit, behind his protective pillar in the dimmest corner of the
chapter-house, perfectly ready to snap into wakefulness if some unexpected
query should be aimed in his direction, and perfectly capable of answering
coherently what he had only partially heard. He had been sixteen years a monk,
by his own considered choice, which he had never regretted, after a very
adventurous life which he had never regretted, either, and he was virtually out
of reach of surprise. He was fifty-nine years old, with a world of experience
stored away within him, and still as tough as a badger—according to Brother
Mark almost as bandy-legged, into the bargain, but Brother Mark was a
privileged being. Cadfael dozed as silently as a closed flower at night, and
hardly ever snored; within the Benedictine rule, and in genial companionship
with it, he had perfected a daily discipline of his own that suited his needs
admirably.
It
is probable that he was fast asleep when the steward of the grange court, with
an appropriate apology, ventured into the chapter-house and stood waiting the
abbot’s permission to speak. He was certainly awake when the steward reported:
“My lord, here in the great court is the provost of the town, with a delegation
from the Guild Merchant, asking leave to speak with you. They say the matter is
important.”
Abbot
Radulfus allowed his steely, level brows to rise a little, and indicated graciously
that the fathers of the borough should be admitted at once. Relations between
the town of Shrewsbury on one side of the river and the abbey on the other,
if never exactly cordial—that was too much to expect, where their interests so
often collided—were always correct, and their skirmishes conducted with wary
courtesy. If the abbot scented battle, he gave no sign. But for all that,
thought Cadfael, watching the shrewd, lean hatchet-face, he has a pretty
accurate idea of what they’re here for.
The
worthies of the guild entered the chapter-house in a solid phalanx, no less
than ten of them, from half the crafts in the town, and led by the provost.
Master Geoffrey Corviser, named for his trade, was a big, portly, vigorous man
not yet fifty, clean-shaven, brisk and dignified. He made some of the finest
shoes and riding-boots in England, and was well aware of their excellence and
his own worth. For this occasion he had put on his best, and even without the
long gown that would have been purgatory in this summer weather, he made an
impressive figure, as clearly he meant to do. Several of those grouped at his
back were well known to Cadfael: Edric Flesher, chief of the butchers of
Shrewsbury, Martin Bellecote, master-carpenter, Reginald of Aston, the silversmith—men
of substance every one. Abbot Radulfus did not know them, not yet. He had been
only half a year in office, sent from London to trim an easy-going provincial
house into more zealous shape, and he had much to learn about the men of the
borders, as he himself, being no man’s fool, was well aware.
“You
are welcome, gentlemen,” said the abbot mildly. “Speak freely, you shall have
attentive hearing.”
The
ten made their reverences gravely, spread sturdy feet, and stood planted like a
battle-square, all eyes alert, all judgments held in reserve. The abbot was
concentrating courteous attention upon them with much the same effect. In his
interludes of duty as shepherd, Cadfael had once watched two rams level just
such looks before they clashed foreheads.
“My
lord abbot,” said the provost, “as you know, Saint Peter’s Fair opens on the
day after tomorrow, and lasts for three days. It’s of the fair we come to
speak. You know the conditions. For all that time all shops in the town must be
shut, and nothing sold but ale and wine. And ale and wine are sold freely here
at the fairground and the Foregate, too, so that no man can make his living in
the town from that merchandise. For three days, the three busiest of the year, when we might do well out of tolls on carts and pack-horses and
man-loads passing through the town to reach the fair, we must levy no charges,
neither murage nor pavage. All tolls belong only to the abbey. Goods coming up
the Severn by boat tie up at your jetty, and pay their dues to you. We get nothing.
And for this privilege you pay no more than thirty-eight shillings, and even
that we must go to the trouble to distrain from the rents of your tenants in
the town.”
“No
more than thirty-eight shillings!” repeated Abbot Radulfus, and elevated the iron-grey
brows a shade higher, but still with an urbane countenance and a gentle voice.
“The sum was appointed as fair. And not by us. The terms of the charter have
been known to you many years, I believe.”
“They
have, and often before now have been found burdensome enough, but bargains must
be kept, and we have never complained. But bad years or good, the sum has never
been raised. And it falls very hard on a town so pressed as we are now, to lose
three days of trade, and the best tolls of the year. Last summer, as you must
know, though you were not then among us, Shrewsbury was under siege above a
month, and stormed at last with great damage to the town walls, and great
neglect of the streets, and for all our efforts there’s still great need of
work on them, and it’s costly labour, after all last summer’s losses. Not the
half of the dilapidations are yet put right, and in these troublous times, who
knows when we may again be under attack? The very traffic of your fair will be
passing through our streets and adding to the wear, while we get nothing to
help make good the damage.”
“Come
to the point, Master Provost,” said the abbot in the same tranquil tone. “You
are come to make some demand of us. Speak it out plainly.”
“Father
Abbot, so I will! We think—and I speak for the whole guild merchant and borough
gathering of Shrewsbury—that in such a year we have the best possible case for
asking that the abbey should either pay a higher fee for the fair, or, better
by far, set aside a proportion of the fair tolls on goods, whether by
horse-load or cart or boat, to be handed over to the town, and spent on
restoring the walls. You benefit by the protection the town affords you; you
ought, we think, to bear a part with us in maintaining its defences. A tenth
share of the profits would be welcomed, and we should thank you
heartily for it. It is not a demand, with respect, it is an appeal. But we
believe the grant of a tenth would be nothing more than justice.”
Abbot
Radulfus sat, very erect and lean and lofty, gravely considering the phalanx of
stout burgesses before him. “That is the view of you all?”
Edric
Flesher spoke up bluntly: “It is. And of all our townsmen, too. There are many
who would voice the matter more forcibly than Master Corviser has done. But we
trust in your fellow-feeling, and wait your answer.”
The
faint stir that went round the chapter-house was like a great, cautious sigh.
Most of the brothers looked on wide-eyed and anxious; the younger ones shifted
and whispered, but very warily. Prior Robert Pennant, who had looked to be
abbot by this time, and been sorely disappointed at having a stranger promoted
over his head, maintained a silvery, ascetic calm, appeared to move his lips in
prayer, and shot sidelong looks at his superior between narrowed ivory lids,
wishing him irredeemable error while appearing to compassionate and bless. Old
Brother Heribert, recently abbot of this house and now degraded to its ranks,
dozed in a quiet corner, smiling gently, thankful to be at rest.
“We
are considering, are we not,” said Radulfus at length, gently and without
haste, “what you pose as a dispute between the rights of the town and the
rights of this house. In such a balance, should the judgment rest with you, or
with me? Surely not! Some disinterested judge is needed. But, gentlemen, I
would remind you, there has been such a decision, now, within the past
half-year, since the siege of which you complain. At the beginning of this year
his Grace King Stephen confirmed to us our ancient charter, with all its grants
in lands, rights and privileges, just as we held them aforetime. He confirmed
also our right to this three-day fair on the feast of our patron Saint Peter,
at the same fee we have paid before, and on the same conditions. Do you suppose
he would have countenanced such a grant, if he had not held it to be just?”
“To
say outright what I suppose,” said the provost warmly, “I never supposed for a
moment that the thought of justice entered into it. I make no murmur against
what his Grace chose to do, but it’s plain he held Shrewsbury to be a hostile
town, and most like still does hold it so, because Fitz Alan, who
is fled to France now, garrisoned the castle and kept it over a month against
him. But small say we of the town ever had in the matter, and little we could
have done about it! The castle declared for the Empress Maud, and we must put
up with the consequences, while Fitz Alan’s away, safe out of reach. My lord
abbot, is that justice?”
“Are
you making the claim that his Grace, by confirming the abbey in its rights, is
taking revenge on the town?” asked the abbot with soft and perilous gentleness.
“I
am saying that he never so much as gave the town a thought, or its injuries a
look, or he might have made some concession.”
“Ah!
Then should not this appeal of yours be addressed rather to the Lord Gilbert
Prestcote, who is the king’s sheriff, and no doubt has his ear, rather than to
us?”
“It
has been so addressed, though not with regard to the fair. It is not for the
sheriff to give away any part of what has been bestowed on the abbey. Only you,
Father, can do that,” said Geoffrey Corviser briskly. It began to be apparent
that the provost knew his way about among the pitfalls of words every bit as
well as did the abbot.
“And
what answer did you get from the sheriff?”
“He
will do nothing for us until his own walls at the castle are made good. He
promises us the loan of labour when work there is finished, but labour we could
supply, it’s money and materials we need, and it will be a year or more before
he’s ready to turn over even a handful of his men to our needs. In such a case,
Father, do you wonder that we find the fair a burden?”
“Yet
we have our needs, too, as urgent to us as yours to you,” said the abbot after
a thoughtful moment of silence. “And I would remind you, our lands and
possessions here lie outside the town walls, even outside the loop of the
river, two protections you enjoy that we do not share. Should we, men, be asked
to pay tolls for what cannot apply to us?”
“Not
all your possessions,” said the provost promptly. “There are within the town
some thirty or more messuages in your hold, and your tenants within them, and
their children have to wade in the kennels of broken streets as ours do, and
their horses break legs where the paving is shattered, as ours do.”
“Our tenants enjoy fair treatment from
us, and considerate rents, and for such matters we are responsible. But we
cannot be held responsible for the town’s dilapidations, as we can for those
here on our own lands. No,” said the abbot, raising his voice peremptorily when
the provost would have resumed his arguments, “say no more! We have heard and
understood your case, and we are not without sympathy. But Saint Peter’s Fair
is a sacred right granted to this house, on terms we did not draw up; it is a
right that inheres not to me as a man, but to this house, and I in my passing
tenure have no authority to change or mitigate those terms in the smallest
degree. It would be an offence against the king’s Grace, who has confirmed the
charter, and an offence against those my successors, for it could be taken and
cited as a precedent for future years. No, I will not set aside any part of the
profits of the fair to your use, I will not increase the fee we pay you for it,
I will not share in any proportion the tolls on goods and stalls. All belong
here, and all must be gathered here, according to the charter.” He saw half a
dozen mouths open to protest against so summary a dismissal, and rose in his
place, very tall and straight, and chill of voice and eye. “This chapter is
concluded,” he said.
There
were one or two among the delegation who would still have tried to insist, but
Geoffrey Corviser had a better notion of his own and the town’s dignity, and a
shrewder idea of what might or might not impress that self-assured and austere
man. He made the abbot a deep, abrupt reverence, turned on his heel, and strode
out of the chapter-house, and his defeated company recovered their wits and
marched as haughtily after him.
There
were booths already going up in the great triangle of the horse-fair, and all
along the Foregate from the bridge to the corner of the enclosure, where the
road veered right towards Saint Giles, and the king’s highway to London . There
was a newly-erected wooden jetty downstream from the bridge, where the long
riverside stretch of the main abbey gardens and orchards began, the rich
lowland known as the Gaye. By river, by road, afoot through the forests and
over the border from Wales, traders of all kinds began to make their way to Shrewsbury
. And into the great court of the abbey flocked all the gentry
of the shire, and of neighbouring shires, too, lordlings, knights, yeomen, with
their wives and daughters, to take up residence in the overflowing guest-halls
for the three days of the annual fair. Subsistence goods they grew, or bred, or
brewed, or wove, or span for themselves, the year round, but once a year they
came to buy the luxury cloths, the fine wines, the rare preserved fruits, the
gold and silver work, all the treasures that appeared on the feast of Saint
Peter ad Vincula, and vanished three days later. To these great fairs came
merchants even from Flanders and Germany, shippers with French wines, shearers
with the wool-clip from Wales, and clothiers with the finished goods, gowns,
jerkins, hose, town fashions come to the country. Not many of the vendors had
yet arrived, most would appear next day, on the eve of the feast, and set up
their booths during the long summer evening, ready to begin selling early on
the morrow. But the buyers were arriving in purposeful numbers already, bent on
securing good beds for their stay.
When
Brother Cadfael came up from the Meole brook and his vegetable-fields for
Vespers, after a hard and happy afternoon’s work, the great court was seething
with visitors, servants and grooms, and the traffic in and out of the stables
flowed without cease. He stood for a few minutes to watch the pageant, and
Brother Mark at his elbow glowed as he gazed, dazzled by the play of colours
and shimmer of movement in the sunlight.
“Yes,”
said Cadfael, viewing with philosophical detachment what Brother Mark
contemplated with excitement and wonder, “the world and his wife will be here,
either to buy or sell.” And he eyed his young friend attentively, for the boy
had seen little enough of the world before entering the order, being thrust
through the gates willy-nilly at sixteen by a stingy uncle who grudged him his
keep even in exchange for hard work, and he had only recently taken his final
vows. “Do you see anything there to tempt you back into the secular world?”
“No,”
said Brother Mark, promptly and serenely. “But I may look and enjoy, just as I
do in the garden when the poppies are in flower. It’s no blame to men if they
try to put into their own artifacts all the colours and shapes God put into
his.”
There were certainly a few of God’s more
charming artifacts among the throng of visitors moving about the great court
and the stable-yard, young women as bright and blooming as the poppies, and all
the prettier for being in a high state of expectation, looking forward eagerly
to their one great outing of the year. Some came riding their own ponies, some
pillion behind husbands or grooms, there was even one horse-litter bringing an
important dowager from the south of the shire.
“I
never saw it so lively before,” said Mark, gazing with pleasure.
“You’ve
not lived through a fair as yet. Last year the town was under siege all through
July and into August, small hope of getting either buyers or sellers into
Shrewsbury for any such business. I had my doubts even about this year, but it
seems trade’s well on the move again, and our gentlefolk are hungrier than ever
for what they missed a year ago. It will be a profitable fair, I fancy!”
“Then
could we not have spared a tithe to help put the town in order?” demanded Mark.
“You
have a way, child, of asking the most awkward questions. I can read very well
what was in the provost’s mind, since he spoke it out in full. But I’m by no
means so sure I know what was in the abbot’s, nor that he uttered the half of
it. A hard man to read!”
Mark
had stopped listening. His eyes were on a rider who had just entered at the
gatehouse, and was walking his horse delicately through the moving throng
towards the stables. Three retainers on rough-coated ponies followed at his
heels, one of them with a cross-bow slung at his saddle. In these perilous
times, even here in regions summarily pacified so short a time ago, no
gentleman would undertake a longer journey without provision for his own defence,
and an arbalest reaches further than a sword. This young man both wore a sword
and looked as if he could use it, but he had also brought an archer with him
for security.
It
was the master who held Mark’s eyes. He was perhaps a year or two short of thirty,
past the uncertainties of first youth—if, indeed, he had ever suffered them—and
at his resplendent best. Handsomely appointed, elegantly mounted on a
glistening dark bay, he rode with the negligent ease of one
accustomed to horses almost from birth. In the summer heat he had shed his
short riding-cotte, and had it slung over his lap, and rode with his shirt open
over a spare, muscular chest, hung with a cross on a golden chain. The body
thus displayed to view in simple linen shirt and dark hose was long and lissome
and proud of its comeliness, and the head that crowned it was bared to the
light, a smiling, animated face nicely fashioned about large, commanding dark
eyes, and haloed in a cropped cap of dark gold hair, that would have curled had
it been allowed to grow a little longer. He came and passed, and Mark’s eyes
followed him, at once tranquil and wistful, quite without any shade of envy.
“It
must be a pleasant thing,” he said thoughtfully, “to be so made as to give
pleasure to those who behold you. Do you suppose he realises his blessings?”
Mark
was rather small himself, from undernourishment from childhood, and plain of
face, with spiky, straw-coloured hair round his tonsure. Not that he ever
viewed himself much in the glass, or realised that he had a pair of great grey
eyes of such immaculate clarity that common beauty faltered before them. Nor
was Cadfael going to remind him of any such assets.
“As
the world usually goes,” he said cheerfully, “he probably has a mind that looks
no further ahead or behind than the length of his own fine eyelashes. But I
grant you he’s a pleasure to look at. Yet the mind lasts longer. Be glad you
have one that will wear well. Come on, now, all this will keep till after
supper.”
The
word diverted Brother Mark’s thoughts very agreeably. He had been hungry all
his life until he entered this house, and still he preserved the habit of
hunger, so that food, no less than beauty, was unflawed pleasure. He went
willingly at Cadfael’s side towards Vespers, and the supper that would follow.
It was Cadfael who suddenly halted, hailed by name in a high, delighted voice
that plucked his head about towards the summons gladly.
A
lady, a slender, young, graceful lady with a heavy sheaf of gold hair and a
bright oval face, and eyes like irises in twilight, purple and clear. Her body,
as Brother Mark saw in his first startled glance, though scarcely swollen as
yet, and proudly carried, was girdled high, and rounded below the girdle.
There was a life there within. He was not so innocent that he did not know the
signs. He should have lowered his eyes, and willed to do so, and could not; she
shone so that it was like all the pictures of the Visiting Virgin that he had
ever seen. And this vision held out both hands to Brother Cadfael, and called
him by his name. Brother Mark, though unwillingly, bent his head and went on
his way alone.
“Girl,”
said Brother Cadfael heartily, clasping the proffered hands with delight, “you
bloom like a rose! And he never told me!”
“He
has not seen you since the winter,” she said, dimpling and flushing, “and we
did not know then. It was no more than a dream, then. And I have not seen you
since we were wed.”
“And
you are happy? And he?”
“Oh,
Cadfael, can you ask it!” There had been no need, the radiance Brother Mark had
recognised was dazzling Cadfael no less. “Hugh is here, but he must go to the
sheriff first. He’ll certainly be asking for you before Compline. I have come
to buy a cradle, a beautiful carved cradle for our son. And a Welsh coverlet,
in beautiful warm wool, or perhaps a sheepskin. And fine spun wools, to weave
his gowns.”
“And
you keep well? The child gives you no distress?”
“Distress?”
she said, wide-eyed and smiling. “I have not had a moment’s sickness, only joy.
Oh, Brother Cadfael,” she said, breaking into laughter, “how does it come that
a brother of this house can ask such wise questions? Have you not somewhere a
son of your own? I could believe it! You know far too much about us women!”
“As
I suppose,” said Cadfael cautiously, “I was born of one, like the rest of us.
Even abbots and archbishops come into the world the same way.”
“But
I’m keeping you,” she said, remorseful. “It’s time for Vespers, and I’m coming,
too. I have so many thanks to pour out, there’s never enough time. Say a prayer
for our child!” She pressed him by both hands, and floated away through the
press towards the guest-hall. Born Aline Siward, now Aline Beringar, wife to
the deputy sheriff of Shropshire, Hugh Beringar of Maesbury, near Oswestry. A
year married, and Cadfael had been close friend to that marriage, and felt
himself enlarged and fulfilled by its happiness. He went on towards
the church in high content with the evening, his own mood, and the prospects
for the coming days.
When
he emerged from the refectory after supper, into an evening still all rose and
amber light, the court was as animated as at noon, and new arrivals still
entering at the gatehouse. In the cloister Hugh Beringar sat sprawled at ease,
waiting for him; a lightweight, limber, dark young man, lean of feature and
quizzical of eyebrow. A formidable face, impossible to read unless a man knew
the language. Happily, Cadfael did, and read with confidence.
“If
you have not lost your cunning,” said the young man, lazily rising, “or met
your overmatch in this new abbot of yours, you can surely find a sound excuse
for missing Collations—and a drop of good wine to share with a friend.”
“Better
than an excuse,” said Cadfael readily, “I have an acknowledged reason. They’re
having trouble in the grange court with scour among the calves, and want a
brewing of my cure in a hurry. And I daresay I can find you a draught of
something better than small ale. We can sit outside the workshop, such a warm
evening. But are you not a neglectful husband,” he reproved, as they fell
companionably into step on their way into the gardens, “to abandon your lady
for an old drinking crony?”
“My
lady,” said Hugh ruefully, “has altogether abandoned me! A breeding girl has
only to show her nose in the guest-hall, and she’s instantly swept away by a
swarm of older dames, all cooing like doves, and loading her with advice on
everything from diet to midwives’ magic. Aline is holding conference with all
of them, hearing details of all their confinements, and taking note of all their
recommendations. And since I can neither spin, nor weave, nor sew, I’m
banished.” He sounded remarkably complacent about it, and being well aware of
it himself, laughed aloud. “But she told me she had seen you, and you needed no
telling. How do you think she is looking?”
“Radiant!”
said Cadfael. “In full bloom, and prettier than ever.”
In
the herb-garden, shaded along one side by its high hedge from the declining
sun, the heavy fragrances of the day hung like a spell. They settled on a bench
under the eaves of Cadfael’s workshop, with a jug of wine between them.
“But I must start my draught brewing,”
said Cadfael. “You may talk to me while I do it. I shall hear you within, and
I’ll be with you as soon as I have it stirring. What’s the news from the great
world? Is King Stephen secure on his throne now, do you think?”
Beringar
considered that in silence for a few moments, listening contentedly to the soft
sounds of Cadfael’s movements within the hut. “With all the west still holding
out for the empress, however warily, I doubt it. Nothing is moving now, but
it’s an ominous stillness. You know that Earl Robert of Gloucester is in
Normandy with the empress?”
“So
we’d heard. It’s not to be wondered at, he is her half-brother, and fond of
her, so they say, and not an envious man.”
“A
good man,” agreed Hugh, doing an opponent generous justice, “one of the few on
either side not grasping for what he himself can get. The west, however quiet
now, will do what Robert says. I can’t believe he’ll hold off for ever. And
even out of the west, he has kinsmen and influence. The word runs that he and
Maud, from their refuge in France, are working away quietly to enlist powerful
allies, wherever they see a hope. If that’s true, this civil war is by no means
over. Promised enough support, there’ll be a bid for the lady’s cause, soon or
late.”
“Robert
has daughters married about the land,” said Cadfael thoughtfully, “and all of
them to men of might. One of them to the earl of Chester, I recall. If a few of
that measure declared for the empress, you might well have a war on your hands
to some purpose.”
Beringar
drew a long face, and then shrugged off the thought. Earl Ranulf of Chester was
certainly one of the most powerful men in the kingdom, virtually king himself
of an immense palatine where his writ ran, and no other. But for that very
reason he was less likely to feel the need to declare for either side in the
contention for the throne. Himself supreme, and unlikely ever to be threatened
in his own possessions by either Maud or Stephen, he could afford to sit back
and watch his own borders, not merely with a view to preserving them intact,
rather to extending them. A land at odds with itself offers opportunities, as
well as threats.
“Ranulf
will need a lot of persuading, kinsman or no. He’s very well as
he is, and if he does move it will be because he sees profit and power in it
for himself, and the empress will come a poor second. He’s not the man to risk
anything for any cause but his own.”
Cadfael
came out from the hut to sit beside him, drawing grateful breath in the evening
coolness, for he had his small brazier burning within, beneath his simmering
brew. “That’s better! Now fill me a cup, Hugh, I’m more than ready for it.” And
after a long and satisfying draught he said thoughtfully: “There were some
fears this disturbed state of things could ruin the fair even this year, but it
seems trade keeps on the move while barons skulk in their castles. The
prospects are excellent, after all.”
“For
the abbey, perhaps,” agreed Hugh. “The town is less happy about the outlook,
from all we heard as we passed through. This new abbot of yours has set the
burgesses properly by the ears.”
“Ah,
you’ve heard about that?” Cadfael recounted the course of the argument, in case
his friend had caught but one side of it. “They have a case for seeking relief,
no question. But so has he for refusing it, and he’s standing firm on his
rights. No way round it in law, he’s taking no more than is granted to him. And
no less!” he added, and sighed.
“Feelings
are running high in the town,” warned Beringar seriously. “I would not be sure
you may not have trouble yet. I doubt if the provost made any too much of their
needs. The word in the town is that this may be law, but it is not justice. But
what’s the word with you? How are you faring in the new dispensation?”
“You’ll
hear murmurs even within our walls,” admitted Cadfael, “if you keep your ears
open. But for my part, I have no complaint. He’s a hard man, but fair, and at
least as hard on himself as on others. We’ve been spoiled and easy with
Heribert, and the new curb pulled us up pretty sharply, but that’s the sum of
it. I have much confidence in the man. He’ll chasten where he sees fault, but
he’ll stand by his own against any power where they are threatened blameless.
He’s a man I’d be glad to have beside me in any battle.”
“But
his loyalty’s limited to his own?” said Beringar slyly, and cocked a slender
black brow.
“We
live in a contentious world,” said Brother Cadfael, who had
lived more than half his life in the thick of the battles. “Who says peace
would be good for us? I don’t know the man well enough yet to know what’s in
his mind. I have not found him limited, but his vows are to his vocation and
this house. Give him room and time, Hugh, and we shall see what follows. Time
was when I was in two minds, or more, about you!” His voice marvelled and
smiled at the thought. “Not very long, however! I shall soon get the measure of
Radulfus, too. Hand me the jug, lad, and then I must go and stir this brew for
the calves. How long have we yet to Compline?”
Chapter
Two
ON
THE THIRTY-FIRST OF JULY the vendors came flooding in, by road and by river.
From noon onward the horse-fair was marked out in lots for stalls and booths,
and the abbey stewards were standing by to guide pedlars and merchants to their
places, and levy the tolls due on the amount of merchandise they brought. A
halfpenny for a modest man-load, a penny for a horse-load, from twopence to
fourpence for a cart-load, depending on the size and capacity, and higher fees
in proportion for the goods unloaded from the river barges that tied up at the
temporary landing-stage along the Gaye. The entire length of the Foregate
hummed and sparkled with movement and colour and chatter, the abbey barn and
stable outside the wall was full, children and dogs ran among the booths and
between the wheels of the carts, excited and shrill.
The
discipline of the day’s devotions within the walls was not relaxed, but between
offices a certain air of holiday gaiety had entered with the guests, and
novices and pupils were allowed to wander and gaze without penalty. Abbot
Radulfus held himself aloof, as was due to his dignity, and left the
superintendence of the occasion and the collection of tolls to his lay stewards,
but for all that he knew everything that was going on, and had measures in mind
to deal with any emergency. As soon as the arrival of the first Flemish
merchant was reported to him, together with the news that the man had little
French, he dispatched Brother Matthew, who had lived for some years in Flanders
in his earlier days, and could speak fluent Flemish, to deal
with any problems that might arise. If the fine-cloth merchants were coming,
there was good reason to afford them every facility, for they were profitable
visitors. It was a mark of the significance of the Shrewsbury fair that they
should undertake so long a journey from the East Anglian ports where they put
in, and find it worth their while to hire carts or horses for the overland
pilgrimage.
The
Welsh, of course, would certainly be present in some numbers, but for the most
part they would be the local people who had a foot on either side the border,
and knew enough English to need no interpreters. It came as a surprise to
Brother Cadfael to be intercepted once again as he left the refectory after
supper, this time by the steward of the grange court, preoccupied and
breathless with business, and told that he was needed at the jetty, to take
care of one who spoke nothing but Welsh, and a man of consequence, indeed of
self-importance, who would not be fobbed off with the suspect aid of a local
Welshman who might well be in competition with him on the morrow.
“Prior
Robert gives you leave, for as long as you’re needed. It’s a fellow by the name
of Rhodri ap Huw, from Mold. He’s brought a great load up the Dee, and ported
it over to Vrnwy and Severn, which must have cost him plenty.”
“What
manner of goods?” asked Cadfael, as they made for the gatehouse together. His
interest was immediate and hearty. Nothing could have suited him better than a
sound excuse to be out among the noise and bustle along the Foregate.
“What
looks like a very fine wool-clip, mainly. And also honey and mead. And I
thought I saw some bundles of hides—maybe from Ireland, if he trades out of the
Dee . And there’s the man himself.”
Rhodri
ap Huw stood solid as a rock on the wooden planking of the jetty beside his
moored barge, and let the tides of human activity flow round him. The river ran
green and still, at a good level for high summer; even boats of deeper draught
than usual had made the passage without mishap, and were unloading and unbaling
on all sides. The Welshman watched, measuring other men’s bales with shrewd,
narrowed dark eyes, and pricing what he saw. He looked about
fifty years old, and so assured and experienced that it seemed strange he had
never picked up English. Not a tall man, but square-built and powerful, fierce
Welsh bones islanded in a thick growth of thorny black hair and beard. His
dress, though plain and workmanlike, was of excellent material and well-fitted.
He saw the steward hurrying towards him, evidently having carried out his
wishes to the letter, and large, white teeth gleamed contentedly from the
thicket of the black beard.
“Here
am I, Master Rhodri,” said Cadfael cheerfully, “to keep you company in your own
tongue. And my name is Cadfael, at your service for all your present needs.”
“And
very welcome, Brother Cadfael,” said Rhodri ap Huw heartily. “I hope you’ll
pardon my fetching you away from your devotions…”
“I’ll
do better. I’ll thank you! A pity to have to miss all this bustle, I can do
with a glimpse of the world now and again.”
Sharp,
twinkling eyes surveyed him from head to toe in one swift glance. “You’ll be
from the north yourself, I fancy. Mold is where I come from.”
“Close
by Trefriw I was born.”
“A
Gwynedd man. But one who’s been a sight further through the world than Trefriw,
by the look of you, brother. As I have. Well, here are my two fellows, ready to
unload and porter for me before I send on part of my cargo downriver to
Bridgnorth, where I have a sale for mead. Shall we have the goods ashore
first?”
The
steward bade them choose a stand at whatever point Master Rhodri thought fit
when he had viewed the ground, and left them to supervise the unloading.
Rhodri’s two nimble little Welsh boatmen went to work briskly, hefting the
heavy bales of hides and the wool-sacks with expert ease, and piling them on
the jetty, and Rhodri and Cadfael addressed themselves pleasurably to watching
the lively scene around them; Its many of the townsfolk and the abbey guests
were also doing. On a fine summer evening it was the best of entertainments to
lean over the parapet of the bridge, or stroll along the green path to the
Gaye, and stare at an annual commotion which was one of the year’s highlights.
If some of the townspeople looked on with dour faces, and
muttered to one another in sullen undertones, that was no great wonder, either.
Yesterday’s confrontation had been reported throughout the town, they knew they
had been turned away empty-handed.
“A
thing worth noting,” said Rhodri, spreading his thick legs on the springy
boards, “how both halves of England can meet in commerce, while they fall out
in every other field. Show a man where there’s money to be made, and he’ll be
there. If barons and kings had the same good sense, a country could be at
peace, and handsomely the gainer by it.”
“Yet
I fancy,” said Cadfael dryly, “that there’ll be some hot contention here even
between traders, before the three days are up. More ways than one of cutting
throats.”
“Well,
every wise man keeps a weapon about him, whatever suits his skill, that’s only
good sense, too. But we live together, we live together, better than princes
manage it. Though I grant you,” he said weightily, “princes make good use of
these occasions, for that matter. No place like one of your greater fairs for
exchanging news and views without being noticed, or laying plots and
stratagems, or meeting someone you’d liefer not be seen meeting. Nowhere so
solitary as in the middle of a market-place!”
“In
a divided land,” said Cadfael thoughtfully, “you may very well be right.”
“For
instance—look to your left a ways, but don’t turn. You see the meagre fellow in
the fine clothes, the smooth-shaven one with the mincing walk? Come to watch
who’s arriving by water! You may be sure if he’s here at all, he’s come early,
and has his stall already up and stocked, to be free to view the rest of us.
That’s Euan of Shotwick, the glover, and an important man about Earl Ranulfs
court at Chester, I can tell you.”
“For
his skill at his trade?” asked Cadfael dryly, observing the lean, fastidious,
high-nosed figure with interest.
“That
and other fields, brother. Euan of Shotwick is one of the sharpest of all of
Earl Ranulfs intelligencers, and much relied on, and if he’s setting up a booth
here as far as Shrewsbury, it may well be for more purposes than trade. And
then on the other side, look, that great barge standing off ready to come
alongside—downstream of us. See the cut of her? Bristol-built,
for a thousand marks! Straight out of the west country, and the city the king
failed to take last year, and has let well alone ever since.”
Above
the softly-flowing surface of Severn, its green silvered now with slanting
evening sunlight, the barge sidled along the grassy shore towards the end of
the jetty. She loomed impressively opulent and graceful, cunningly built to
draw hardly more water than boats half her capacity, and yet steer well and
ride steadily. She had a single mast, and what seemed to be a neat, closed
cabin aft, and three crewmen were poling her inshore with easy, light touches,
and waiting to moor her alongside as soon as there was room. Twenty pence, as
like as not, thought Cadfael, before she gets her load ashore and cleared!
“Made
to carry wine, and carry it steady,” said Rhodri ap Huw, narrowing his
sharply-calculating eyes on the boat. “Some of the best wines of France come
into Bristol, they should have a ready sale as far north as this. I should know
that rig!”
A
considerable number of onlookers, whether they recognised her port and rig or
not, were curious enough to come down from the bridge and the highroad to see
the Bristol boat come in. She was remarkable enough among her fellow craft to
draw all eyes. Cadfael caught sight of a number of known faces craning among
the crowd: Edric Flesher’s wife Petronilla, Aline Beringar’s maid Constance
leaning over the bridge, one of the abbey stewards forgetting his duties to
stare; and suddenly sunlight on a head of dark gold hair, cropped short, and a
young man came running lightly down from the highway, to halt on the grass
slope above the jetty, and watched admiringly as the Bristol boat slid
alongside, ready to be made fast. The lordling whose assured beauty had aroused
Mark’s wistful admiration was evidently just as inquisitive as the raggedest
barefoot urchin from the Foregate.
The
two Welshmen had completed their unloading by this time, and were waiting for
orders, and Rhodri ap Huw was not the man to let his interest in other men’s
business interfere with his own.
“They’ll
be a fair while unloading,” he said briskly. “Shall we go and choose a good
place for my stall, while the field’s open?”
Cadfael led the way along the Foregate,
where several booths had already been set up. “You’ll prefer a site on the
horse-fair itself, I fancy, where all the roads meet.”
“Ah,
my customers will find me, wherever I am,” said Rhodri smugly; but for all
that, he kept a shrewd eye on all the possibilities, and took his time about
selecting his place, even when they had walked the length of the Foregate and
come to the great open triangle of the horse-fair. The abbey servants had set
up a number of more elaborate booths, that could be closed and locked, and
supply living shelter for their holders, and these were let out for rents.
Other traders brought their own serviceable trestles and light roofs, while the
small country vendors would come in early each morning and display their wares
on the dry ground, or on a woven brychan, filling all the spaces between. For
Rhodri nothing was good enough but the best. He fixed upon a stout booth near
the abbey barn and stable, where all customers coming in for the day could
stable their beasts, and in the act could not fail to notice the goods on the
neighbouring stalls.
“This
will serve very well. One of my lads will sleep the nights here.” The elder of
the two had followed them, balancing the first load easily in a sling over his
shoulders, while the other remained to guard the merchandise stacked on the
jetty. Now he began to stow what he had brought, while Rhodri and Cadfael set
off back to the river to dispatch his fellow after him. On the way they
intercepted one of the stewards, notified him of the site chosen, and came to
terms for the rental. Brother Cadfael’s immediate duty was done, but he was as
interested in the growing bustle along the road and by the Severn as any other
man who saw the like but once a year, and there was time to spare yet before
Compline. It was good, too, to be speaking Welsh, there was seldom need within
the walls.
They
reached the point where the track turned aside from the highway to go down to
the waterside, and looked down upon a lively scene. The Bristol boat was
moored, and her three crewmen beginning to hoist casks of wine on to the jetty,
while a big, portly, red-faced elderly gentleman in a long gown of fashionable
cut, his capuchon twisted up into an elaborate hat, swung wide sleeves as he
pointed and beckoned, giving orders at large. A fleshy but powerful face, round and choleric, with bristly brows like furze, and bluish
jowls. He moved with surprising agility and speed, and plainly he considered
himself a man of importance, and expected others to recognise him as such on
sight.
“I
thought it might well be!” said Rhodri ap Huw, pleased with his own acuteness
and knowledge of widespread affairs. “Thomas of Bristol, they call him, one of
the biggest importers of wine into the port there, and deals in a small way in
fancy wares from the east, sweetmeats and spices and candies. The Venetians
bring them in from Cyprus and Syria . Costly and profitable! The ladies will
pay high for something their neighbours have not! What did I say? Money will
bring men together. Whether they hold for Stephen or the empress, they’ll come
and rub shoulders at your fair, brother.”
“By
the look of him,” said Cadfael, “a man of consequence in the city of Bristol.”
“So
he is, and I’d have said in very good odour with Robert of Gloucester, but
business is business, and it would take more than the simple fear of venturing
into enemy territory to keep him at home, when there’s good money to be made.”
They
had turned to begin the descent to the riverside when they were aware of a
growing murmur of excitement among the people watching from the bridge, and of
heads turning to look towards the town gates on the other side of the river.
The evening light, slanting from the west, cast deep shadows under one parapet
and half across the bridge, but above floated a faint, moving cloud of fine
dust, glittering in the sunset rays, and advancing towards the abbey shore. A
tight knot of young men came into sight, shearing through the strolling
onlookers at a smart pace, like a determined little army on the march. All the
rest were idling the tune pleasurably away on a fine evening, these were bound
somewhere, in resolution and haste, the haste, perhaps, all the more aggressive
lest the resolution be lost. There might have been as many as five and twenty
of them, all male and all young. Some of them Cadfael knew. Martin Bellecote’s
boy Edwy was there, and Edric Flesher’s journeyman, and scions of half a dozen
respected trades within the town; and at their head strode the provost’s own
son, young Philip Corviser, jutting a belligerent chin and swinging clenched
hands to the rhythm of his long-striding walk. They looked very grave and very
dour, and people gazed at them in wonder and speculation, and
drew in at a more cautious pace after their passing, to watch what would happen.
“If
this is not the face of battle,” said Rhodri ap Huw alertly, viewing the grim
young faces while they were still safely distant, “I have never seen it. I did
hear that your house has a difference of opinion with the town. I’ll away and
see all those goods of mine safely stacked away under lock and key, before the
trumpets blow.” And he tucked up his sleeves and was off down the path to the
jetty as nimbly as a squirrel, and hoisting his precious jars of honey out of
harm’s way, leaving Cadfael still thoughtfully gazing by the roadside. The
merchant’s instincts, he thought, were sound enough. The elders of the town had
made their plea and been sent away empty-handed. To judge by their faces, the
younger and hotter-headed worthies of the town of Shrewsbury had resolved upon
stronger measures. A rapid survey reassured him that they were unarmed, as far
as he could see not even a staff among them. But the face, no question, was the
face of battle, and the trumpets were about to blow.
Chapter
Three
THE
ADVANCING PHALANX REACHED THE END OF THE BRIDGE, and checked for no more than a
moment, while their leader cast calculating glances forward along the Foregate,
now populous with smaller stalls, and down at the jetty, and gave some brisk
order. Then he, with perhaps ten of his stalwarts on his heels, turned and
plunged down the path to the river, while the rest marched vehemently ahead.
The interested townspeople, equally mutely and promptly, split into partisan
groups, and pursued both contingents. Not one of them would willingly miss what
was to come. Cadfael, more soberly, eyed the passing ranks, and was confirmed
in believing that they came with the most austere intentions; there was not a
bludgeon among them, and he doubted if any of them ever carried knives. Nothing
about them was warlike, except their faces. Besides, he knew most of them,
there was no wilful harm in any. All the same, he turned down the path after
them, not quite easy in his mind. The Corviser sprig was known for a wild one,
clever, bursting with hot and suspect ideas, locked in combat with his elders
half his time, and occasionally liable to drink rather more than at this stage
he could carry. Though this evening he had certainly not been drinking; he had
far more urgent matters on his mind.
Brother
Cadfael sighed, descending the path to the waterside half-reluctantly. The
earnest young are so dangerously given to venturing beyond the point where
experience turns back. And the sharper they are, the more likely to come by
wounds.
He was not at all surprised to find that
Rhodri ap Huw, that most experienced of travellers, had vanished from the
jetty, together with his second porter and all his goods. Rhodri himself would
not be far, once he had seen all his merchandise well on its way to being
locked in the booth on the horse-fair. He would want to watch all that passed,
and make his own dispositions accordingly, but he would be out of sight, and
somewhere where he could make his departure freely whenever he deemed it wise.
But there were half a dozen boats of various sizes busy unloading, dominated by
Thomas of Bristol’s noble barge. Its owner heard the sudden surge of urgent
feet on the downhill track, and turned to level an imperious glance that way,
before returning to his business of supervising the landing of his goods. The
array of casks and bales on the boards was impressive. The young men surging
down to the river could not fail to make an accurate estimate of the powers
they faced.
“Gentlemen…!”
Philip Corviser hailed them all loudly, coming to a halt with feet spread,
confronting Thomas of Bristol. He had a good, ringing voice; it carried, and
lesser dealers dropped what they were doing to listen. “Gentlemen, I beg a
hearing, as you are citizens all, of whatever town, as I am of Shrewsbury, and
as you care for your own town as I do for mine! You are here paying rents and
tolls to the abbey, while the abbey denies any aid to the town. And we have
greater need than ever the abbey has, of some part of what you bring.”
He
drew breath hard, having spent his first wind. He was a gangling lad, not yet
quite in command of his long limbs, being barely twenty and only just at the
end of his growing. Spruce in his dress, but down at the heel, Cadfael noticed—
proof of the old saying that the shoemaker’s son is always the one who goes
barefoot! He had a thick thatch of reddish dark hair, and a decent, homely face
now pale with passion under his summer tan. A good, deft workman, they said,
when he could be stopped from flying off after some angry cause or other.
Certainly he had a cause now, bless the lad, he was pouring out to these
hard-headed business men all the arguments his father had used to the abbot at
chapter, in dead earnest, and—heaven teach him better sense!—even with hopes of
convincing them!
“If the abbey turns a cold eye on the
town’s troubles, should you side with them? We are here to tell you our side of
the story, and appeal to you as men who also have to bear the burdens of your
own boroughs, and may well have seen at home what war and siege can do to your
own walls and pavings. Is it unreasonable that we should ask for a share in the
profits of the fair? The abbey came by no damage last year, as the town did. If
they will not bear their part for the common good, we address ourselves to you,
who have no such protection from the hardships of the world, and will have
fellow-feeling with those who share the like burdens.”
They
were beginning to lose interest in him, to shrug, and turn back to their
unloading. He raised his voice sharply in appeal.
“All
we ask is that you will hold back a tithe of the dues you pay to the abbey, and
pay them instead to the town for murage and pavage. If all hold together, what
can the abbey stewards do against you? There need be no cost to you above what
you would be paying in any event, and we should have something nearer to
justice. What do you say? Will you help us?”
They
would not! The growl of indifference and derision hardly needed words. What,
set up a challenge to what was laid down by charter, when they had nothing to
gain by it? Why should they take the risk? They turned to their work, shrugging
him off. The young men grouped at his back set up among themselves a counter
murmur, still controlled but growing angry. And Thomas of Bristol, massive and
contemptuous, waved a fist in their spokesman’s face, and said impatiently:
“Stand out of the way, boy, you are hindering your betters! Pay a tithe to the
town indeed! Are not the abbey rights set down according to law? And can you,
dare you tell me they do not pay the fee demanded of them by charter? If you
have a complaint that they are failing to keep the law, take it to the sheriff,
where it belongs, but don’t come here with your nonsense. Now be off, and let
honest men get on with their work.”
The
young man took fire. “The men of Shrewsbury are as honest as you, sir, though
something less boastful about it. We take honesty for granted here! And it is
not nonsense that our town goes with broken walls and broken streets, while abbey and Foregate have escaped all such damage. No, but listen…”
The
merchant turned a broad, hunched back, with disdainful effect, and stalked away
to pick up the staff he had laid against his piled barrels, and motion his men
to continue their labours. Philip started indignantly after him, for the act
was stingingly deliberate, as though a gnat, a mere persistent nuisance, had
been brushed aside.
“Master
merchant,” he called hotly, “one word more!” And he laid an arresting hand to
Thomas’s fine, draped sleeve.
They
were two choleric people, and it might have come to it even at the best, sooner
or later, but Cadfael’s impression was that Thomas had been genuinely startled
by the grasp at his arm, and believed he was about to be attacked. Whatever the
cause, he swung round and struck out blindly with the staff he held. The boy
flung up his arm, but too late thoroughly to protect his head. The blow fell
heavily on his forearms and temple, and laid him flat on the planking of the
jetty, with blood oozing from a cut above his ear.
That
was the end of all peaceful and dignified protest, and the declaration of war.
Many things happened on the instant. Philip had fallen without a cry, and lay
half-stunned; but someone had certainly cried out, a small, protesting shriek,
instantly swallowed up in the roar of anger from the young men of the town. Two
of them rushed to their fallen leader, but the rest, bellowing for vengeance,
lunged to confront the equally roused traders, and closed with them merrily. In
a moment the goods newly disembarked were being hoisted and flung into the
river, and one of the raiders soon followed them, with a bigger splash.
Fortunately those who lived all their lives by Severn usually learned to swim
even before they learned to walk, and the youngster was in no danger of
drowning. By the time he had hauled himself out and returned to the fray, there
was a fully-fledged riot in progress all along the riverside.
Several
of the cooler-headed citizens had moved in, though cautiously, to try to
separate the combatants, and talk a little sense into the furious young; and
one or two, not cautious enough, had come in for blows meant for the foe, the
common fate of those who try to make peace where no one is inclined for it.
Cadfael among the rest had rushed down to
the jetty, intent on preventing what might well be a second and fatal blow, to
judge by the merchant’s congested countenance and brandished staff. But someone
else was before him. A girl had clambered frantically up out of the tiny cabin
of the barge, kilted her skirts and leaped ashore, in time to cling with all
her weight to the quivering arm, and plead in agitated tones:
“Uncle,
don’t please don’t! He did no violence! You’ve hurt him badly!”
Philip
Corviser’s brown eyes, all this time open but unseeing, blinked furiously at
the sound of so unexpected a voice. He heaved himself shakily to his knees,
remembered his injury and his grievance, and gathered sprawled limbs and
faculties to surge to his feet and do battle. Not that his efforts would have
been very effective; his legs gave under him as he tried to rise, and he
gripped his head between steadying hands as though it might fall off if he
shook it. But it was the sight of the girl that stopped him short. There she
stood, clinging, to the merchant’s arm and pleading angelically into his ear,
in tones that could have cooled a dragon, her eyes all the time dilated and
anxious and pitying on Philip. And calling the old demon “uncle”! Philip’s
revenge was put clean out of his reach in an instant, but he scarcely felt a
pang at the deprivation, to judge by the transformation that came over his
bruised and furious face. Swaying on one knee, still dazed, he stared at the
girl as pilgrims might stare at miraculous visions, or lost wanderers at the
Pole star.
She
was well worth looking at, a young thing of about eighteen or nineteen years,
bare-armed and bare-headed, with two great braids of blue-black hair swinging
to her waist, and framed between them a round, childish face all roses and
snow, lit by two long-lashed dark blue eyes, at this moment huge with alarm and
concern. No wonder the mere sound of her voice could tame her formidable uncle,
as surely as the sight of her had checked and held at gaze the two young men
who had rushed to salvage and avenge their leader, and who now stood abashed,
gaping and harmless.
It
was at that moment that the fight on the jetty, which had become a melee
hopelessly tangled, reeled their way, thudding along the planks, knocked over
the stack of small barrels, and sent them rolling thunderously in all
directions. Cadfael grasped young Corviser under the arms,
hoisted him to his feet and hauled him out of harm’s way, thrusting him bodily
into the arms of his friends for safe-keeping, since he was still in a daze. A
rolling cask swept Thomas’s feet from under him, and the girl, flung aside in
his fall, swayed perilously on the edge of the jetty.
An
agile figure darted past Cadfael with a flash of gold hair, leaped another
rolling cask as nimbly as a deer, and plucked her back to safety in a long arm.
The almost insolent grace and assurance was as familiar as the yellow hair.
Cadfael contented himself with helping Thomas to his feet, and drawing him
aside out of danger, and was not particularly surprised, when that was done, to
see that the long arm was still gallantly clasped round the girl’s waist. Nor
was she in any hurry to extricate herself. Indeed, she was gazing at the
smiling, comely, reassuring face of her rescuer wide-eyed, much as Philip
Corviser had gazed at her.
“There,
you’re quite safe! But let me help you back aboard, you’d do best to stay there
a while, your uncle, too. I advise it, sir,” he said earnestly. “No one will
offer you further offence. With this lady beside you, no one could be so
ungallant,” he said, his eyes wide in candid admiration. The cream of the
girl’s fair skin turned all to rose.
Thomas
of Bristol dusted himself down with slightly shaky hands, for he was a big man,
and had fallen heavily. “I thank you, sir, warmly, for your help. You, too,
brother. But my wines—my goods—“
“Leave
them to us, sir. What can be salvaged, shall be. You stay safe aboard, and
wait. This cannot continue, the law will be out after these turbulent young
fools any moment. Half of them are off along the Foregate, overturning stalls
and hounding the abbey stewards. Before long they’ll be in the town gaol with
sore heads, wishing they’d had better sense than pick a fight with the abbot of
a Benedictine house.”
His
eye was on Cadfael, who was busy righting and retrieving the fugitive casks,
and still within earshot. He felt himself being drawn companionably into this
masterful young man’s planning, perhaps as reassurance and guarantee of
respectability. The eyes were slightly mischievous, though the face retained
its decent gravity. The nearest Benedictine was being gently teased as
representative of his order.
“My name,” said the rescuer blithely, “is
Ivo Corbiиre, of the manor of Stanton Cobbold in this shire, though the main
part of my honour lies in Cheshire . If you’ll allow me, I’m happy to offer my
help…” He had taken his arm from about the girl’s waist by then, decorously if
reluctantly, but his gaze continued to embrace and flatter her; she was well
aware of it, and it did not displease her. “There!” cried Corbiиre triumphantly,
as a shrill whistle resounded from a youth hanging over the parapet of the
bridge above them. “Now watch them dive to cover! Their look-out sees the
sheriff’s men turning out to quell the riot.”
His
judgment was accurate enough. Half a dozen heads snapped up sharply at the
sound, noted the urgently waving arm, and half a dozen dishevelled youths
extricated themselves hastily from the fight, dropped whatever they were
holding, and made off at speed in several directions, some along the Gaye, towards
the coverts by the riverside, some up the slope into the tangle of narrow lanes
behind the Foregate, one under the arch of the bridge, to emerge on the
upstream side with no worse harm than wet feet. In a few moments the sharp
clatter of hooves drummed over the bridge, and half a dozen of the sheriff’s
men came trotting down to the jetty, while the rest of the company swept on
towards the horse-fair.
“As
good as over!” said Ivo Corbiиre gaily. “Brother, will you lend an oar? I fancy
you know this river better than I, and there’s many a man’s hard-won living
afloat out there, and much of it may yet be saved.”
He
asked no leave; he had selected already the smallest and most manageable boat
that swung beside the jetty, and he was across the boards and down into it
almost before the sheriff’s men had driven their mounts in among the
still-locked combatants, and begun to pluck the known natives out by the hair.
Brother Cadfael followed. With Compline but ten minutes away, by his mental
clock, he should have made his escape and left the salvage to this confident
and commanding young man, but he had been sent out here to aid a client of the
abbey fair, and could he not argue that he was still about the very same
business? He was in the borrowed boat, an oar in his hand and his eye upon the
nearest cask bobbing on the bright sunset waters, before he had
found an answer; which was answer enough.
The
noise receded soon. Everyone left here was busily hooking bales and bundles out
of the river, pursuing some downstream to coves where they had lodged,
abandoning one or two small items too sodden and too vulnerable to be saved,
writing off minor losses, thankfully calculating profits still to be made after
fees and rentals and tolls were paid. The damage was not so great, after all,
it could be carried. Along the Foregate stalls were being righted, goods laid
out afresh. Doubtful if the pandemonium had ever reached the horse-fair, where
the great merchants unrolled their bales. In the stony confines of the castle
and the town gaol, no doubt, some dozen or so youngsters of the town were
nursing their bruises and grudges, and wondering how their noble and dignified
protest had disintegrated into such a shambles. As for Philip Corviser, nobody
knew where he had fetched up, once he shook off the devotees who had helped him
away from the jetty in a daze. The brief venture was over, the cost not too
great. Not even the sheriff, Gilbert Prestcote, was going to bear down too hard
on those well-meaning but ill-advised young men of Shrewsbury .
“Gentlemen,”
said Thomas of Bristol, eased and expansive, “I cannot thank you enough for
such generous help. No, the casks will have taken no hurt. Those who buy my
wines should and do store them properly a good while before tapping, their condition
will not be impaired. The sugar confections, thanks be, were not yet unloaded.
No, I have suffered no real hurt. And my child here is much in your debt. Come,
my dear, don’t hide there within, make your respects to such good friends! Let
me present my niece Emma, my sister’s daughter, Emma Vernold, heiress to her
father, who was a master-mason in our city, and also to me, for I have no other
kin. Emma, my dear, you may pour the wine!”
The
girl had made good use of the interval. She came forth now with her braids of
hair coiled in a gilded net on her neck, and a fine tunic of embroidered linen
over her plain gown. Not, thought Cadfael, for my benefit! It was high time for
him to take his leave and return to his proper duties. He had
missed Compline in favour of retrieving goods from the waters, and he would
have to put in an hour or so in his workshop yet before he could seek his bed.
No one would be early to bed on this night, however. Thomas of Bristol was not
the man to leave the supervision of his booth and the disposition of his goods
to others, however trustworthy his three servants might be; he would soon be
off to the horse-fair to see everything safely stowed to his own satisfaction,
ready for the morrow. And if he thought fit to leave those two handsome young
people together here until his return, that was his affair. Mention of the
manor of Stanton Cobbold, and as the least part of Corbiиre’s honour, at that,
had made its impression. There had been no real need for that careful mention
of Mistress Emma’s prospective wealth; but dutiful uncles and guardians must be
ever on the alert for good matches for their girls, and this young man was
already taken with her face before ever he heard of her fortune. Small wonder,
she was a beautiful child by any standards.
Brother
Cadfael excused himself from lingering, wished the company goodnight, and
walked back at leisure to the gatehouse. The Foregate stretched busy and
populous, but at peace. Order had been restored, and Saint Peter’s Fair could
open on the morrow without further disruption.
Chapter
Four
HUGH
BERINGAR CAME BACK FROM A FINAL PATROL along the Foregate well past ten
o’clock, an hour when all dutiful brothers should have been fast asleep in the
dortoir. He was by no means surprised to find that Cadfael was not. They met in
the great court, as Cadfael came back from closing his workshop in the
herb-garden. It was still a clear twilight, and the west had a brilliant
afterglow.
“I
hear you’ve been in the thick of it,” said Hugh, stretching and yawning. “Did
ever I know you when you were not? Mad young fools, what did they hope to do,
that their elders could not! And then to run wild as they did, and ruin their
case even with those who had sympathy for them! Now their sires will have fines
to pay, and the town lose more for the night’s work than ever it stood to gain.
Cadfael, I take no joy in heaving decent, silly lads into prison, I have a foul
taste in my mouth from it. Come into the gatehouse for a while, and share a cup
with me. You may as well stay awake until Matins now.”
“Aline
will be waiting for you,” objected Cadfael.
“Aline,
bless her good sense, will be fast asleep, for I’m bound to the castle yet to
report on this disturbance. I doubt I shall be there over the night. Come and
tell me how all this went wrong, for they tell me it began down at the jetty,
where you were.”
Cadfael
went with him willingly. They sat together in the anteroom of the gatehouse,
and the porter, used to such nocturnal activities when the deputy sheriff of the
shire was lodged within, brought them wine, made tolerant
enquiry of progress, and left them to their colloquy.
“How
many have you taken up?” asked Cadfael, when he had given an account of what
had happened by the river.
“Seventeen.
And it should have been eighteen,” owned Hugh grimly, “if I had not hauled
Bellecote’s boy Edwy aside without witnesses, put the fear of God into him, and
sent him home with a flea in his ear. Not sixteen yet! But sharp enough to know
very well what he was about, the imp! I should not have done it.”
“His
father was one of yesterday’s delegates,” said Cadfael, “and he’s a loyal
child, as well as a bold one. I’m glad you let him away home. And young
Corviser?”
“No,
we’ve not laid hand on him, though a dozen witnesses say he was the ringleader,
and captained the whole enterprise. But he has to go home some time, and he’ll
not get in at the gate a free man. Not a hope of it!”
“He
came lecturing like a doctor,” said Cadfael seriously, “and never a threatening
move. It was when he was struck down that the wild lads took the bit between
their teeth and laid about them. I saw it! The man who struck him lashed out in
alarm, I grant you, but without cause.”
“I
take your word for that, and I’ll stand by it. But he led the attack, and he’ll
end with the rest, as he should, seeing he loosed this on us all. They’ll be
bailed by their fathers, the lot of them,” said Hugh wearily, and passed long
fingers over tired eyelids. “Do I seem to you, Cadfael, to be turning horribly
into a crown official? That I should not like!”
“No,”
said Cadfael judicially, “you’re not too far gone. Still a glint in the eye and
a quirk in the mind. You’ll do yet!”
“Gracious
in you! And you say this Bristol merchant struck the silly wretch down without
provocation?”
“He
imagined provocation. The boy laid a detaining hand on his arm from behind,
meaning no ill, but the man took fright. He had a staff in his hand, he turned
on him and hit out. Felled him like an ox! I doubt if he had the strength to
knock the trestle from under a stall, after that. For all I know, he may be
fallen out of his senses, somewhere, unless his friends have kept their hands
on him.”
Hugh
looked at him across the trestle on which their own elbows were
spread, and smiled. “If ever I want for an advocate, I’ll come running to you.
Well, I do know the lad, he has a well-hung tongue, and lets it wag far too
freely, and he has a hot temper and a warm heart, and lets the pair of them run
away with his own sense—if you claim he has any!”
The
lay porter put his bald brown crown and round red face into the room. “My lord,
there’s a lady here at the gate has a trouble on her mind, and asks a word. One
Mistress Emma Vernold, niece to the merchant Thomas of Bristol. Will you have
her come in?”
They
looked at each other across the board with raised brows and startled eyes. “The
same man?” said Beringar, marvelling.
“The
same man, surely! And the same girl! But the uproar was all over. What can she
be wanting here at this hour, and what’s her uncle about, letting her venture
loose into the night?”
“We’d
best be finding out,” said Hugh, resigned. “Let the lady come in, if I’m the
man she wants.”
“She
asked first for a guest here, Ivo Corbiиre, but I know he’s still out viewing
the preparations along the Foregate. And when I mentioned that you were here,
she begged a word with you. Glad to find the law here and awake, seemingly.”
“Ask
her to step in, then. And Cadfael, stay, if you’ll be so good, she’s had speech
with you already, she may be glad of a known face.”
Emma
Vernold came in hurriedly yet hesitantly, unsure of herself in this unfamiliar
place, and made a hasty reverence. “My lord, I pray your pardon for troubling
you so late…” She saw Brother Cadfael, and half-smiled, relieved but
distracted. “I am Emma Vernold, I came with my uncle, Thomas of Bristol, we
have our own living-space on his barge by the bridge. And this is my uncle’s
man Gregory.” It was the youngest of the three who attended her, a gawky, lean
but powerful fellow of about twenty.
Beringar
took her by the hand and put her into a seat by the table. “I’m here to serve
you, as best I can. What’s your trouble?”
“Sir,
my uncle went to see to the stocking of his booth at the horse-fair, it was not
long after the good brother here left us. You’ll have heard all
that happened, below there? My uncle went to join his other two men, who were
busy there before him, and left only Gregory with me. But that’s nearly two
hours ago, and he has not come back.”
“He
will have brought a great deal of merchandise with him,” suggested Hugh
reasonably. “It takes time to arrange things to the best vantage, and I imagine
your uncle will have things done well.”
“Oh,
yes, indeed he will. But it isn’t just that he is so long. The two men with him
were his journeyman, Roger Dod, and the porter Warin, and Warin sleeps in the
booth to mind the goods. Roger came back to the barge an hour ago, and was
surprised not to find my uncle back, for he said he left the booth well before
him. We thought perhaps he had met some acquaintance on the way, and stopped to
exchange the news with him, so we waited some while, but still he did not come.
And now I have been back to the booth with Gregory, to see if by some chance he
had turned back there for something, something forgotten, perhaps. But he has
not, and Warin says, as Roger does, that my uncle left first, intending to come
straight home to me, it being so late. He never liked—he does not like,” she
amended, paling, “for me to be alone with the men, without his company.” Her
eyes were steady and clear, but her lip quivered, and there was the faint
suggestion of disquiet even in the unflinching firmness of her regard.
She
knows she is fair, Cadfael thought, and she’s right to take account of it. It
may even be that one of them—Roger Dod, the most privileged of the three,
perhaps?—has a fancy for her, and she knows that, too, and has no fancy for
him, and whether justly or not, is uneasy about being close to him without her
guardian by.
“And
you are sure he has not made his way home by some other way,” asked Hugh,
“while you’ve been seeking him at his booth?”
“We
went back. Roger waited there, for that very case, but no, he has not come. I
asked those still working in the Foregate if they had seen such a man, but I
could get no news. And then I thought that perhaps—“ She turned in appeal to
Cadfael. “The young gentleman who was so kind, this evening—he
is staying here in the guest-hall, so he told us. I wondered if perhaps my
uncle had met him again on his way home, and lingered… And he, at least, knows
his looks, and could tell me if he has seen him. But he is not yet back, they
tell me.”
“He
left the jetty earlier than your uncle, then?” asked Cadfael. The young man had
looked very well settled to spend a pleasant hour or two in the lady’s company,
but perhaps her formidable uncle had ways of conveying, even to lords of
respectable honours, that his niece was to be approached only when he was
present to watch over her.
Emma
flushed, but without averting her eyes; eyes which were seen to be thoughtful,
resolute and intelligent, for all her milk-and-roses baby-face. “Very soon
after you, brother. He was at all points correct and kind. I thought to come
and ask for him, as someone on whom I could rely.”
“I’ll
ask the porter to keep a watch for him,” offered Cadfael, “and have him step in
here when he returns. Even the horse-fair should be on its way to bed by now,
and he’ll be needing his own sleep if he’s to hunt the best bargains tomorrow,
which is what I take it he’s here for. What do you say, Hugh?”
“A
good thought,” said Hugh. “Do it, and we’ll make provision to look for Master
Thomas, though I trust all’s well with him, for all this delay. The eve of a
fair,” he said, smiling reassurance at the girl, “and there are contacts to be
made, customers already looking over the ground… A man can forget about his
sleep with his mind on business.”
Brother
Cadfael heard her sigh: “Oh, yes!” with genuine hope and gratitude, as he went
to bid the porter intercept Ivo Corbiиre when he came in. His errand could
hardly have been better timed, for the man himself appeared in the gateway. The
main gate was already closed, only the wicket stood open, and the dip of the
gold head stepping through caught the light from the torch overhead, and burned
like a minor sun. Bare-headed, with his cotte slung on one shoulder in the warm
last night of July, Ivo Corbiиre strolled towards his bed almost rebelliously,
with a reserve of energy still unspent. The snowy linen shirt glowed in the
lambent dark with a ghostly whiteness. He was whistling a street tune, more
likely Parisian than out of London, by the cadence of it. He had
certainly drunk reasonably deep, but not beyond his measure, nor even up to it.
He was alert at a word.
“What,
you, brother? Out of bed before Matins?” Amiable though his soft laughter was,
he checked it quickly, sensing something demanding gravity of him. “You were
looking for me? Something worse fell out? Good God, the old man never killed
the fool boy, did he?”
“Nothing
so dire,” said Cadfael. “But there’s one within here at the gatehouse came
looking for you, with a question. You’ve been about the Foregate and the
fairground all this time?”
“The
whole round,” said Ivo, his attention sharpening. “I have a new and draughty manor
to furnish in Cheshire. I’m looking for woollens and Flemish tapestries. Why?”
“Have
you seen, in your wanderings, Master Thomas of Bristol? At any time since you
left his barge earlier this evening?”
“I
have not,” said Ivo, wondering, and peered closely “in the strange, soft light
of midsummer, an hour short of midnight.
“What
is this? The man made it clear—he has practice, which is no marvel!—that his
girl is to be seen only in his presence and with his sanction, and small blame
to him, for she’s gold, with or without his gold. I respected him for it, and I
left. Why? What follows?”
“Come
and see,” said Cadfael simply, and led the way within.
The
young man blinked in the sudden light, and opened his eyes wide upon Emma. It
was a question which of them showed the more distracted. The girl rose,
reaching eager hands and then half-withdrawing them. The man sprang forward
solicitously to welcome the clasp.
“Mistress
Vernold! At this hour? Should you…” He had a grasp of the company and the
urgency by then. “What has happened?” he asked, and looked at Beringar.
Briskly,
Beringar told him. Cadfael was not greatly surprised to see that Corbiиre was
relieved rather than dismayed. Here was a young, inexperienced girl, growing
nervous all too easily when she was left alone an hour or so too long, while no doubt her uncle, very travelled and experienced indeed,
and well able to take care of himself, was in no sort of trouble at all, but
merely engaged in a little social indulgence with a colleague, or busy assessing
the goods and worldly state of some of his rivals.
“Nothing
ill will have happened to him,” said Corbiиre cheerfully, smiling reassurance
at Emma, who remained, for all that, grave and anxious of eye. And she was no
fool, Cadfael reflected, watching, and knew her uncle better than anyone else
here could claim to know him. “You’ll see, he’ll come home in his own good
time, and be astonished to find you so troubled for him.”
She
wanted to believe it, but her eyes said she could not be sure. “I hoped he
might have met you again,” she said, “or that at least you might have seen
him.”
“I
wish it were so,” he said. “It would have been my pleasure to set your mind at
rest. But I have not seen him.”
“I
think,” said Beringar, “this lies now with me. I have still half a dozen men
here within the walls, we’ll make a search for Master Thomas. In the meantime,
the hour is late, and you should not be wandering in the night. It will be best
if your man here returns to the barge, while you, madam, if you consent, can
very well join my wife, here in the guest-hall. Her maid Constance will make
room for you, and find you whatever you need over the night.” There was no
knowing whether he had noted her uneasiness about returning to the barge, just
as acutely as Cadfael had, or was simply placing her in the nearest safe
charge, and the best; but she brightened so eagerly, and thanked him so
fervently, that there was no mistaking the relief she felt.
“Come,
then,” he said gently, “I’ll see you safely into Constance’s care, and then you
may leave the searching to us.”
“And
I,” said Corbiиre, shrugging enthusiastically into the sleeves of his cotte,
“will bear a hand with you in the hunt, if you’ll have me.”
They
combed the whole length of the Foregate, Beringar, with his six men-at-arms,
Ivo Corbiиre, as energetic and wide-awake as at noon, and Brother Cadfael, who
had no legitimate reason to go with them at all, beyond the
pricking of his thumbs, and the manifest absurdity of going to his bed at such
an hour, when he would in any case have to rise again at midnight for Matins.
If that was excuse enough for sharing a drink with Beringar, it was excuse
enough for taking part in the hunt for Thomas of Bristol. For truly, thought
Cadfael, shaking his head over the drastic events of the evening, I shall not
be easy until I see that meaty blue-jowled face again, and hear that loud,
self-confident voice. Corbiиre might shrug off the merchant’s non-return as a
mere trivial departure from custom, such as every man makes now and again, and
on any other day Cadfael would have agreed with him; but too much had happened
since noon today, too many people had been trapped into outrageous and
uncharacteristic actions, too many passions had been let loose, for this to be
an ordinary day. It was even possible that someone had stepped so far aside
from his usual self as to commit deliberate violence by stealth in the night,
to avenge what had been done openly and impulsively in the day. Though God
forbid!
They
had begun by making certain that there was still no word or sign at the jetty.
No, Thomas had neither appeared nor sent word, and Roger Dod’s forays among the
other traders along the riverside, as far as he dared go from the property he
guarded, had elicited no news of his master.
He
was a burly, well-set-up young man of about thirty, this Roger Dod, and very
personable, if he had not been so curt and withdrawn in manner. No doubt he was
anxious, too. He answered Hugh’s questions in the fewest possible words, and
gnawed an uncertain lip at hearing that his master’s niece was now lodged in
the abbey guest-hall. He would have come with them to help in their search, but
he was responsible for his master’s belongings, and would have to be answerable
for their safety when his master returned. He stayed with the barge, and sent
the mute and sleepily resentful Gregory to lead them straight to the booth
Master Thomas had rented. Beringar’s sergeant, with three men, was left behind
to work his way gradually along the Foregate after them, questioning every
waking stallholder as he went, while the rest followed the porter to the
fairground. The great open space was by this time half-asleep, but still
winking with occasional torches and braziers, and murmuring with
subdued voices. For these three days in the year it was transformed into a
tight little town, busy and populous, to vanish again on the fourth day.
Thomas
had chosen a large booth almost in the centre of the triangular ground. His
goods were neatly stacked within, and his watchman was awake and prowling the
ground uneasily, to welcome the arrival of authority with relief. Warm was a
leathery, middle-aged man, who had clearly been in his present service many
years, and was probably completely trusted within his limits, but had not the
ability ever to rise to the position Roger Dod now held.
“No,
my lord,” he said anxiously, “never a word since, and I’ve been on watch every
moment. He set off for his barge a good quarter of an hour before Roger left.
We had everything stowed to his liking, he was well content. And he’d had a
fall not so long before—you’d know of that?— and was glad enough, I’d say, to
be off home to his bed. For after all, he’s none so young, no more than I am,
and he carried more weight.”
“And
he set off from here, which way?”
“Why,
straight to the highroad, close by here. I suppose he’d keep along the
Foregate.”
Behind
Cadfael’s shoulder a familiar voice, rich and full and merrily knowing, said in
Welsh: “Well, well, brother, out so late? And keeping the law company! What would
the deputy sheriff of the shire want with Thomas of Bristol’s watchman at this
hour? Are they on the scent of all Gloucester’s familiars, after all? And I
claimed commerce was above the anarchy!” Narrowed eyes twinkled at Cadfael in
the light of the dispersed torches and the far-distant stars in a perfect
midsummer sky. Rhodri ap Huw was chuckling softly and fatly at his own teasing
wit and menacing sharpness of apprehension.
“You
keep a friendly eye out for your neighbours?” said Cadfael, innocently approving.
“I see you brought off all your own goods without scathe.”
“I
have a nose for trouble, and the good sense to step out of its way,” said
Rhodri ap Huw smugly. “What’s come to Thomas of Bristol? He was not so quick on
the scent, it seems. He could have loosed his mooring and poled
out into the river till the flurry was over, and been as safe as in the west
country.”
“Did
you see him struck down?” asked Cadfael deceitfully; but Rhodri was not to be
caught.
“I
saw him strike down the other young fool,” he said, and grinned. “Why, did he
come to grief after I left? And which of them is it you’re looking for, Thomas
or the lad?” And he stared with marked interest to see the sheriff’s men
probing at the backs of stalls, and under the trestles, and followed
inquisitively on their heels as they worked their way back along the highroad.
Evidently nothing of moment was to be allowed to happen at this fair without
Rhodri ap Huw being present at it, or very quickly and minutely informed of it.
And why not make use of, his perspicacity?
“Thomas’s
niece is in a taking because he has not come back to his barge. That might mean
anything or nothing, but now it’s gone on so long, his men are getting uneasy,
too. Did you see him leave his booth?”
“I
did. It might be as much as two hours ago. And his journeyman some little while
after him. A fair size of a man, to be lost between here and the river. And no
word of him anywhere since then?”
“Not
that we’ve found, or likely to find, without questioning every trader and every
idler in all this array. And the wiser half of them getting their sleep in
ready for the morning.”
They
had reached the Foregate and turned towards the town, and still Rhodri strode
companionably beside Cadfael, and had taken to peering into the dark spaces
between stalls just as the sheriff’s men were doing. Lights and braziers were
fewer here, and the stalls more modest, and the quiet of the night closed in
drowsily. On their left, under the abbey wall, a few compact but secure booths
were arrayed. The first of them, though completely closed in and barred for the
night, showed through a chink the light of a candle within. Rhodri dug a
weighty elbow into Cadfael’s ribs.
“Euan
of Shotwick! No one is ever going to get at him from the rear, he likes a
corner backed into two walls if he can get it. Travels alone with a pack-pony,
and wears a weapon, and can use it, too. A solitary soul because he trusts nobody. His own porter—luckily his wares weigh light for their
value—and his own watchman.”
Ivo
Corbiиre had loitered to go aside between the stalls, some of which in this
stretch were still unoccupied, waiting for the local traders who would come
with the dawn. The consequent darkness slowed their search, and the young man,
not at all averse to spending the night without sleep, and probably encouraged
by the memory of Emma’s bright eyes, was tireless and thorough. Even Cadfael
and Rhodri ap Huw were some yards ahead of him when they heard him cry after
them, high and urgently:
“Good
God, what’s here? Beringar, come back here!”
The
tone was enough to bring them running. Corbiиre had left the highway, probing
between stacked trestles and leaning canvas awnings into darkness, but when
they peered close there was lambent light enough from the stars for accustomed
eyes to see what he had seen. From beneath a light wooden frame and stretched
canvas jutted two booted feet, motionless, toes pointed skywards. For a moment
they all stared in silence, dumbstruck, for truth to tell, not one of them had
believed that the merchant could have come to any harm, as they all agreed
afterwards. Then Beringar took hold of the frame and hoisted it away from the
trestles against which it leaned, and dim and large in the darkness they saw a
man’s long shape, from the knees up rolled in a cloak that hid the face. There
was no movement, and no noticeable sound.
The
sergeant leaned in with the one torch they had brought with them, and Beringar
reached a hand to the folds of the cloak, and began to draw them back from the
shrouded head and shoulders. The movement of the cloth released a powerful wave
of an odour that made him halt and draw suspicious breath. It also disturbed
the body, which emitted an enormous snore, and a further gust of spirituous
breath.
“Dead
drunk and helpless,” said Beringar, relieved. “And not, I fancy, the man we’re
looking for. The state he’s in, this fellow must have been here some hours
already, and if he comes round in time to crawl away before dawn it will be a
miracle. Let’s have a look at him.” He was less gingerly now in dragging the
cloak away, but the drunken man let himself be hauled about and dragged forth
by the feet with only a few disturbed grunts, and subsided into stertorous
sleep again as soon as he was released. The torch shone its
yellow, resinous light upon a shock-head of coarse auburn hair, a pair of wide
shoulders in a leather jerkin, and a face that might have been sharp, lively
and even comely when he was awake and sober, but now looked bloated and
idiotic, with open, slobbering mouth and reddened eyes.
Corbiиre
took one close look at him, and let out a gasp and an oath. “Fowler! Devil take
the sot! Is this how he obeys me? By God, I’ll make him sweat for it!” And he
filled a fist with the thick brown hair and shook the fellow furiously, but got
no more out of him than a louder snort, the partial opening of one glazed eye,
and a wordless mumble that subsided again as soon as he was dropped,
disgustedly and ungently, back into the turf.
“This
drunken rogue is mine… my falconer and archer, Turstan Fowler,” said Ivo
bitterly, and kicked the sleeper in the ribs but not savagely. What was the
use? The man would not be conscious for hours yet, and what he suffered
afterwards would pay him all his dues. “I’ve a mind to put him to cool in the
river! I never gave him leave to quit the abbey precinct, and by the look of
him he’s been out and drinking— Good God, the reek of it, what raw spirit can
it be?—since ever I turned my back.”
“One
thing’s certain,” said Hugh, amused, “he’s in no case to walk back to his bed.
Since he’s yours, what will you have done with him? I would not advise leaving
him here. If he has anything of value on him, even his hose, he might be
without it by morning. There’ll be scavengers abroad in the dark hours—no fair escapes
them.”
Ivo
stood back and stared down disgustedly at the oblivious culprit. “If you’ll
lend me two of your men, and let us borrow a board here, we’ll haul him back
and toss him into one of the abbey’s punishment cells, to sleep off his
swinishness on the stones, and serve him right. If we leave him there unfed all
the morrow, it may frighten him into better sense. Next time, I’ll have his
hide!”
They
hoisted the sleeper on to a board, where he sprawled aggravatingly into ease
again, and snored his way along the Foregate so blissfully that his bearers
were tempted to tip him off at intervals, by way of recompensing themselves for
their own labour. Cadfael, Beringar and the remainder of the party were
left looking after them somewhat ruefully, their own errand still unfulfilled.
“Well,
well!” said Rhodri ap Huw softly into Cadfael’s ear, “Euan of Shotwick is
taking a modest interest in the evening’s happenings, after all!”
Cadfael
turned to look, and in the shuttered booth tucked under the wall a hatch had
certainly opened, and against the pale light of a candle a head leaned out in
sharp outline, staring towards where they stood. He recognised the
high-bridged, haughty nose, the deceptively meagre slant of the lean shoulders,
before the hatch was drawn silently to again, and the glover vanished.
They
worked their way doggedly, yard by yard, all the way back to the riverside,
where Roger Dod was waiting in a fume of anxiety, but they found no trace of
Thomas of Bristol.
A
late boat coming up the Severn from Buildwas next day, and tying up at the
bridge about nine in the morning, delayed its unloading of a cargo of pottery
to ask first that a message be sent to the sheriff, for they had other cargo
aboard, taken up out of a cove near Atcham, which would be very much the
sheriff’s business. Gilbert Prestcote, busy with other matters, sent from the
castle his own sergeant, with orders to report first to Hugh Beringar at the
abbey.
The
particular cargo the potter had to deliver lay rolled in a length of coarse
sail-cloth in the bottom of the boat, and oozed water in a dark stain over the
boards. The boatman unfolded the covering, and displayed to Beringar’s view the
body of a heavily-built man of some fifty to fifty-five years, fleshy, with
thinning, grizzled hair and bristly, bluish jowls, his pouchy features sagging
doughily in death. Master Thomas of Bristol, stripped of his elaborate
capuchon, his handsome gown, his rings and his dignity, as naked as the day he
was born.
“We
saw his whiteness bobbing under the bank,” said the potter, looking down upon
his salvaged man, “and poled in to pick him up, the poor soul. I can show you
the place, this side of the shallows and the island at Atcham. We thought best
to bring him here, as we would a drowned man. But this one,” he said very
soberly, “did not drown.”
No, Thomas of Bristol had not
drowned. That was already evident from the very fact that he had been stripped
of everything he had on, and hardly by his own hands or will. But also, even
more certainly, from the incredibly narrow wound under his left shoulder-blade,
washed white and closed by the river, where a very fine, slender dagger had
transfixed him and penetrated to his heart.
The
First Day of the Fair
Chapter
One
THE
FIRST DAY OF SAINT PETER’S FAIR was in full swing, and the merry, purposeful
hum of voices bargaining, gossiping and crying wares came over the wall into
the great court, and in at the gatehouse, like the summer music of a huge hive
of bees on a sunny day. The sound pursued Hugh Beringar back to the apartment
in the guest-hall, where his wife and Emma Vernold were very pleasurably
comparing the virtues of various wools, and the maid Constance, who was an
expert spinstress, was fingering the samples critically and giving her advice.
On
this domestic scene, which had brought back the fresh colour to Emma’s cheeks
and the animation to her voice, Hugh’s sombre face cast an instant cloud. There
was no time for breaking news circuitously, nor did he think that this girl
would thank him for going roundabout.
“Mistress
Vernold, my news is ill, and I grieve for it. God knows I had not expected
this. Your uncle is found. A boat coming up early this morning from Buildwas
picked up his body from the river.”
The
colour ebbed from her face. She stood with frightened, helpless eyes gazing
blindly before her. The prop of her life had suddenly been plucked away, and
for a moment it seemed that all balance was lost to her, and she might indeed
fall for want of him. But by the time she had drawn breath deep, and shaped
soundlessly: “Dead!” it was clear that she was firm on her own feet again, and
in no danger of falling. Her eyes, once the momentary panic and
dizziness passed, looked straight at Hugh and made no appeal.
“Drowned?”
she said. “But he swam well, he was raised by the river. And if he drank at
all, it was sparingly. I do not believe he could fall into Severn and drown.
Not of himself!” she said, and her large eyes dilated.
“Sit
down,” said Hugh gently, “for we must talk a little, and then I shall leave you
with Aline, for of course you must remain here in our care for this while. No,
he did not drown. Nor did he come by his death of himself. Master Thomas was
stabbed from behind, stripped, and put into the river after death.”
“You
mean,” she said, in a voice low and laboured, but quite steady, “he was waylaid
and killed by mere sneak-thieves, for what he had on him? For his rings and his
gown and his shoes?”
“It
is what leaps to the mind. There are no roads in England now that can be called
safe, and no great fair that has not its probable underworld of hangers-on, who
will kill for a few pence.”
“My
uncle was not a timid man. He has fought off more than one attack in his time,
and he never avoided a journey for fear in his life. After all these years,”
she said, her voice aching with protest, “why should he fall victim now to such
scum? And yet what else can it be?”
“There
are some people recalling,” said Hugh, “that there was an ugly incident on the
jetty last evening, and violence was done to a number of the merchants who were
unloading goods and setting up stalls for the fair. It’s common knowledge there
was bad blood between town and traders, of whom Master Thomas was perhaps the
most influential. He was involved bitterly with the young man who led the raid.
An attack made in revenge, by night, perhaps in a drunken rage, might end
mortally, whether it was meant or no.”
“Then
he would have been left where he lay,” said Emma sharply. “His attacker would
think only of getting clean away unseen. Those angry people were not thieves,
only townsmen with a grievance. A grievance might turn them into murderers, but
I do not think it would turn them into thieves.”
Hugh
was beginning to feel considerable respect for this girl, as Aline, by her detached
silence and her attentive face, had already learned to do. “I
won’t say but I agree with you there,” he admitted. “But it might well occur to
a young man turned murderer almost by mishap, to dress his crime as the common
sneak killing for robbery. It opens so wide a field. Twenty young men bitterly
aggrieved and hot against your uncle for his scorn of them could be lost among
a thousand unknown, and the most unlikely suspects among them, at that, if this
passes as chance murder for gain.”
Even
in the bleak newness of her bereavement, this thought troubled her. She bit a
hesitant lip. “You think it may have been one of those young men? Or more of
them together? That they burned with their grudge until they followed him in
the dark, and took this way?”
“It’s
being both thought and said,” owned Hugh, “by many people who witnessed what
happened by the river.”
“But
the sheriff’s men,” she pointed out, frowning, “surely took up many of those
young men long before my uncle went to the fairground. If they were already in
prison, they could not have harmed him.”
“True
of most of them. But the one who led them was not taken until the small hours
of the morning, when he came reeling back to the town gate, where he was
awaited. He is in a cell in the castle now, like his fellows, but he was still
at liberty long after Master Thomas failed to come back to you, and he is under
strong suspicion of this death. The whole pack of them will come before the
sheriff this afternoon. The rest, I fancy, will be let out on their fathers’
bail, to answer the charges later. But for Philip Corviser, I greatly doubt it.
He will need to have better answers than he was able to give when they took
him.”
“This
afternoon!” echoed Emma. “Then I should also attend. I was a witness when this
turmoil began. The sheriff should hear my testimony, too, especially if my
uncle’s death is in question. There were others—Master Corbiиre, and the
brother of the abbey, the one you know well…”
“They
will be attending, and others besides. Certainly your witness would be
valuable, but to ask it of you at such a time…”
“I
would rather!” she said firmly. “I want my uncle’s murderer caught, if indeed
he was murdered, but I pray no innocent man may be too hurriedly blamed. I
don’t know—I would not have thought he looked like a murderer… I
should like to tell what I do know, it is my duty.”
Beringar
cast a brief glance at his wife for enlightenment, and Aline gave him a smile
and the faintest of nods.
“If
you are resolved on that,” he said, reassured, “I will ask Brother Cadfael to
escort you. And for the rest, you need have no anxieties about your own
situation. It will be necessary for you to stay here until this matter is
looked into, but naturally you will remain here in Aline’s company, and you
shall have every possible help in whatever dispositions you need to make.”
“I
should like,” said Emma, “to take my uncle’s body back by the barge to Bristol
for burial.” She had not considered, until then, that there would be no
protector for her on the boat this time, only Roger Dod, whose mute but
watchful and jealous devotion was more than she could bear, Warin who would
take care to notice nothing that might cause him trouble, and poor Gregory, who
was strong and able of body but very dull of wit. She drew in breath sharply,
and bit an uncertain lip, and the shadow came back to her eyes. “At least, to
send him back… His man of law there will take care of his affairs and mine.”
“I
have spoken to the prior. Abbot Radulfus sanctions the use of an abbey chapel,
your uncle’s body can lie there when he is brought from the castle, and all due
preparations will be made for his decent coffining. Ask for anything you want,
it shall be at your disposal. I must summon your journeyman to attend at the
castle this afternoon, too. How would you wish him to deal, concerning the
fair? I will give him whatever instructions you care to send.”
She
nodded understanding, visibly bracing herself again towards a world of shrewd
daily business which had not ceased with the ending of a life. “Be so kind as
to tell him,” she said, “to continue trading for the three days of the fair, as
though his master still presided. My uncle would scorn to go aside from his
regular ways for any danger or loss, and so will I in his name.” And suddenly,
as freely and as simply as a small child, she burst into tears at last.
When
Hugh was gone about his business, and Constance had withdrawn at Aline’s nod,
the two women sat quietly until Emma had ceased to weep, which
she did as suddenly as she had begun. She wept, as some women have the gift of
doing, without in the least defacing her own prettiness and without caring
whether she did or no. Most lose the faculty, after the end of childhood. She
dried her eyes, and looked up straightly at Aline, who was looking back at her
just as steadily, with a serenity which offered comfort without pressing it.
“You
must think,” said Emma, “that I had no deep affection for my uncle. And indeed
I don’t know myself that you would be wrong. And yet I did love him, it has not
been only loyalty and gratitude, though those came easier. He was a hard man,
people said, hard to satisfy, and hard in his business dealings. But he was not
hard to me. Only hard to come near. It was not his fault, or mine.”
“I
think,” said Aline mildly, since she was being invited closer, “you loved him
as much as he would let you. As he could let you. Some men have not the gift.”
“Yes.
But I would have liked to love him more. I would have done anything to please
him. Even now I want to do everything as he would have wished. We shall keep
the booth open as long as the fair lasts, and try to do it as well as he would
have done. All that he had in hand, I want to see done thoroughly.” Her voice
was resolute, almost eager. Master Thomas would certainly have approved the set
of her chin and the spark in her eye. “Aline, shall I not be a trouble to you
by staying here? I—my uncle’s men—there’s one who likes me too well…”
“So
I had thought,” said Aline. “You’re most welcome here, and we’ll not part with
you until you can be sent back safely to Bristol, and your home. Not that I can
find it altogether blameworthy in the young man to like you, for that matter,”
she added, smiling.
“No,
but I cannot like him well enough. Besides, my uncle would never have allowed
me to be there on the barge without him. And now I have duties,” said Emma,
rearing her head determinedly and staring the uncertain future defiantly in the
face. “I must see to the ordering of a fine coffin for him, for the journey
home. There will be a master-carpenter, somewhere in the town?”
“There
is. To the right, halfway up the Wyle, Master Martin Bellecote. A good man, and
a good craftsman. His lad was among these terrible rioters, as I
hear,” said Aline, and dimpled indulgently at the thought, “but so were half
the promising youth of the town. I’ll come in with you to Martin’s shop.”
“No,”
said Emma firmly. “It will all be tedious and long at the sheriff’s court, and
you should not tire yourself. And besides, you have to buy your fine wools, before
the best are taken. And Brother Cadfael—was that the name?—will show me where
to find the shop. He will surely know.”
“There’s
very little to be known about this precinct and the town of Shrewsbury,” agreed
Aline with conviction, “that Brother Cadfael does not know.”
Cadfael
received the abbot’s dispensation to attend the hearing at the castle, and to
escort the abbey’s bereaved guest, without question. A civic duty could not be
evaded, whether by secular or monastic. Radulfus had already shown himself both
an austere but just disciplinarian and a shrewd and strong-minded business man.
He owed his preferment to the abbacy as much to the king as to the papal
legate, and valued and feared for the order of the realm at least as keenly as
for the state of his own cure. Consequently, he had a use for those few among
the brothers who shared his wide experience of matters outside the cloister.
“This
death,” he said, closeted with Cadfael alone after Beringar’s departure, “casts
a shadow upon our house and our fair. Such a burden cannot be shifted to other
shoulders. I require of you a full account of what passes at this hearing. It
was of me that the elders of the town asked a relief I could not grant. On me
rests the load of resentment that drove those younger men to foolish measures.
They lacked patience and thought, and they were to blame, but that does not
absolve me. If the man’s death has arisen out of my act, even though I could
not act otherwise, I must know it, for I have to answer for it, as surely as
the man who struck him down.”
“I
shall bring you all that I myself see and hear, Father Abbot,” said Cadfael.
“I
require also all that you think, brother. You saw part of what happened
yesterday between the dead man and the living youth. Is it possible that it
could have brought about such a death as this? Stabbed in the
back? It is not commonly the method of anger.”
“Not
commonly.” Cadfael had seen many deaths in the open anger of battle, but he
knew also of rages that had bred and festered into killings by stealth, with
the anger as hot as ever, but turned sour by brooding. “Yet it is possible. But
there are other possibilities. It may indeed be what it first seems, a mere
crude slaughter for the clothes on the body and the rings on the fingers, opportune
plunder in the night, when no one chanced to be by. Such things happen, where
men are gathered together and there is money changing hands.”
“It
is true,” said Radulfus, coldly and sadly. “The ancient evil is always with
us.”
“Also,
the man is of great importance in his trade and his region, and he may have
enemies. Hate, envy, rivalry, are as powerful motives even as gain. And at a
great fair such as ours, enemies may be brought together, far from the towns
where their quarrels are known, and their acts might be guessed at too
accurately. Murder is easier and more tempting, away from home.”
“Again,
true,” said the abbot. “Is there more?”
“There
is. There is the matter of the girl, niece and heiress to the dead man. She is
of great beauty,” said Cadfael plainly, asserting his right to recognise and
celebrate even the beauty of women, though their enjoyment he had now
voluntarily forsworn, “and there are three men in her uncle’s service, shut on
board a river barge with her. Only one of them old enough, it may be, to value
his peace more. One, I think, God’s simpleton, but not therefore blind, or
delivered from the flesh. And one whole, able, every way a man, and enslaved to
her. And this one it was who followed his master from the booth on the fairground,
some say a quarter of an hour after him, some say a little more. God forbid I
should therefore point a finger at an honest man. But we speak of
possibilities. And will speak of them no more until, or unless, they become
more than possibilities.”
“That
is my mind, also,” said Abbot Radulfus, stirring and almost smiling. He looked
at Cadfael steadily and long. “Go and bear witness, brother, as you are
charged, and bring me word again. In your report I shall set my trust.”
Emma had on, perforce, the same gown and
bliaut she had worn the evening before, the gown dark blue like her eyes, but
the tunic embroidered in many colours upon bleached linen. The only concession
she could make to mourning was to bind up her great wealth of hair, and cover
it from sight within a borrowed wimple. Nevertheless, she made a noble mourning
figure. In the severe white frame her rounded, youthful face gained in
concentrated force and meaning what it lost in pure grace. She had a look of
single-minded gravity, like a lance in rest. Brother Cadfael could not yet see
clearly where the lance was aimed.
When
she caught sight of him approaching, she looked at him with pleased
recognition, as the man behind the lance might have looked round at the fixed,
partisan faces of his friends before the bout, but never shifted the focus of
her soul’s intent, which reached out where he could not follow.
“Brother
Cadfael—have I your name right? It’s Welsh, is it not? You were kind,
yesterday. Lady Beringar says you will show me where to find the
master-carpenter. I have to order my uncle’s coffin, to take him back to
Bristol.” She was quite composed, yet still as simple and direct as a child.
“Have we time, before we must go to the castle?”
“It’s
on the way,” said Cadfael comfortably. “You need only tell Martin Bellecote,
whatever you ask of him he’ll see done properly.”
“Everyone
is being very kind,” she said punctiliously, like a well brought-up little girl
giving due thanks. “Where is my uncle’s body now? I should care for it myself,
it is my duty.”
“That
you cannot yet,” said Cadfael. “The sheriff has him at the castle, he must
needs see the body for himself, and have the physician also view it. You need
be put to no distress on that account, the abbot has given orders. Your uncle
will be brought with all reverence to lie in the church here, and the brothers
will make him decent for burial. I think he might well wish, could he tell you
so now, that you should leave all to us. His care for you would reach so far,
and your obedience could not well deny him.”
Cadfael
had seen the dead man, and felt strongly that she should not have the same
experience. Nor was it for her sake entirely that he willed so.
The man she had respected and admired in his monumental dignity, living, had
the right to be preserved for her no less decorously in death.
He
had found the one argument that could deflect her absolute determination to
take charge of all, and escape nothing. She thought about it seriously as they
passed out at the gatehouse side by side, and he knew by her face the moment
when she accepted it.
“But
he did believe that I ought to take my full part, even in his business. He
wished me to travel with him, and learn the trade as he knew it. This is the
third such journey I have made with him.” That reminded her that it must also
be the last. “At least,” she said hesitantly, “I may give money to have Masses
said for him, here where he died? He was a very devout man, I think he would
like that.”
Well,
her reserves of money might now be far longer than her reserves of peace of
mind were likely to be; she could afford to buy herself a little consolation,
and prayers are never wasted.
“That
you may surely do.”
“He
died unshriven,” she said, with sudden angry grief against the murderer who had
deprived him of confession and absolution.
“Through
no fault of his own. So do many. So have saints, martyred without warning. God
knows the record without needing word or gesture. It’s for the soul facing
death that the want of shriving is pain. The soul gone beyond knows that pain
for needless vanity. Penitence is in the heart, not in the words spoken.”
They
were out on the highroad then, turning left towards the reflected sparkle that
was the river between its green, lush banks, and the stone bridge over it, that
led through the drawbridge turret to the town gate. Emma had raised her head,
and was looking at Brother Cadfael along her shoulder, with faint colour
tinting her creamy cheeks, and a sparkle like a shimmer of light from the river
in her eyes. He had not seen her smile until this moment, and even now it was a
very wan smile, but none the less beautiful.
“He
was a good man, you know, Brother Cadfael,” she said earnestly. “He was not
easy upon fools, or bad workmen, or people who cheated, but he was a good man,
good to me! And he kept his bargains, and he was loyal to his
lord…” She had taken fire, for all the softness of her voice and the simplicity
of her plea for him; it was almost as though she had been about to say “loyal
to his lord to the death!” She had that high, heroic look about her, to be
taken very seriously, even on that child’s face.
“All
which,” said Cadfael cheerfully, “God knows, and needs not to be told. And
never forget you’ve a life to live, and he’d want you to do him justice by doing
yourself justice.”
“Oh,
yes!” said Emma, glowing, and for the first time laid her hand confidingly on
his sleeve. “That’s what I want! That’s what I have most in mind!”
Chapter
Two
AT
MARTIN BELLECOTE’S SHOP, off the curve of the rising street called the Wyle,
which led to the centre of the town, she knew exactly what she wanted for her
dead, and ordered it clearly; more, she knew how to value a matching clarity
and forthrightness in the master-carpenter, and yet had time to be pleasantly
distracted by the invasion of his younger children, who liked the look of her
and came boldly to chatter and stare. As for the delinquent Edwy, sent home
overnight after his tongue-lashing from Hugh Beringar, the youngster worked
demurely with a plane in a corner of the shop, and was not too subdued to cast
inquisitive glances of bright hazel eyes at the lady, and one impudent wink at
Brother Cadfael when Emma was not noticing.
On
the way through the town, up the steep street to the High Cross, and down the
gentler slope beyond to the ramp which led up to the castle gateway, she fell
into a thoughtful silence, putting in order her recollections. The shadow of
the gate falling upon her serious face and cutting off the sunlight caused her
eyes to dilate in awe; but the casual traffic of the watch here was no longer
reminiscent of siege and battle, but easy and brisk, and the townspeople went
in and out freely with their requests and complaints. The sheriff was a
strong-minded, taciturn, able knight past fifty, and old in experience of both
war and office, and while he could be heavy-handed in crushing disorder, he was
trusted to be fair in day to day matters. If he had not given the goodmen of
the town much help in making good the dilapidations due to the siege, neither had he permitted them to be misused or heavily taxed to restore the
damage to the castle. In the great court one tower was still caged in timber
scaffolding, one wall shored up with wooden buttresses. Emma gazed, great-eyed.
There
were others going the same way with them, anxious fathers here to bail their
sons, two of the abbey stewards who had been assaulted in the affray, witnesses
from the bridge and the jetty, all being ushered through to the inner ward, and
a chill, stony hall hung with smoky tapestries. Cadfael found Emma a seat on a
bench against the wall, where she sat looking about her with anxious eyes but
lively interest.
“Look,
there’s Master Corbiиre!”
He
was just entering the hall, and for the moment had no attention to spare for
anyone but the hunched figure that slouched before him; blear-eyed but in his
full wits today, going softly in awe of his irate lord, Turstan Fowler made his
powerful form as small and unobtrusive as possible, and mustered patience until
the storm should blow over. And what had he to do here, Cadfael wondered. He
had not been on the jetty, and by the state in which he had been found near
midnight, his memories of yesterday should in any case be vague indeed. Yet he
must have something to say to the purpose, or Corbiиre would not have brought
him here. By his mood last night, he had meant to leave him locked up all day,
to teach him better sense.
“Is
this the sheriff?” whispered Emma.
Gilbert
Prestcote had entered, with a couple of lawmen at his elbows to advise him on the
legalities. This was no trial but it rested with him whether the rioters would
go home on their own and their sires’ bond to appear at the assize, or be held
in prison in the meantime. The sheriff was a tall, spare man, erect and
vigorous, with a short black beard trimmed to a point, and a sharp and daunting
eye. He took his seat without ceremony, and a sergeant handed him the list of
names of those in custody. He raised his eyebrows ominously at the number of
them.
“All
these were taken in riot?” He spread the roll on his table and frowned down at
it. “Very well! There is also the graver matter of the death of Master Thomas
of Bristol. At what hour was the last word we have of Master Thomas alive and
well?”
“According to his journeyman and his
watchman, he left his booth on the horse-fair, intending to return to his
barge, more than an hour past the Compline bell. That is the last word we have.
His man Roger Dod is here to testify that the hour was rather more than a
quarter past nine of the evening and the watchman bears that out.”
“Late
enough,” said the sheriff, pondering. “The fighting was over by then, and
Foregate and fairground quiet. Hugh, prick me off here all those who were then
already in custody. Whatever their guilt for damages to goods and gear, they
cannot have had any hand in this murder.”
Hugh
leaned to his shoulder, and ran a rapid hand down the roster. “It was a sharp
encounter, but short. We had it in hand very quickly, they never reached the
end of the Foregate. This man was picked up last, it might be as late as ten,
but in an ale-house and very drunk, and the ale-wife vouches for his having
been there above an hour. A respectable witness, she was glad to get rid of
him. But he’s clear of the killing. This one crept back to the bridge a little
later, and owned to having been one among the rabble, but we let him home, for
he’s very lame, and there are witnesses to all his moves since before nine.
He’s here to answer for his part in the muster, as he promised. I think you may
safely write him clear of any other blame.”
“It
leaves but one,” said Prestcote, and looked up sharply into Beringar’s face.
“It
does,” said Hugh, and committed himself to nothing further.
“Very
well! Have in all the rest, but keep him aside. Let us hold these two matters
apart, and deal with the lesser first.”
Into
the space roped off along one side the hall, the sheriff’s officers herded
their prisoners, a long file of sullenly sheepish young men, bruised,
dishevelled and sorry for themselves now, but still nursing the embers of a
genuine resentment. There were some torn coats among them, and a purple eye or
two, and the lingering signs of bloody noses and battered crowns, and a night
on the stones of indifferently swept cells had done their best clothes, donned
for dignified battle as knights case themselves in ceremonial armour, no good
at all. There would be indignant mothers scolding bitterly as they
scrubbed and mended, or here and there a young wife doing the nagging on behalf
of all women. The offenders stood in line doggedly, set their jaws, and braced
themselves to endure whatever might follow.
Prestcote
was thorough. Plainly he was preoccupied with the more serious evil, and little
disposed to fulminate overmuch about this civic discord, which in the end had
done comparatively little harm. So though he called every culprit separately,
and had him answer for his own part in the affray, he got through them rapidly
and reasonably. Most of them freely owned that they had taken part, maintained
that the intention had been entirely lawful and peaceable, and the
disintegration later had been unintentional and none of their making. Several
bore witness that they had been with Philip Corviser on the jetty, and told how
he had been assaulted, thus letting loose the riot that followed. Only one here
and there sought to prove that he had never so much as overset one trestle
under a stall, nor even been on the abbey side of Severn that evening. And
those few were already committed deep on the evidence of law-abiding citizens.
Agitated
fathers, vengeful rather than doting, came forward to claim each dejected hero,
pledged attendance at the assize, and offered surety for the pledge. The lame
lad was lectured perfunctorily, and dismissed without penalty. Two who had been
particularly voluble in asserting that they were elsewhere at the time, and
unjustly accused, were returned to their prison for a day or two, to reconsider
the nature of truth.
“Very
well!” said Prestcote, dusting his hands irritably. “Clear the hall, but for
those who have evidence to give concerning Master Thomas of Bristol. And bring
in Philip Corviser.”
The
line of young men had vanished, hustled out and shepherded away by loyal but
exasperated families. At home they would have to sit and nurse sore heads and
sore hearts while fathers hectored and dames wept, pouring out on them all the
fear and worry they had suffered on their behalf. Emma looked after the last of
them with round, sympathetic eyes, as he was haled away by the ear by a
diminutive mother half his size, and shrill as a jay. Poor lad, he needed no
other punishment, he was drowning in mortification already.
She
turned about, and there where his fellows had been, but
monstrously alone in the middle of that stony wall, was Philip Corviser.
He
gripped the rope with both hands, and stood rigidly erect, neck as stiff as a
lance, though for the rest he looked as if his flesh might melt and drop off
the bone, he was so haggard. His extreme pallor, which Cadfael knew for what
raw wine can do to the beginner, the day after his indulgence, Emma almost
certainly took for the fruit of dire injury and great anguish of mind. She
paled in reflection, staring piteously, though he was nothing to her, except
that she had seen him struck down, and been afraid he might not rise again.
For
all his efforts, he was a sorry figure. His best cotte was torn and soiled, and
worse, speckled with drops of blood under his left ear, and vomit about the
skirts. He mustered his gangling limbs gallantly but somewhat uncertainly, and
his harmless, sunburned face, unshaven now and ashen under its tan, blushed to
an unbecoming and unexpected purple when he caught sight of his father, waiting
with laboured patience among the onlookers. He did not look that way again, but
kept his bruised brown eyes fixed upon the sheriff.
He
answered to his name in a voice too loud, from nervous defiance, and agreed to
the time and place of his arrest. Yes, he had been very drunk, and hazy about
his movements, and even about the circumstances of his arrest, but yes, he
would try to answer truthfully to what was charged against him.
There
were several witnesses to testify that Philip had been the originator and
leader of the whole enterprise which had ended so ignominiously. He had been in
the forefront when the angry young men crossed the bridge, he had given the
signal that sent some of the party ahead along the Foregate, while he led a
handful down to the riverside, and entered into loud argument with the
merchants unloading goods there. Thus far all accounts tallied, but from then
on they varied widely. Some had the youths beginning at once to toss
merchandise into the river, and were certain that Philip had been in the thick
of the battle. One or two of the aggrieved merchants alleged with righteous
indignation that he had assaulted Master Thomas, and so began the whole
turmoil. Since they would all have their say, Hugh Beringar had held back his
preferred witnesses until last.
“My
lord, as to the scene by the river, we have here the niece of
Master Thomas, and two men who intervened, and afterwards helped to rescue much
of what had been cast into the river: Ivo Corbiиre of Stanton Cobbold, and
Brother Cadfael of the abbey, who was assisting a Welsh-speaking trader. There
were no others so close to the affair. Will you hear Mistress Vernold?”
Philip
had not realised until that moment that she was present. The mention of her
caused him to look round wildly, and the sight of her stepping shyly forward to
stand before the sheriff’s table brought out a deep and painful blush, that
welled out of the young man’s torn collar and mounted in a great wave to his
red-brown hair. He averted his eyes from her, wishing, thought Cadfael, for the
floor to open and swallow him up. It would not have mattered so much looking a
piteous object to others, but before her he was furious and ashamed. Not even
the thought of his father’s mortification could have sunk his spirits so low.
Emma, after one rapid glance, sympathetic enough, had also turned her eyes
away. She looked only at the sheriff, who returned her straight gaze with
concern and compunction.
“Was
it needful to put Mistress Vernold to this distress, at such a time? Madam, you
could well have been spared an appearance here, the lord Corbiиre and the good
brother would have been witness enough.”
“I
wished to come,” said Emma, her voice small but steady. “Indeed I was not
pressed, it was my own decision.”
“Very
well, if that is your wish. You have heard these varying versions of what
happened. There seems little dispute until these disturbers of the peace came
down to the jetty. Let me hear from you what followed.”
“It
is true that young man was the leader. I think he addressed himself to my uncle
because he seemed the most important merchant then present, but he spoke high
to be heard by all the rest. I cannot say that he uttered any threats, he only
stated that the town had a grievance, and the abbey was not paying enough for
the privilege of the fair, and asked that we, who come to do business here, should
acknowledge the rights of the town, and pay a tithe of our rents and tolls to
the town instead of all to the abbey. Naturally my uncle would not listen, but
stood firm on the letter of the charter, and ordered the young men out of his
way. And when he—the prisoner here—would still be arguing, my
uncle turned his back and shrugged him off. Then the young man laid a hand on
his arm, wanting to detain him still, and my uncle, who had his staff in his
hand, turned and struck out at him. Thinking, I suppose, that he intended him
offence or injury.”
“And
did he not?” The sheriff’s voice indicated mild surprise.
She
cast one brief glance at the prisoner, and one in quest of reassurance at
Brother Cadfael, and thought for a moment. “No, I think not. He was beginning
to be angry, but he had not said any ill word, or made any threatening
movement. And my uncle, of course in alarm, hit hard. It felled him, and he lay
in a daze.” This time she did turn and look earnestly at Philip, and found him
staring at her wide-eyed. “You see he is marked. His left temple.” Dried blood
had matted the thick brown hair.
“And
did he then attempt retaliation?” asked Prestcote.
“How
could he?” she said simply. “He was more than half stunned, he could not rise
without help. And then all the others began to fight, and to throw things into
the river. And Brother Cadfael came and helped him to his feet and delivered
him to his friends, and they took him away. I am sure he could not have walked
unaided. I think he did not know what he was doing, or how he came to such a
state.”
“Not
then, perhaps,” said Prescote reasonably. “But later in the evening, somewhat
recovered, and as he has himself admitted, very drunk, he may well have brooded
on a revenge.”
“I
can say nothing as to that. My uncle would have struck him again, and might
have done him desperate hurt if I had not stopped him. That is not his nature,”
she said firmly, “it was most unlike him, but he was in a rage, and confused.
Brother Cadfael will confirm what I say.”
“At
all points,” said Brother Cadfael. “It is a perfectly balanced and just
account.”
“My
lord Corbiиre?”
“I
have nothing to add,” said Ivo, “to what Mistress Vernold has so admirably told
you. I saw the prisoner helped away by his fellows, and what became of him after
that I have no knowledge. But here is a man of mine, Turstan Fowler, who says
he did see him later in the evening, drinking in an ale-house at
the corner of the horse-fair. I must say,” added Ivo with resigned disgust,
“that his own recollection of the night’s events ought to be as hazy as the
prisoner’s, for we took him up dead drunk past eleven, and by the look of him
he had been in the same state some time then. I had him put into a cell in the
abbey overnight. But he claims his head is clear now, and he knows what he saw
and heard. I thought it best he should speak here for himself.”
The
archer edged forward sullenly, peering up under thick frowning brows, as though
his head still rang.
“Well,
what is it you claim to know, fellow?” asked Prestcote, eyeing him narrowly.
“My
lord, I had no call to be out of the precinct at all, last night, my lord
Corbiиre had given me orders to stay within. But I knew he would spend the
evening looking the ground over, so I ventured. I got my skinful at Wat’s
tavern, by the north corner of the horse-fair. And this fellow was there,
drinking fit to beat me, and I’m an old toper, and can carry it most times. The
place was full, there must be others can tell you the same. He was nursing his
sore head, and breathing fire against the man that gave it him. He swore he’d
be up with him before the night was out. And that’s all the meat of it, my
lord.”
“At
what hour was this?” asked Prestcote.
“Well,
my lord, I was still firm on my feet then, and clear in my mind, and that I
certainly was not later in the evening. It must have been somewhere halfway
between eight and nine. I should have borne my drink well enough if I had not
gone from ale to wine, and then to a fierce spirit, and that last was what laid
me low, or I’d have been back within the wall before my lord came home, and
escaped a night on the stones.”
“It
was well earned,” said Prestcote dryly. “So you took yourself off to sleep off
your load—when?”
“Why,
about nine, I suppose, my lord, and was fathoms deep soon after. Troth, I can’t
recall where, though I remember the inn. They can tell you where I was found
who found me.”
At
this point it dawned abruptly upon Brother Cadfael that by pure chance this
whole interrogation, since Philip had been brought in, had been conducted
without once mentioning the fact that Master Thomas at this
moment lay dead in the castle chapel. Certainly the sheriff had addressed Emma
in tones of sympathy and consideration appropriate to her newly-orphaned state,
and her uncle’s absence might in itself be suggestive, though in view of the
importance of his business at the fair, and the fact that Emma had once, at
least, referred to him in the present tense, a person completely ignorant of
his death would hardly have drawn any conclusion from these hints, unless he
had all his wits about him. And Philip had been all night in a prison cell, and
haled out only to face this hearing, and moreover, was still sick and dulled
with his drinking, his broken head and his sore heart, and in no case to pick
up every inference of what he heard. No one had deliberately laid a trap for
him, but for all that, the trap was there, and it might be illuminating to
spring it.
“So
these threats you heard against Master Thomas,” said Prescote, “can have been
uttered only within an hour, probably less, of the time when the merchant left
his booth to return alone to his barge. The last report we have of him.”
That
was drawing nearer to the spring, but not near enough. Philip’s face was still
drawn, resigned and bewildered, as though they had been talking Welsh over his
head. Brother Cadfael struck the prop clean away; it was high time.
“The
last report we have of him alive,” he said clearly.
The
word might have been a knife going in, the slender kind that is hardly felt for
a moment, and then hales after it the pain and the injury. Philip’s head came
up with a jerk, his mouth fell open, his bruised eyes rounded in horrified
comprehension.
“But
it must be remembered,” continued Cadfael quickly, “that we do not know the
hour at which he died. A body taken from the water may have entered it at any
time during the night, after all the prisoners were in hold, and all honest men
in bed.”
It
was done. He had hoped it would settle the issue of guilt and innocence, at
least to his satisfaction, but now he still could not be quite sure the boy had
not known the truth already. How if he had only held his peace and listened to
the ambiguous voices, and been in doubt whether Master Thomas’s corpse had yet
been found? On the face of it, if he had had any hand in that death, he was a
better player than any of the travelling entertainers who would
be plying their trade among the crowds this evening. His pallor, from underdone
dough, had frozen into marble, he tried to speak and swallowed half-formed
words, he drew huge breaths into him, and straightened his back, and turned
great, shocked eyes upon the sheriff. On the face of it—but every face can
dissemble if the need is great enough.
“My
lord,” pleaded Philip urgently, when he had his voice again, “is this truth?
Master Thomas of Bristol is dead?”
“Known
or unknown to you,” said Prestcote dryly, “—and I hazard no judgment—it is
truth. The merchant is dead. Our main purpose here now is to examine how he
died.”
“Taken
from the water, the monk said. Did he drown?”
“That,
if you know, you may tell us.”
Abruptly
the prisoner turned his back upon the sheriff, took another deep breath into
him, and looked directly at Emma, and from then on barely took his eyes from
her, even when Prestcote addressed him. The only judgment he cared about was
hers.
“Lady,
I swear to you I never did your uncle harm, never saw him again after they
hauled me away from the jetty. What befell him I do not know, and God knows I’m
sorry for your loss. I would not for the world have touched him, even if we had
met and quarrelled afresh, knowing he was your kinsman.”
“Yet
you were heard threatening harm to him,” said the sheriff.
“It
may be so. I cannot drink, I was a fool ever to try that cure. I recall nothing
of what I said, I make no doubt it was folly, and unworthy. I was sore and
bitter. What I set out to do was honest enough, and yet it fell apart. All went
to waste. But if I talked violence, I did none. I never saw the man again. When
I turned sick from the wine I left the tavern and went down to the riverside,
away from the boats, and lay down there until I made shift to drag myself back
to the town. I admit to the trouble that arose out of my acts, and all that has
been said against me, all but this. As God sees me, I never did your uncle any
injury. Speak, and say you believe me!”
Emma
gazed at him with parted lips and dismayed eyes, unable to say
yes or no to him. How could she know what was true and what was lies?
“Let
her be,” said the sheriff sharply. “It is with us you have to deal. This matter
must be probed deeper than has been possible yet. Nothing is proven, but you
stand in very grave suspicion, and it is for me to determine what is to be done
with you.”
“My
lord,” ventured the provost, who had kept his mouth tightly shut until now,
against great temptation, “I am prepared to stand surety for my son to whatever
price you may set, and I guarantee he shall be at your disposal at the assize,
and at whatever time between when you may need to question him. My honour has
never been in doubt, and my son, whatever else, has been known as a man of his
word, and if he gives his bond here he will keep it, even without my
enforcement. I beg your lordship will release him home to my bail.”
“On
no terms,” said Prestcote decidedly. “The matter is too grave. He stays under
lock and key.”
“My
lord, if you so order, under lock and key he shall be, but let it be in my
house. His mother—“
“No!
Say no more, you must know it is impossible. He stays here in custody.”
“There
is nothing against him in the matter of this death,” offered Corbiиre
generously, “as yet, that is, except my rogue’s witness of his threats. And
thieves do haunt such gatherings as the great fairs, and if they can cut a man
out from his fellows, will kill him for the clothes on his back. And surely the
fact that the body was stripped accords better with just such a foul chance
crime for gain? Vengeance has nothing to feed on in a bundle of clothing. The
act is all.”
“True,”
agreed Prestcote. “But supposing a man had killed in anger, perhaps simply gone
too far in an assault meant only to injure, he might be wise enough to strip
his victim, to make it appear the work of common robbers, and turn attention
away from himself. There is much work to be done yet in this case, but meantime
Corviser must remain in hold. I should be failing in my duty if I turned him
loose, even to your care, master provost.” And the sheriff ordered, with a
motion of his hand: “Take him away!”
Philip was slow to move, until the butt
of a lance prodded him none too gently in the side. Even then he kept his chin
on his shoulder for some paces, and his eyes desperately fixed upon Emma’s
distressed and doubting face. “I did not touch him,” he said, plucked forcibly
away towards the door through which his guards had brought him. “I pray you,
believe me!” Then he was gone, and the hearing was over.
Out
in the great court they paused to draw grateful breath, released from the
shadowy oppression of the hall. Roger Dod hovered, with hungry eyes upon Emma.
“Mistress,
shall I attend you back to the barge? Or will you have me go straight back to
the booth? I had Gregory go there to help Warin, while I had to be absent, but
trade was brisking up nicely, they’ll be hard pushed by now. If that’s what you
want? To work the fair as he’d have worked it?”
“That
is what I want,” she said firmly. “To do all as he would have done. You go
straight back to the horse-fair, Roger. I shall be staying with Lady Beringar
at the abbey for this while, and Brother Cadfael will escort me.”
The
journeyman louted, and left them, without a backward glance. But the very rear
view of him, sturdy, stiff and aware, brought back to mind the intensity of his
dark face and burning, embittered eyes. Emma watched him go, and heaved a
helpless sigh.
“I
am sure he is a good man, I know he is a good servant, and has stood loyally by
my uncle many years. So he would by me, after his fashion. And I do respect
him, I must! I think I could like him, if only he would not want me to love
him!”
“It’s
no new problem,” said Cadfael sympathetically. “The lightning strikes where it
will. One flames, and the other remains cold. Distance is the only cure.”
“So
I think,” said Emma fervently. “Brother Cadfael, I must go to the barge, to
bring away some more clothes and things I need. Will you go with me?”
He
understood at once that this was an opportune time. Both Warin and Gregory were
coping with customers at the booth, and Roger was on his way to join them. The
barge would be riding innocently beside the jetty, and no man aboard to trouble
her peace. Only a monk of the abbey, who did not trouble it at
all. “Whatever you wish,” he said. “I have leave to assist you in all your
needs.”
He
had rather expected that Ivo Corbiиre would come to join her once they were out
of the hall, but he did not. It was in Cadfael’s mind that she had expected it,
too. But perhaps the young man had decided that it was hardly worthwhile making
a threesome with the desired lady and a monastic attendant, who clearly had his
mandate, and would not consent to be dislodged. Cadfael could sympathise with
that view, and admire his discretion and patience. There were two days of the
fair left yet, and the great court of the abbey was not so great but guests
could meet a dozen times a day. By chance or by rendezvous!
Emma
was very silent on the way back through the town. She had nothing to say until
they emerged from the shadow of the gate into full sunlight again, above the
glittering bow of the river. Then she said suddenly: “It was good of Ivo to
speak so reasonably for the young man.” And on the instant, as Cadfael flashed
a glance to glimpse whatever lay behind the words, she flushed almost as deeply
as the unlucky lad Philip had blushed on beholding her a witness to his shame.
“It
was very sound sense,” said Cadfael, amiably blind. “Suspicion there may be,
but proof there’s none, not yet. And you set him a pace in generosity he could
not but admire.”
The
flush did not deepen, but it was already bright as a rose. On her ivory, silken
face, so young and unused, it was touching and becoming.
“Oh,
no,” she said, “I only told simple truth. I could do no other.” Which again was
simple truth, for nothing in her life thus far had corrupted her valiant
purity. Cadfael had begun to feel a strong fondness for this orphan girl who
shouldered her load without timidity or complaint, and still had an open heart
for the burdens of others. “I was sorry for his father,” she said. “So decent
and respected a man, to be denied so. And he spoke of his wife… she will be out
of her wits with worry.”
They
were over the bridge, they turned down the green path, trodden almost bare at
this busy, hot time, that led to the riverside and the long gardens and
orchards of the Gaye. Master Thomas’s deserted barge nestled into the green
bank at the far end of the jetty, close-moored. One or two
porters laboured along the boards with fresh stocks from the boats, shouldered
them, and tramped away up the path to replenish busy stalls. The riverside lay
sunlit, radiantly green and blue, and almost silent, but for the summer sounds
of bees drunkenly busy among the late summer flowers in the grass. Almost
deserted, but for a solitary fisherman in a small boat close under the shadow
of the bridge; a comfortable, squarely-built fisherman stripped to shirt and
hose, and bristling thornily with black curls and black bush of beard. Rhodri
ap Huw clearly trusted his servant to deal profitably with his English
customers, or else he had already sold out all the stock he had brought with
him. He looked somnolent, happy, almost eternal, trailing his bait along the
current under the archway, with an occasional flick of a wrist to correct the
drift. Though most likely the sharp eyes under the sleepy eyelids were missing
nothing that went on about him. He had the gift, it seemed, of being
everywhere, but everywhere disinterested and benevolent.
“I
will be quick,” said Emma, with a foot on the side of the barge. “Last night
Constance lent me all that I needed, but I must not continue a beggar. Will you
step aboard, brother? You are welcome! I’m sorry to be so poor a hostess.” Her
lips quivered. He knew the instant when her mind returned to her uncle, lying
naked and dead in the castle, a man she had revered and relied on, and perhaps
felt to be eternal in his solidity and self-confidence. “He would have wished
me to offer you wine, the wine you refused last night.”
“For
want of time only,” said Cadfael placidly, and hopped nimbly over on to the
barge’s low deck. “You go get what you need, child, I’ll wait for you.”
The
space aboard was well organised, the cabin aft rode low, but the full width of
the hull, and though Emma had to stoop her neat head to enter, stepping down to
the lower level within, she and her uncle would have had room within for
sleeping. Little to spare, yet enough, where no alien or suspect thing might
come. But taut, indeed, when she was short of her natural protector, with three
other men closely present on deck outside. And one of them deeply, hopelessly,
in love. Uncles may not notice such glances as his, where their own underlings
are concerned.
She was back, springing suddenly to view
in the low doorway. Her eyes had again that look of shock and alarm, but now
contained and schooled. Her voice was level and low as she said: “Someone has
been here! Someone strange! Someone has handled everything we left here on
board, pawed through my linen and my uncle’s, too, turned every board or cover.
I do not dream, Brother Cadfael! It is title! Our boat has been ransacked while
it was left empty. Come and see!”
It
was without guile that he asked her instantly: “Has anything been taken?”
Still possessed by her discovery, and unguardedly
honest, Emma said: “No!”
Chapter
Three
EVERYTHING
IN THE BOAT, and certainly in the small cabin, seemed to Cadfael to be in
immaculate order, but he did not therefore doubt her judgment. A girl making
her third journey in this fashion, and growing accustomed to making the best
use of the cramped space, would know exactly how she had everything folded and
stowed, and the mere disturbance of a fold, the crumpling of a corner in the
neat low chest under her bench-bed would be enough to alert her, and betray the
intervention of another hand. But the very attempt at perfect restoration was
surprising. It argued that the interloper had had ample time at his disposal,
while all the crew were absent. Yet she had said confidently that nothing had
been stolen.
“You
are sure? You’ve had little time to examine everything here. Best look round
thoroughly and make sure, before we report this to Hugh Beringar.”
“Must
I do that?” she asked, a little startled, even, he thought, a little dismayed.
“If there’s no harm? They are burdened enough with other matters.”
“But
do you not see, child, that this comes too aptly on the other? Your uncle
killed, and now his barge ransacked…”
“Why,
there can surely be no connection,” she said quickly. “This is the work of some
common thief.”
“A
common thief who took nothing?” said Cadfael. “Where there are any number of
things worth the taking!”
“Perhaps
he was interrupted…” But her voice wavered into silence, she could not even
convince herself.
“Does it look so to you? I think he must
have been through all your belongings at leisure, to leave them so neat for
you. And removed himself only when he was satisfied.” But of what? That what he
wanted was not there?
Emma
gnawed a dubious lip, and looked about her thoughtfully. “Well, if we must
report it… You’re right, I spoke too soon, perhaps I should go through
everything. No use telling him but half a tale.”
She
settled down methodically to take out every item of clothing and equipment from
both chests, laying them out on the beds, even unfolding those which showed, to
her eyes at least, the most obvious signs of handling, and refolding them to
her own satisfaction. At the end of it she sat back on her heels and looked up
at Cadfael, thoughtfully frowning.
“Yes,
there have been some things taken, but so cunningly. Small things that would
never have been missed until we got home. There’s a girdle of mine missing, one
with a gold clasp. And a silver chain. And a pair of gloves with gold
embroidery. If my thumbs had not pricked when I came in here, I should not have
missed them, for I shouldn’t have wanted to wear any of them. What could I want
with gloves in August? I bought them all in Gloucester, on the way up the
river.”
“And
of your uncle’s belongings?”
“I
think there is nothing missing. If some moneys were left here, certainly none
are here now, but his strong-box is at the booth. He never carried valuables on
such journeys as this, except the rings he always wore. I should not have had
such rich trifles here myself, if I had not but newly bought them.”
“So
it seems,” said Cadfael, “whoever took the opportunity of stepping aboard
boldly, to see what he could pick up, had the wit to take only trifles he could
slip in his sleeve or his pouch. That makes good sense. However naturally it
was done, he’d be likely to cause some curiosity if he stepped ashore with his
arms full of your uncle’s gowns and shirts.”
“And
we must trouble Hugh Beringar and the sheriff over so trivial a loss?” wondered
Emma, jutting a doubtful lip. “It seems a pity, when he has so many graver
matters on his mind. And you see this is only an ordinary, vulgar filching,
because the boat was left empty a while. Small creatures of prey have an eye to
such chances.”
“Yes, we must,” said Cadfael firmly. “Let
the law be the judge whether this has anything to do with your uncle’s death or
no. That’s not for us to say. You find what you need to take with you, and
we’ll go together and see him, if he’s to be found at this hour.”
Emma
put together a fresh gown and tunic, stockings and shift and other such
mysteries as girls need, with a composure which Cadfael found at once admirable
and baffling. The immediate discovery of the invasion of her possessions had
startled and disturbed her, but she had come to terms with it very quickly and
calmly, and appeared perfectly indifferent to the loss of her finery. He was
just considering how odd it was that she should be so anxious to disconnect
this incident from her uncle’s death, when she herself, in perverse and
unthinking innocence, restored the link.
“Well,
at any rate,” said Emma, gathering her bundle together neatly in the skirt of
the gown, and rising nimbly from her knees, “no one can dare say that the
provost’s son was to blame for this. He’s safe in a cell in the castle, and the
sheriff himself can be his witness this time.”
Hugh
Beringar had shrugged off his duties to enjoy at least the evening meal with
his wife. Mercifully the first day of the fair had passed so far without
further incident, no disorders, no quarrels, no accusations of cheating or
overcharging, no throat-cutting or price-cutting, as though the uproar of the
previous evening, and its deadly result, had chastened and subdued even the
regular offenders. Trade was thriving, rents and tolls bringing in a high
revenue for the abbey, and sales seemed set to continue peacefully well into
the night.
“And
I have bought some spun wool,” said Aline, delighted with her day’s shopping,
“and some very fine woollen cloth, so soft—feel it! And Constance chose two
beautiful fleeces from Cadfael’s Welsh merchant, she wants to card and spin them
herself for the baby. And I changed my mind about a cradle, for I saw nothing
in the fair to match what Martin Bellecote can do. I shall go to him.”
“The
girl is not back yet?” said Hugh, mildly surprised. “She left the castle well
before me.”
“She’ll
have gone to bring some things from the barge. She had nothing with her last
night, you know. And she was going to Bellecote’s shop, too, to
bespeak the coffin for her uncle.”
“That
she’d done on the way,” said Hugh, “for Martin came to the castle about the
business before I left. They’ll be bringing the body down to the chapel here
before dark.” He added appreciatively: “A fair-minded lass, our Emma, as well
as a stout-hearted one. She would not have that fool boy of Corviser’s turned
into the attacker, even for her uncle’s sake. A straight tale as ever was. He
opened civilly, was brusquely received, made the mistake of laying hand on the
old man, and was felled like a poled ox.”
“And
what does he himself say?” Aline looked up intently from the bolt of soft stuff
she was lovingly stroking.
“That
he never laid eyes on Master Thomas again, and knows no more about his death
than you or I. But there’s that falconer of Corbiиre’s says he was breathing
fire and smoke against the old man in Wat’s tavern well into the evening. Who
knows! The mildest lamb of the flock—but that’s not his reputation!—may be
driven to clash foreheads when roused, but the knife in the back, somehow—that
I doubt. He had no knife on him when he was taken up at the gate. We shall have
to ask all his companions if they saw such a thing about him.”
“Here
is Emma,” said Aline, looking beyond him to the doorway.
The
girl came in briskly with her bundle, Brother Cadfael at her shoulder. “I’m
sorry to have been so long,” said Emma, “but we had reason. Something untoward
has happened—oh, it is not so grave, no great harm, but Brother Cadfael says we
must tell you.”
Cadfael
forbore from urging, stood back in silence, and let her tell it in her own way,
and a very flat way it was, as though she had no great interest in her reported
loss. But for all that, she described the bits of finery word for word as she
had described them to him, and went into greater detail of their ornaments. “I
did not wish to bother you with such trumpery thefts. How can I care about a
lost girdle and gloves, when I have lost so much more? But Brother Cadfael
insisted, so I have told you.”
“Brother
Cadfael was right,” said Hugh sharply. “Would it surprise you, child, to know
that we have had not one complaint of mispractice or stealing or
any evil all this day, touching any other tradesman at the fair? Yet one threat
follows another where your uncle’s business is concerned. Can that truly be by
chance? Is there not someone here who has no interest in any other, but all too
much in him?”
“I
knew you would think so,” she said, sighing helplessly. “But it was only by
chance that our barge was left quite unmanned all this afternoon, by reason of
Roger being needed with the rest of us at the castle. I doubt if there was
another boat there unwatched. And common thieves have a sharp eye out for such
details. They take what they can get.”
It
was a shrewd point, and clearly she was not the girl to lose sight of any
argument that could serve her turn. Cadfael held his peace. There would be a
time to discuss the matter with Hugh Beringar, but it was not now. The
questions that needed answers would not be asked of Emma; where would be the
use? She had been born with all her wits about her, and through force of
circumstances she was learning with every moment. But why was she so anxious to
have this search of her possessions shrugged aside as trivial, and having no
bearing on Master Thomas’s murder? And why had she stated boldly, in the first
shook of discovery, indeed without time to view the field in any detail, that
nothing had been taken? As though, disdaining the invasion, she had good reason
to know that it had been ineffective?
And
yet, thought Cadfael, studying the rounded resolute face, and the clear eyes
she raised to Hugh’s searching stare, I would swear this is a good, honest
girl, no way cheat or liar.
“You’ll
not be needing me,” he said, “Emma can tell you all. It’s almost time for
Vespers, and I have still to go and speak with the abbot. There’ll be time
later, Hugh, after supper.” Abbot Radulfus was a good listener. Not once did he
interrupt with comment or question, as Brother Cadfael recounted for him all
that had passed at the sheriff’s hearing and the unexpected discovery at the
barge afterwards. At the end of it he sat for a brief while in silence still,
pondering what he had heard.
“So
we now have one unlawful act of which the man charged cannot possibly be
guilty, whatever may be the truth concerning the other. What do you think, does
this tend to weaken the suspicion against him, even on the
charge of murder?”
“It
weakens it,” said Cadfael, “but it cannot clear him. It may well be true, as
Mistress Vernold believes, that the two things are no way linked, the filching
from the barge a mere snatch at what was available, for want of a watchman to
guard it. Yet two such assaults upon the same man’s life and goods looks like
methodical purpose, and not mere chance.”
“And
the girl is now a guest within our halls,” said Radulfus, “and her safety our
responsibility. Two attacks upon one man’s life and goods, you said. How if
there should be more? If a subtle enemy is pursuing some private purpose, it
may not end with this afternoon’s violation, as we have seen it did not end
with the merchant’s death. The girl is in the care of the deputy sheriff, and
could not be in better hands. But like them, she is a guest under our roof. I
do not want the brothers of our community distracted from their devotions and
duties, or the harmony of our services shaken, I would not have these matters
spoken of but between you and me, and of course as is needful to aid the law.
But you, Brother Cadfael, have already been drawn in, you know the whole state
of the case. Will you have an eye to what follows, and keep watch on our
guests? I place the interests of the abbey in your hands. Do not neglect your
devotional duties, unless you must, but I give you leave to go in and out
freely, and absent yourself from offices if there is need. When the fair ends,
our halls will empty, our tenant merchants depart. It will be out of our hands
then to protect the just or prevent the harm that threatens from the unjust.
But while they are here, let us do what we can.”
“I
will undertake what you wish, Father Abbot,” said Cadfael, “to the best I may.”
He
went to Vespers with a burdened heart and a vexed mind, but for all that, he
was glad of the Abbot’s charge. It was, in any case, impossible to give up
worrying at so tangled a knot, once it had presented itself to his notice, even
apart from the natural concern he felt for the girl, and there was no denying
that the Benedictine round, dutifully observed, did limit a man’s mobility for
a large part of the day.
Meantime,
he drove the affairs of Emma Vernold from his thoughts with a struggle that
should have earned him credit in heaven, and surrendered himself
as best he could to the proper observance of Vespers. And after supper he
repaired to the cloister, and was not surprised to find Hugh Beringar there
waiting for him. They sat down together in a comer where the evening breeze
coiled about them very softly and gratefully, and the view into the garth was
all emerald turf and pale grey stone, and azure sky melting into green, through
a fretwork of briars blowsy with late, drunken-sweet roses.
“There’s
news in your face,” said Cadfael, eyeing his friend warily. “As though we have
not had enough for one day!”
“And
what will you make of it?” wondered Hugh. “Not an hour ago a lad fishing in
Severn hooked a weight of sodden cloth out of the water. All but broke his line,
so he let it back in, but was curious enough to play it to shore until he could
take it up safely. A fine, full woollen gown, made for a big man, and one with
money to spend, too.” He met Cadfael’s bright, alerted eyes, rather matching
certainties than questioning. “Yes, what else? We did not trouble Emma with
it—who would have the heart! She’s drawing Aline a pattern for an embroidered
hem for an infant’s robe, one she got from France. They have their heads
together like sisters. No, we fetched Roger Dod to swear to it. It’s Master
Thomas’s gown, no question. We’re poling down the banks now after hose and
shirt. To any wandering thief that gown was worth a month’s hunting.”
“So
no such leech would have thrown it away,” said Cadfael.
“Never!”
“There
were also rings taken from his fingers. But rings, I suppose, might be too good
to discard, even to prove that this was a murder for hate, not for gain. Rings
would sink even if hurled into the Severn. So why hurl them?”
“As
usual,” said Hugh, elevating thin black brows, “you’re ahead of me rather than
abreast. On the face of it, this was a killing for private malice. So while we
examine it, Ivo Corbiиre very sensibly points out that a murderer so minded
would not have stayed to strip the body and put it into the river, but left it
lying, and made off as fast as he could. Vengeance, he says rightly, has
nothing to feed on in a bundle of clothing. The act is all! And that moved my
sheriff to remark that the same thought might well have occurred
to the murderer, and caused him to strip his victim naked for that very reason,
a hoodwink for the law. Now we drag out of the river the dead man’s gown. And
where does that leave you and me, my friend?”
“In
two minds, or more,” said Cadfael ruefully. “If the gown never had been found,
the notion of common robbery would have held its ground and told in young
Corviser’s favour. Is it possible that what was said in the sheriff’s court put
that thought into someone’s mind for the first time, and drove him to discard
the gown where it was likely to be found? There’s one person it would suit very
well to have the case against your prisoner strengthened, and that’s the
murderer himself. Supposing yon fool boy is not the murderer, naturally.”
“True,
half a case can come to look almost whole by the addition of one more witness.
But what a fool your man would be, to toss the gown away for proof the killing
was not for robbery, thus turning suspicion back upon Philip Corviser, and then
creep aboard the barge and steal, when Philip Corviser is in a cell in the
castle, and manifestly out of the reckoning.”
“Ah,
but he never supposed the theft would be discovered until the barge was back in
Bristol, or well on the way. I tell you, Hugh, I could see no trace of an alien
hand anywhere among those stores on deck or the chattels in the cabin, and Emma
herself said she would not have missed the lost things until reaching home
again. They were bought on this journey, she had no intention of wearing them.
Nothing obvious was stolen, she had almost reached the bottom of her chest
before she found out these few bits of finery were gone. But for her sharp eye
for her own neat housekeeping, she would not have known the boat had been
visited.”
“Yet
robbery points to two separate villains and two separate crimes,” pointed out
Hugh with a wry smile, “as Emma insists on believing. If hate was the force
behind the man’s death, why stoop to pilfer from him afterwards? But do you
believe the two things are utterly separate? I think not!”
“Strange
chances do jostle one another sometimes in this world. Don’t put it clean out
of mind, it may still be true. But I cannot choose but believe that it’s the
same hand behind both happenings, and the same purpose, and it
was neither theft nor hatred, or the death would have ended it.”
“But
Cadfael, in heaven’s name, what purpose that demanded a man’s death could get
satisfaction afterwards from stealing a pair of gloves, a girdle and a chain?”
Brother
Cadfael shook his head helplessly, and had no answer to that, or none that he
was yet prepared to give.
“My
head spins, Hugh. But I have a black suspicion it may not be over yet. Abbot
Radulfus has given me his commission to have an eye to the matter, for the
abbey’s sake, and permission to go in and out as I see fit for the purpose.
It’s at the back of his mind that if there’s some malignant plot in hand
against the Bristol merchant, his niece may not be altogether safe, either. If
Aline can keep her at her side, so much the better. But I’ll be keeping a
watchful eye on her, too.” He rose, yawning. “Now I must be off to Compline. If
I’m to scamp my duties tomorrow, let me at least end today well.”
“Pray
for a quiet night,” said Hugh, rising with him, “for we’ve not the men to mount
patrols through the dark hours. I’ll take one more turn along the Foregate with
my sergeant, as far as the horse-fair, and then I’m for my bed. I saw little
enough of it last night!”
The
night of the first of August, the opening day of Saint Peter’s Fair, was warm,
clear, and quiet enough. Traders along the Foregate kept their stalls open well
into the dark hours, the weather being so inviting that plenty of customers
were still abroad to chaffer and bargain. The sheriff’s officers withdrew into
the town, and even the abbey servants, left to keep the peace if it were
threatened, had little work to do. It was past midnight when the last lamps and
torches were quenched, and the night’s silence descended upon the horse-fair.
Master Thomas’s barge rocked very softly to the
motion of the river. Master Thomas himself lay in a chapel of the abbey,
decently shrouded, and in his workshop in the town Martin Bellecote the
master-carpenter worked late upon the fine, lead-lined coffin Emma had ordered
from him. And in a narrow and dusty cell in the castle, Philip Corviser tossed
and turned and nursed his bruises on a thin mattress of straw, and could not
sleep for fretting over the memory of Emma’s doubting, pitying face.
The
Second Day of the Fair
Chapter
One
THE
SECOND DAY OF THE FAIR DAWNED BRILLIANTLY, a golden sun climbing, faint mist
hanging like a floating veil over the river. Roger Dod rose with the dawn,
shook Gregory awake, rolled up his brychan, washed in the river, and made a
quick meal of bread and small ale before setting off along the Foregate to his
master’s booth. All along the highroad traders were clambering out of their
cloaks, yawning and stretching, and setting out their goods ready for the day’s
business. Roger exchanged greetings with several of them as he passed. Where so
many were gathered at close quarters, even a dour and silent man could not help
picking up acquaintance with a few of his fellows.
The
first glimpse of Master Thomas’s booth, between the busy stirrings of its
neighbours, brought a scowl to Roger’s brow and a muttered oath to his tongue,
for the wooden walls were still fast closed. Every hatch still sealed, and the
sun already climbing! Warin must be fast asleep, inside there. Roger hammered
on the front boards, which should by this hour have been lowered trimly on to
their trestles, and set out with goods for sale. He got no response from
within.
“Warin!”
he bellowed. “Devil take you, get up and let me in!”
No
reply, except that several of the neighbours had turned curiously to listen and
watch, abandoning their own activities to attend to this unexpected clamour.
“Warin!”
bawled Roger, and thumped again vigorously. “You idle swine, what’s come to
you?”
“I did wonder,” said the cloth-merchant
next door, pausing with a bolt of flannel in his arms. “There’s been no sign of
him. A sound sleeper, your watchman!”
“Hold
hard!” The armourer from the other side leaned excitedly over Roger’s shoulder,
and fingered the edge of the wooden door. “Splinters, see?” Beside the latch
the boards showed a few pale threads, hardly enough to be seen, and at the
thrust of his hand the door gave upon a sliver of darkness. “No need to hammer,
the way in is open. A knife has been used on this!” said the armourer, and
there fell a momentary silence.
“Pray
God that’s all it’s been used on!” said Roger in an appalled whisper, and
thrust the door wide. He had a dozen of them at his back by then; even the
Welshman Rhodri ap Huw had come rolling massively between the stalls to join
them, sharp black eyes twinkling out of the thicket of his hair and beard,
though what he made of the affair, seeing he spoke no English, no one stopped
to consider.
From
the darkness within welled the warm scent of timber, wine and sweetmeats, and a
faint, strange sound like the breathy grunting of a dumb man. Roger was
propelled forward into the dimness by the eager helpers crowding at his back,
all agape with curiosity. The stacked bales and small casks of wine took shape
gradually, after the brief blindness of entering this dark place from sunlight.
Everything stood orderly and handy, just as it had been left overnight, and of
Warin there was no sign, until Rhodri ap Huw, ever practical, unbolted the
front hatch and let it down, and the brightness of the morning came flooding
in.
Stretched
along the foot of the same front wall, where Rhodri must almost have set foot
on him, Warin lay rolled in his own cloak and tied at elbows, knees and ankles
with cords, so tightly that he could barely wriggle enough to make the folds of
cloth rustle. There was a sack drawn over his head, and a length of linen
dragged the coarse fibres into his mouth and was secured behind his neck. He
was doing his best to answer to his name, and at least his limited jerkings and
muted grunts made it plain that he was alive.
Roger
uttered a wordless yell of alarm and indignation, and fell on his knees,
plucking first at the linen band that held the sack fast. The coarse cloth was
wet before with spittle, and the mouth within must be clogged
and stung with ropey fibres, but at least the poor wretch could breathe, his
strangled grunts were trying to form words long before the linen parted, and
let him spit out his gag. Still beneath his sack, his hoarse croak demanded
aggrievedly: “Where were you so long, and me half-killed?”
A
couple of pairs of willing hands were at work on the other bonds by that time,
all the more zealously now they had heard him speak, and indeed complain, in
such reassuringly robust tones. Warin emerged gradually from his swaddlings,
unrolled unceremoniously out of the cloak so that he ended face-down on the
ground, and still incoherently voluble. He righted himself indignantly, but so
spryly that it was plain he had no broken bones, no painful injuries, and had
not even suffered overmuch from the cramps of his bonds. He looked up from
under his wild grey thatch of hair, half defensive and half accusing, glaring
round the circle of his rescuers as though they had been responsible for his
hours of discomfort.
“Late’s
better than never!” he said sourly, and hawked, and spat out fibres of sacking.
“What took you so long? Is everybody deaf? I’ve been kicking here half the
night!”
Half
a dozen hands reached pleasurably to hoist him to his feet and sit him down
gently on a cask of wine. Roger stood off and let them indulge their curiosity,
scowling blackly at his colleague meantime. There was no damage done, not a
scratch on the old fool! The first threat, and he had crumpled into a pliable
rag.
“For
God’s sake, what happened to you? You had the booth sealed. How could any man
break in here, and you not know? There are other merchants sleep here with
their wares, you had only to call.”
“Not
all,” said the cloth-merchant fairly. “I myself lie at a tavern, so do many. If
your man was sound asleep, as he well might be with all closed for the night…”
“It
was long past midnight,” said Warin, scrubbing aggrievedly at his chafed
ankles. “I know because I heard the little bell for Matins, over the wall,
before I slept. Not a sound after, until I awoke as that hood came over my
head. They rammed the stuff into my mouth. I never saw face or form, they
rolled me up like a bale of wool, and left me tied.”
“And you never raised a cry!” said Roger
bitterly. “How many were they? One or more?”
Warin
was disconcerted, and wavered, swaying either way. “I think two. I’m not sure…”
“You
were hooded, but you could hear. Did they talk together?”
“Yes,
now I recall there was some whispering. Not that I could catch any words. Yes,
they were two. There was moving about of casks and bales here, that I know…”
“For
how long? They durst not hurry, and have things fall and rouse the fairground,”
said the armourer reasonably. “How long did they stay?”
Warin
was vague, and indeed to a man blindfolded and tied by night, time might
stretch out like unravelled thread. “An hour, it might be.”
“Time
enough to find whatever was of most value here,” said the armourer, and looked
at Roger Dod, with a shrug of broad shoulders. “You’d better look about you,
lad, and see what’s missing. No need to trouble for anything so weighty as
casks of wine, they’d have needed a cart for those, and a cart in the small
hours would surely have roused someone. The small and precious is what they
came for.”
But
Roger had already turned his back on his rescued fellow, and was burrowing frantically
among the bales and boxes stacked along the wall. “My master’s strong-box! I
built it in behind here, out of sight… Thank God I took the most of yesterday’s
gains back to the barge with me last night, and have them safe under lock and
key, but for all that, there was a good sum left in it. And all his accounts,
and parchments…”
He
was thrusting boxes and bags of spices aside in his haste, scenting the air,
pushing out of his way wooden caskets of sugar confections from the east, come
by way of Venice and Gascony, and worth high prices in any market. “Here,
against the wall…”
His
hands sank helplessly, he stood staring in dismay. He had bared the boards of
the booth; goods stood piled on either side, and between them, nothing. Master
Thomas’s strongbox was gone.
Brother Cadfael had taken advantage of
the early hours to put in an hour or two of work with Brother Mark in the
herb-gardens, while he had no reason to anticipate any threat to Emma, for she
was surely still asleep in the guest-hall with Constance, and out of reach of
harm. The morning was clear and sunny, the mist just lifting from the river,
shot through with oblique gold, and Mark sang cheerfully about his weeding, and
listened attentively and serenely as Cadfael instructed him in all particulars
of the day’s work.
“For
I may have to leave all things in your hands. And so I can, safely enough, I
know, if I should chance to be called away.”
“I’m
well taught,” said Brother Mark, with his grave smile, behind which the small
spark of mischief was visible only to Cadfael, who had first discovered and
nurtured it. “I know what to stir and what to let well alone in the workshop.”
“I
wish I could be as sure of my part outside it,” said Cadfael ruefully. “There
are brews among us that need just as sure a touch, boy, and where to stir and
where to let be is puzzling me more than a little. I’m walking a knife-edge,
with disastrous falls on either side. I know my herbs. They have fixed
properties, and follow sacred rules. Human creatures do not so. And I cannot
even wish they did. I would not have one scruple of their complexity done away,
it would be lamentable loss.”
It
was time to go to Prime. Brother Mark stooped to rinse his hands in the butt of
water they kept warming through the day, to be tempered for the herbs at the
evening watering. “It was being with you made me know that I want to be a
priest,” he said, speaking his mind as openly as always in Cadfael’s company.
“I
had never the urge for it,” said Cadfael absently, his mind on other matters.
“I
know. That was the one thing wanting. Shall we go?”
They
were coming out from Prime, and the lay servants already mustering for their
early Mass, when Roger Dod came trudging in at the gatehouse, out of breath,
and with trouble plain to be read in his face.
“What,
again something new?” sighed Cadfael, and set off to intercept
him before he reached the guest-hall. Suddenly aware of this square, sturdy
figure bearing down on him with obvious purpose, Roger checked, and turned an
anxious face. His frown cleared a little when he recognised the same monk who
had accompanied the deputy sheriff in the vain search for Master Thomas, on the
eve of Saint Peter. “Oh, it’s you, brother, that’s well! Is Hugh Beringar
within? I must speak to him. We’re beset! Yesterday the barge, and now the
booth, and God knows what’s yet to come, and what will become of us before ever
we get away from this deadly place. My master’s books gone—money and box and
all! What will Mistress Emma think? I’d rather have had my own head broke, if
need be, than fail her so!”
“What’s
this talk of broken heads?” asked Cadfael, alarmed. “Whose? Are you telling me
there’ve been thieves ransacking your booth now?”
“In
the night! And the strong-box gone, and Warin tied up hand and foot with a
throatful of sacking, and nobody heard sound while they did it. We found him
not half an hour ago…”
“Come!”
said Cadfael, grasping him by the sleeve and setting off for the guest-hall at
a furious pace. “We’ll find Hugh Beringar. Tell your tale once, and save
breath!”
In
Aline’s apartments the women were only just out of bed, and Hugh was sitting
over an early meal in shirt and hose, shoeless, when Cadfael rapped at the
door, and cautiously put his head in.
“Your
pardon, Hugh, but there’s news. May we come in?”
Hugh
took one look at him, recognised the end of his ease, and bade them in
resignedly.
“Here’s
one has a tale to tell,” said Cadfael. “He’s new come from the horse-fair.”
At
sight of Roger, Emma came to her feet in astonishment and alarm, the soft,
bemused bloom of sleep gone from her eyes, and the morning flush from her
cheeks. Her black hair, not yet braided, swung in a glossy curtain about her
shoulders, and her loose undergown was ungirdled, her feet bare. “Roger, what
is it? What has happened now?”
“More
theft and roguery, mistress, and God knows I can see no reason why all the
rascals in the shire should pick on us for prey.” Roger heaved
in deep breath, and launched headlong into his complaint. “This morning I go to
the stall as usual, and find it all closed, and not a sound or a word from
within for all my shouting and knocking, and then come some of the neighbours,
wondering, and one sees that the inside bar has been hoisted with a knife—and a
marvellous thin knife it must have been. And we go in and find Warin rolled up
like baggage in his own cloak, and fast tied, and his mouth stuffed with
sacking—a bag over his head, fit to choke him…”
“Oh,
no!” breathed Emma in a horrified whisper, and pressed a fist hard against
trembling lips. “Oh, poor Warin! He’s not… oh, not dead…?”
Roger
gave vent to a snort of contempt. “Not he! alive and fit as a flea, barring
being stiff from the cords. How he could sleep so sound as not to hear the
fumbling with the latch, nor even notice when the door was opened, there’s no
guessing. But if he did hear, he took good care not to give the robbers any
trouble. You know Warin’s no hero. He says he was only shook awake when the
sack went over his head, and never saw face nor form, though he thinks there were
two of them, for there was some whispering. But as like as not he heard them
come, but chose not to, for fear they’d slip the knife in his ribs.”
Emma’s
colour had warmed into rose again. She drew a deep breath of thankfulness. “But
he’s safe? He’s taken no harm at all?” She caught Aline’s sympathetic eye, and
laughed shakily with relief. “I know he is not brave. I’m glad he is not! Nor
very clever nor very industrious, either, but I’ve known him since I was a
little girl, he used to make toys for me, and willow whistles. Thank God he is
not harmed!”
“Not
a graze! I wish,” said Roger, his eyes burning jealously upon her childish
morning beauty, not yet adorned and needing no adornment, “I wish to God I’d
stayed there to be watchman myself, they’d not have broken in there unscathed,
and found everything handed over on a platter.”
“But
then you might have been killed, Roger. I’m glad you were not there, you’d
surely have put up a fight and come to harm. What, against two, and you
unarmed? Oh, no, I want no man hurt to protect my possessions.”
“What
followed?” asked Hugh shortly, stamping his feet into his shoes
and reaching for his coat. “You’ve left him there to mind the stall? Is he
fit?”
“As
you or me, my lord. I’ll send him to you to tell his own tale when I get back.”
“No
need, I’m coming with you to view the place and the damage. Finish your tale.
They’ll scarcely have left empty-handed. What’s gone with them?”
Roger
turned devoted, humble, apologetic eyes upon Emma. “Sorrow the day, mistress,
my master’s strong-box is gone with them!”
Brother
Cadfael was watching Emma’s face just as intently as was her hopeless admirer,
and it seemed to him that in the pleasure of knowing that her old servant had
survived unharmed, she was proof against all other blows. The loss of the
strong-box she received with unshaken serenity. In these surroundings, safe
from any too pressing manifestation of his passion, she was even moved to
comfort Roger. A kind-hearted girl, who did not like to see any of her own
people out of sorts with his competence and his self-respect.
“You
must not feel it so sharply,” she said warmly. “How could you have prevented?
There is no fault attaches to you.”
“I
took most of the money back to the barge with me last night,” pleaded Roger earnestly.
“It’s safe locked away, there’s been no more tampering there. But Master
Thomas’s account books, and some parchments of value, and charters…”
“Then
there will be copies,” said Emma firmly. “And what is more, if they took the
box, supposing it to be full of money, they’ll keep what money was left there,
and most likely discard the box and the parchments, for what use can they make
of those? We may get most of it back, you will see.”
Not
merely a kind girl, but a girl of sense and fortitude, who bore up nobly under
her losses. Cadfael looked at Hugh, and found Hugh looking at him, just as
woodenly, but with one lively eyebrow signalling slightly sceptical admiration.
“Nothing
is lost,” said Emma firmly, “of any value to compare with a life. Since Warin
is safe, I cannot be sad.”
“Nevertheless,”
said Hugh with deliberation, “it might be well if one abbey sergeant stood
guard on your booth until the fair is over. For it does seem that all the
misfortunes that should be rights be shared among all the
abbey’s clients are falling solely upon you. Shall I ask Prior Robert to see to
it?”
She
looked down, wary and thoughtful, for a moment, and then lifted deep blue eyes
wide and clear as the sky, and a degree more innocent than if they had but
newly opened on the world. “It’s kind of you,” she said, “but surely everything
has now been done to us. I don’t think it will be necessary to set a guard upon
us now.”
Hugh
came to Cadfael’s workshop after the midday meal, leaving Emma in Aline’s
charge, helped himself to a horn of wine from Cadfael’s private store, and
settled down on the bench under the eaves, on the shady side. The fragrance of
the herbs lay like a sleepy load on the air within the pleached hedges, and set
him yawning against his will and his mood, which was for serious discussion.
They were well away from the outer world here, the busy hum of the marketplace
drifted to them only distantly and pleasantly, like the working music of
Brother Bernard’s bees. And Brother Mark, weeding the herb-beds with delicate,
loving hands, habit kilted to his knees, was no hindrance at all to their
solitude.
“A
separate creature,” said Brother Cadfael, eyeing him with detached affection
“My priest, my proxy. I had to find some way of evading the fate that closed on
me. There goes my sacrificial lamb, the best of the flock.”
“Some
day he will take your confession,” said Hugh, watching Mark pluck out weeds as
gently as though he pitied them, “and you’ll be a lost man, for he’ll know
every evasion.” He sipped wine, drew it about his mouth thoughtfully, swallowed
it and sat savouring the after-taste for a moment. “This fellow Warin had
little to add,” he said then. “What do you say now? This cannot be chance.”
“No,”
agreed Cadfael, propping the door of his workshop wide to let in the air, and
coming to sit beside his friend, “it cannot be chance. The man is killed,
stripped, his barge searched, his booth searched. Not a soul besides, at this
fair where there are several as wealthy, has suffered any attack or any loss. No,
there is nothing done at hazard here.”
“What,
then? Expound! The girl claimed there were things stolen from the barge. Now
something positive, a strong-box, the single portable thing in the booth that
might confidently be supposed to hold valuables, is demonstrably
stolen from this last assault. If these are not simple thefts, what are they?
Tell me!”
“Stages
in a quest,” said Cadfael. “It seems to me there’s a hunt afoot for something.
I do not know what, but some quite single, small thing, and precious, which
was, or was thought to be, in the possession of Master Thomas. On the night he
came here he was murdered, and his body stripped. The first search. And it was
fruitless, for the next day his barge was visited and ransacked. The second
search.”
“Not
altogether fruitless this time,” said Beringar dryly, “for we know on the best
authority, do we not, that whoever paid that visit left the richer by three
things, a silver chain, a girdle with a gold clasp, and a pair of embroidered
gloves.”
“Hmmm!”
Cadfael twitched his brown nose doubtfully between finger and thumb, and eyed
the young man sidewise.
“Oh,
come!” said Hugh indulgently, and flashed his sudden smile. “I may not stumble
on these subtleties as quickly as you, but since knowing you I’ve had to keep
my wits about me. The lady has a bold mind and an excellent memory, and I have
no hope in the world of getting her to make a mistake in one detail of the
embroidery on those lost gloves, but for all that, I doubt if they ever
existed.”
“You
might,” Cadfael suggested, though without much hope, “try asking her outright
what it is she’s hiding.”
“I
did!” owned Hugh, ruefully grinning. “She opened great, hurt eyes at me, and
could not understand me! She knows nothing, she’s hiding nothing, she has nothing
to tell more than she’s already told, and every word of that is truth. But for
all that, and however angelically, the girl’s lying. What was it stuck in your
craw, and brought you up against the same shock before ever it dawned upon me?”
“I
should be sorry,” said Cadfael slowly, “if anything I have done or said made
you think any evil of the girl, for I think none.”
“Neither
do I, you need not fear it. But I do think she may be meddling in something she
would do better to let well alone, and I would rather, as you would, as Abbot
Radulfus would, that no harm should come to her under our care. Or ever, for
that matter. I like her well.”
“When
we went together to the barge,” said Cadfael, “and she took no
more than a minute within to cry out that someone had been there, pawing
through all their belongings, I never doubted she was telling truth. Women know
how they leave things, it needs only a wrong fold to betray an alien hand, and
certainly it shocked and startled her, that was no feigning. Nor was it the
next moment, when I asked if anything had been taken, and without pause for
thought, she said: ‘No!’ An absolute no, I would say even triumphant. I thought
little of it, then, but urged her to look thoroughly and make sure. When I said
she must report the matter, she thought again, and took pains to discover that
indeed a few things had been stolen. I think she regretted that ever she had
cried out in the first place, but if the law must know of it, she would ensure
that it was accepted as a trivial theft by some common pick-purse. Truth is
what she told unguardedly, with that scornful ‘no’ of hers. Afterwards she made
to undo the effect by lying, and for one not by nature a liar she did it well.
But for all that, I think, like you, those pretty things of hers never existed,
or never were aboard the barge.”
“Still
remains the question,” said Hugh, considering, “of why she was so sure in the
first place that nothing had been taken.”
“Because,”
said Cadfael simply, “she knew what the thief must have come looking for, and
she knew he had not found it, because she knew it was not there to be found.
The second search was also vain. Whatever it may be, it was not on Master
Thomas’s person, which was clearly the most likely place, nor was it on his
barge.”
“Hence
this third search! So now divine for me, Cadfael, whether this third attempt
has succeeded or no. The merchant’s strong-box is vanished—again a logical
place to keep something so precious. Will this be the end of it?” Cadfael shook
his head emphatically. “This attempt has fared no better than the others,” he
said positively. “You may take that as certain.”
“How
can you be so sure of it?” demanded Hugh curiously.
“You
saw all that I saw. She does not care a farthing for the loss of the
strong-box! As soon as she knew that the man Warm was unhurt, she took
everything else calmly enough. Whatever it is the unknown is seeking, she knew
it was not in the barge, and she knew it was not in the booth.
And I can think of only one reason why she should know so well where it is not,
and that is that she knows equally well where it is.”
“Then
the next possibility the enemy will be considering,” said Hugh with conviction,
“is where she is—on her person or in some hiding-place only she knows of. Well,
we’ll keep a vigilant eye on Emma, between us. No,” said Hugh reflectively, “I
cannot imagine any evil of her, but neither can I imagine how she can be
tangled in something grim enough to bring about murder, violence and theft, nor
why, if she knows herself to be in danger and in need of help, she won’t speak
out and ask for it. Aline has tried her best to get her to confide, and the
girl remains all sweetness and gratitude, but lets no word drop of any burden
she may be carrying. And you know Aline, she draws out confidences without ever
asking a probing question, and whoever can resist her is beyond the reach of
the rest of us…”
“I’m
glad to see you so fond a husband,” said Cadfael approvingly.
“So
you should be, it was you tossed the girl into my arms in the first place.
You’d best be worrying now about what manner of father I shall make! And you
might put in a prayer for me on the issue, some time when you’re on your knees.
No, truly, Cadfael… I wonder about this girl. Aline likes her, and that’s
recommendation enough. And she seems to like Aline—no, more than like! Yet she
never lets down her veils. When she seems most to cherish my most cherishable
lady, she is also more careful not to let slip one unguarded word about her own
situation.”
Brother
Cadfael saw no paradox there. “So she would be, Hugh,” he said gravely. “If she
feels herself to be in danger, the last thing she will do is to draw in beside
her someone she values and likes. By every means in her power—and I think she
is a clever and resourceful girl—she will stand off her friends from any share
in what she is about.”
Beringar
considered that long and sombrely, nursing his empty horn. “Well, all we can do
is hedge her about thick enough to stand off, likewise, whatever move may be
made against her.”
It
had not occurred to him, it was only now insinuating itself into Cadfael’s
thoughts, that the next decisive move might come from Emma
herself, rather than being made against her. A piece of this mystery,
apparently the vital piece, she had in her hands; if any use was to be made of
it, it might well be at her decree.
Hugh
set aside his drinking-horn and rose, brushing the summer dust from his cotte.
“Meantime, the sheriff is left with a murder on his hands, and I tell you,
Cadfael, that affair now looks less than ever like a drunken revenge by an
aggrieved youth of the town—though to tell truth, it never did look too
convincing, even if we could not discard it out of hand.”
“Surely
there’s good ground now for letting the provost bail his lad out and take him
home?” said Cadfael, encouraged. “Of all the young men around this town, Philip
must be the clearest from any suspicion of this last outrage, or the raid on
the barge, either. The gaoler who turns the key on him can witness where he’s
been all this while, and swear he never left it.”
“I’m
off to the castle now,” said Hugh. “I can’t vouch for the sheriff, but I’ll
certainly speak a word in his ear, and in the provost’s, too. It’s well worth
making the approach.”
He
looked down, flashing out of his preoccupation with a sudden mischievous smile,
combed the fingers of one hand through the hedge of bushy greying hair that
rimmed Cadfael’s sunburned tonsure, leaving it bristling like thorn-bushes,
snapped a finger painfully against the nut-brown dome between, and took his
departure with his usual light stride and insouciant bearing, which the unwary
mistook for the mark of a frivolous man. Such small indulgences he was more
likely to permit himself, strictly with friends, when he was engaged on
something more than usually grave.
Cadfael
watched him go, absently smoothing down the warlike crest Hugh had erected. He
supposed he had better be stirring, too, and hand over charge here to Brother
Mark until evening. It would not do to take his eyes off Emma for any length of
time, and Aline, to please a solicitous husband, consented to doze for an hour
or two in the afternoon, for the sake of the child. Grandchildren by proxy,
Cadfael reflected, might be a rare and pleasurable recompense for a celibate
prime. As for old age, he had not yet begun to think about it; no doubt it had
its own alleviations.
Chapter
Two
“FOR
ALL I SAID,” EMMA MUSED ALOUD, putting fine stitches into a linen band for an
infant’s cap, in the lofty midday light in the window of Aline’s bedchamber, “I
do grieve for those gloves of mine. Such fine leather, supple and black, and a
wealth of gold in the embroidery. I never bought such expensive ones before.”
She reached the end of her seam, and snipped off the thread neatly. “They say
there’s a very good glover has a stall in the fair,” she said, smoothing her
work. “I thought I might take a look at his wares, and see if he has anything
as fine as those I’ve lost. They tell me he’s well known in Chester, and the
countess buys from him. I think perhaps I’ll walk along the Foregate this
afternoon, and see what he has. What with all these upsets, I’ve hardly seen
anything of the fair.”
“A
good idea,” said Aline. “Such a fine day, we should not be spending it here
within doors. I’ll come with you.”
“Oh,
no, you should not,” protested Emma solicitously. “You nave not had your sleep
this afternoon. No need to keep me company that short way. I should be
distressed if you tired yourself on my account.”
“Oh,
folly!” said Aline cheerfully. “I am so healthy I shall burst if I have too
little to do. It’s Constance and Hugh who want to make an invalid of me, just
because I’m in a woman’s best and happiest estate. And Hugh is gone to the
sheriff, and Constance is visiting with a cousin of hers in the Wyle, so who’s
to fret? I’ll slip on my shoes, and we’ll go. I should like to
buy a box of those sugared fruits your uncle brought from the east. We’ll do
that, too.”
It
seemed that Emma had, after all, lost her taste for the expedition. She sat
stroking the embroidered band she had just finished, and eyed the shape of
linen cut for the crown. “I don’t know—I should finish this, perhaps. After
tomorrow there may be no choice, and I should be sorry to leave it for someone
else to finish. As for the candied fruits, I’ll ask Roger to bring you a box,
when he comes again this evening to tell me how the day has gone. Tomorrow it
will be here.”
“That’s
kind,” said Aline, slipping on her shoes none the less, “but he could hardly
try on a pair of gloves for you, or choose with your eye. So let’s go and see
for ourselves. It won’t take long.”
Emma
sat hesitating, but whether in a genuine endeavour to make up her mind, or in
search of a way of extricating herself from an unsatisfactory situation, Aline
could not be sure. “Oh, no, I should not! How can I give my mind to such
vanity, at a time like this! I’m ashamed that I ever thought of it. My uncle
dead, and here am I yearning after trumpery bits of finery. No, I won’t be so
shallow. Let me at least go on with my work for the child, instead of thinking
only of my own adornment.” And she picked up the cut linen. Aline noted that
the hand holding it trembled a little, and wondered whether to persist. Plainly
the girl wanted to go forth for some purpose of her own, but would not go unless
it could be alone. And alone, said Aline firmly to herself, she certainly shall
not go, if I can prevent.
“Well,”
she said doubtfully, “if you’re determined to be so penitential, I won’t play
the devil and tempt you. And I’m the gainer, your sewing is so fine, I could
never match it. Who taught you so well?” She slipped off her soft leather
shoes, and sat down again. Something, at least, she had learned, better to let
well alone now. Emma welcomed the change of subject eagerly. Of her childhood
she would talk freely.
“My
mother was a famous embroidress. She began to teach me as soon as I could
manage a needle, but she died when I was only eight, and Uncle Thomas took me
in. We had a housekeeper, a Flemish lady who had married a Bristol seaman,
and been widowed when his ship was lost, and she taught me everything she knew,
though I could never equal her work. She used to make altar cloths and
vestments for the church, such beautiful things…”
So
a plain pair of good black gloves, thought Aline, would have done well enough
for you at any time, since you could have adorned them to your own fancy. And
those who can do such things exquisitely, seldom prefer the work of others.
It
was not difficult to keep Emma talking, but for all that, Aline could not help
wondering what was going through the girl’s mind, and how soon, and how
cunningly, she would make the next bid to slip away solitary about her
mysterious business. But as it fell out, she need not have troubled, for late
in the afternoon came a lay brother from the gatehouse, to announce that Martin
Bellecote had brought down Master Thomas’s coffin, and desired permission to
proceed with his business. Emma rose instantly, laying down her sewing, her
face pale and intent. If there was one thing certain, it was that no other
matter, however urgent, would take her away from the church until her uncle was
decently coffined and sealed down for his journey home, and prayers said for
his repose, as later she would attend the first Mass for him. Whatever he had been
to others, he had been uncle and father and friend to his orphaned kinswoman,
and no reverence, no tribute, would be omitted from his obsequies.
“I
will come myself,” said Emma. “I must say farewell to him.” She had not yet
seen him, dead, but the brothers, long expert in the gentle arts that reconcile
life to death, would have made sure that she would be able to remember him
without distress.
“Shall
I come with you?” offered Aline.
“You
are very good, but I would rather go alone.”
Aline
followed as far as the great court, and watched the little procession cross to
the cloister, Emma walking beside the handcart on which Martin and his son
wheeled the coffin. When they had lifted the heavy box and carried it in by the
south door of the church, with Emma following, Aline stood for some minutes
looking about her. At this hour most of the guests and many of the lay servants
were out at the fair, only the brothers went about their business as usual.
Through the wide gate of the distant stable-yard she could see Ivo Corbiиre’s
young groom rubbing down a pony, and the archer Turstan Fowler sitting on a
mountingblock, whistling as he burnished a saddle. Sober and recovered from his
debauch, he was a well-set-up and comely fellow, with the open face of one who
has not a care in the world. Evidently he was long since forgiven, and back in
favour.
Brother
Cadfael, coming from the gardens, saw her still gazing pensively towards the
church. She smiled at sight of him.
“Martin
has brought the coffin. They are within there, she’ll think of nothing else
now. But, Cadfael, she intends to give us all the slip when she can. She has
tried. She would see, she said, if the glover at the fair has something to take
the place of the ones she lost. But when I said I would go with her, no, that
would not do, she gave up the idea.”
“Gloves!”
murmured Brother Cadfael, scrubbing thoughtfully at his chin. “Strange, when
you think of it, that it should be gloves she has on her mind, in the middle of
summer.”
Aline
was in no position to follow that thought, she took it at its surface meaning.
“Why strange? We know there were some stolen from her, and here we are at one
of the few fairs where rare goods are to be bought, it follows naturally
enough. But of course the glover is only a handy excuse.”
Cadfael
said no more then, but he went away very thoughtfully towards the cloister. The
strange thing was not that a girl should want to replace, while chance offered,
a lost piece of finery. It was rather that when she was suddenly confronted by
the need to pass off as simple robbery a raid she knew to be something very
different, one of the articles she claimed to have lost should be a thing so
inappropriate to the season that she felt obliged to account for it by saying
she had newly bought it in Gloucester on the journey. Why gloves, unless she
had gloves running in her mind already for another reason? Gloves? Or glovers?
In
the transept chapel Martin Bellecote and his young son set up the heavy coffin
on a draped trestle, and reverently laid the body of Master Thomas of Bristol
within it. Emma stood looking down at her uncle’s dead face for a long time,
without tears or words. It would not be painful, she found, to remember him
thus, dignified and remote in death, the bones of his cheeks and
brow and jaw more strongly outlined than in life, his florid flesh contracted
and paled into waxen austerity. Now at the last moment she wanted to give him
something to take with him into his grave, and realised that in the buffeting
of these two days she had not been able to think clearly enough to be ready for
the parting. Not the fact of death, but the absolute need of some ceremonial
tenderness, separate from the public rites, suddenly seemed to her
overwhelmingly important.
“Shall
I cover him?” asked Martin Bellecote gently.
Even
so soft a sound startled her. She looked round almost wonderingly. The man,
large, comely and calm, waited her orders without impatience. The boy, grave
and silent, watched her with huge hazel eyes. From her four years’ superiority
over him she pondered whether so young a creature should be doing this office,
and then she understood that those eyes were preoccupied rather with her living
self than with the dead, and the vigorous, flowing sap in him reached up
towards light and life as to the sun, and recognised shadow only by virtue of
its neighbouring brightness. That was right and good.
“No,
wait just a moment,” she said. “I’ll come back!”
She
went quickly out into the sunlight, and looked about her for the path that led
into the gardens. The green lines of a hedge and the crowns of trees within
drew her, she came into a walk where flowers had been planted. The brothers
were great gardeners, and valued food crops for good reason, but they had time
also for roses. She chose the one bush that bore a bloom like no other, pale
yellow petals shading into rose at the tips, and plucked one flower only. Not
the buds, not even the one perfect globe, but a wide-open bloom just beyond its
prime but still unflawed. She took it back, hurrying, into the church with her.
He was not young, not even at his zenith, but settling into his autumn, and
this was the rose for him.
Brother
Cadfael had watched her go, he watched her come again, and followed her into
the chapel, but held aloof in the shadows. She brought her single flower and
laid it in the coffin, beside the dead man’s heart.
“Cover
him now,” she said, and stood well back to let them work in peace. When it was
done, she thanked them, and they withdrew and left her there,
as clearly was her wish. So, just as silently, did Brother Cadfael.
Emma
remained kneeling on the stones of the transept, unaware of discomfort, a great
while, her eyes wide open all that time upon the closed coffin, on its draped
stand before the altar. To lie thus in the church of a great abbey, to have a
special Mass sung for him, and then to be taken home in a grand coffin for
burial with still further rites, surely that was glory, and he would have liked
it. All was to be done as he would have liked. All! He would be pleased with
her.
She
knew her duty; she said prayers for him, a great many prayers, because the form
was blessedly laid down, and her mind could range while her lips formed the
proper words. She would do what he had wanted done, what he had half-confided
to her, as he had to no other. She would see his task completed, and he would
rest, pleased with her. And then… she had hardly looked beyond, but there was a
great, summer-scented breeze blowing through her spirit, telling her she was
young and fair, and wealthy into the bargain, and that boys like the
coffin-maker’s young son looked upon her with interest and pleasure. Other
young men, too, of less green years…
She
rose from her knees at last, shook out her crumpled skirts, and walked briskly
out of the chapel into the nave of the church, and founding the clustered stone
pillars at the corner of the crossing, came face to face with Ivo Corbiиre.
He
had been waiting, silent and motionless, in his shadowy corner, refraining even
from setting foot in the chapel until her vigil was over, and the resolution
with which she had suddenly ended it flung her almost into his arms. She
uttered a startled gasp, and he put out reassuring hands to steady her, and was
in no haste to let go. In this dim place his gold head showed darkened to
bronze, and his face, stooped over her solicitously, was so gilded by the
summer that it had almost the same fine-metal burnishing.
“Did
I alarm you? I’m sorry! I didn’t want to disturb you. They told me at the
gatehouse that the master-carpenter had come and gone, and you were here. I
hoped if I waited patiently I might be able to talk with you. If I have not
pressed my attentions on you until now,” he said earnestly, “it is not because
I haven’t thought of you. Constantly!”
Her eyes were raised to his face with a
fascinated admiration she would never have indulged in full light, and she
quite forgot to make any move to withdraw herself from his hold. His hands slid
down her forearms, but halted at her hands, and the touch, by mutual consent,
became a clasp.
“Almost
two days since I’ve spoken with you!” he said. “It’s an age, and I’ve grudged
it, but you were well-friended, and I had no right… But now that I have you,
let me keep you for an hour! Come out and walk in the gardens. I doubt if
you’ve even seen them yet.”
They
went out together into the sunlight, through the cloister garth and out into
the bustle and traffic of the great court. It was almost time for Vespers, the
quietest hours of the afternoon now spent, the brothers gathering gradually
from their dispersed labours, guests returning from the fairground and the
riverside. It was a gratifying thing to walk through this populous place on the
arm of a nobleman, lord of a modest honour scattered through Cheshire and Shropshire.
For the daughter of craftsmen and merchants, a very gratifying thing! They sat
down on a stone bench in the flower-garden, on the sunny side of the pleached
hedge, with the heady fragrance of Brother Cadfael’s herbarium wafted to them
in drunken eddies on a soft breeze.
“You
will have troublesome dispositions to make,” said Corbiиre seriously. “If there
is anything I can arrange for you, let me know of it. It will be my pleasure to
serve you. You are taking him back to Bristol for burial?”
“It’s
what he would have wished. There will be a Mass for him in the morning, and
then we shall carry him back to his barge for the journey home. The brothers
have been kindness itself to me.”
“And
you? Will you also return with the barge?”
She
hesitated, but why not confide in him? He was considerate and kind, and quick
to understand. “No, it would be— unwise. While my uncle lived it was very well,
but without him it would not do. There is one of our men—I must say no evil of
him, for he has done none, but… He is too fond. Better we should not travel
together. But neither do I want to offer him insult, by letting him know he is
not quite trusted. I’ve told him that I must remain here a few days, that I may
be needed if the sheriff has more questions to ask, or more is
found out about my uncle’s death.”
“But
then,” said Ivo with warm concern, “what of your own journey home? How will you
manage?”
“I
shall stay with Lady Beringar until we can find some safe party riding south,
with women among them. Hugh Beringar will advise me. I have money, and I can
pay my way. I shall manage.”
He
looked at her long and earnestly, until his gravity melted into a smile.
“Between all your well-wishers, you will certainly reach your home without
mishap. I’ll be giving my mind to it, among the rest. But now let’s forget, for
my sake, that there must be a departure, and make the most of the hours while
you are still here.” He rose, and took her by the hand to draw her up with him.
“Forget Vespers, forget we’re guests of an abbey, forget the fair and the
business of the fair, and all that such things may demand of you in future.
Think only that it’s summer, and a glorious evening, and you’re young, and have
friends… Come down with me past the fish-ponds, as far as the brook. That is all
abbey land, I wouldn’t take you beyond.”
She
went with him gratefully, his hand cool and vital in hers. By the brook below
the abbey fields it was cool and fresh and bright, full of scintillating light
along the water, and birds dabbling and singing, and in the pleasure of the
moment she almost forgot all that lay upon her, so sacred and so burdensome.
Ivo was reverent and gentle, and did not press her too close, but when she said
regretfully that it was time for her to go back, for fear Aline might be anxious
about her, he went with her all the way, her hand still firmly retained in his,
and presented himself punctiliously before Aline, so that Emma’s present
guardian might study, accept and approve him. As indeed she did.
It
was charmingly and delicately done. He made himself excellent company for as
long as was becoming on a first visit, invited and deferred to all Aline’s
graceful questions, and withdrew well before he had even drawn near the end of
his welcome.
“So
that’s the young man who was so helpful and gallant when the riot began,” said
Aline, when he was gone. “Do you know, Emma, I do believe you
have a serious admirer there.” A wooer gained, she thought, might come as a
blessed counter-interest to a guardian lost. “He comes of good blood and
family,” said the Aline Siward who had brought two manors to her husband in her
own right, but saw no difference between her guest and herself, and innocently
ignored the equally proud and honourable standards of those born to craft and
commerce instead of land. “The Corbiиres are distant kin of Earl Ranulf of
Chester himself. And he does seem a most estimable young man.”
“But
not of my kind,” said Emma, as shrewd and wary as she sounded regretful. “I am
a stone-mason’s daughter, and niece to a merchant. No landed lord is likely to
become a suitor for someone like me.”
“But
it’s not someone like you in question,” said Aline reasonably. “It is you!”
Brother
Cadfael looked about him, late in the evening after Compline, saw all things in
cautious balance, Emma securely settled in the guest-hall, Beringar already
home. He went thankfully to bed with his brothers, for once at the proper time,
and slept blissfully until the bell rang to wake him for Matins. Down the night
stairs and into the church the brothers filed in the midnight silence, to begin
the new day’s worship. In the faint light of the altar candles they took their
places, and the third day of Saint Peter’s Fair had begun. The third and last.
Cadfael
always rose for Matins and Lauds not sleepy and unwilling, but a degree more
awake than at any other time, as though his senses quickened to the sense of
separateness of the community gathered here, to a degree impossible by
daylight. The dimness of the light, the solidity of the enclosing shadows, the muted
voices, the absence of lay worshippers, all contributed to his sense of being
enfolded in a sealed haven, where all those who shared in it were his own flesh
and blood and spirit, responsible for him as he for them, even some for whom,
in the active and arduous day, he could feel no love, and pretended none. The
burden of his vows became also his privilege, and the night’s first worship was
the fuel of the next day’s energy.
So
the shadows had sharp edges for him, the shapes of pillar and
capital and arch clamoured like vibrant notes of music, both vision and hearing
observed with heightened sensitivity, details had a quivering insistence.
Brother Mark’s profile against the candle-light was piercingly clear. A note
sung off-key by a sleepy elder stung like a bee. And the single pale speck
lying under the trestle that supported Master Thomas’s coffin was like a hole
in reality, something that could not be there. Yet it persisted. It was at the
beginning of Lauds that it first caught his eye, and after that he could not
get free of it. Wherever he looked, however he fastened upon the altar, he
could still see it out of the corner of his eye.
When
Lauds ended, and the silent procession began to file back towards the night
stairs and the dortoir, Cadfael stepped aside, stooped, and picked up the mote
that had been troubling him. It was a single petal from a rose, its colour
indistinguishable by this light, but pale, deepening round the tip. He knew at
once what it was, and with this midnight clarity in him he knew how it had come
there.
Fortunate,
indeed, that he had seen Emma bring her chosen rose and lay it in the coffin.
If he had not, this petal would have told him nothing. Since he had, it told
him all. With hieratic care and ceremony, after the manner of the young when
moved, she had brought her offering cupped in both hands, and not one leaf, not
one grain of yellow pollen from its open heart, had fallen to the floor.
Whoever was hunting so persistently for something
believed to be in Master Thomas’s possession, after searching his person, his
barge and his booth, had not stopped short of the sacrilege of searching his
coffin. Between Compline and Matins it had been opened and closed again; and a
single petal from the wilting rose within had shaken loose and been wafted
unnoticed over the side, to bear witness to the blasphemy.
The
Third Day of the Fair
Chapter One
EMMA
AROSE WITH THE DAWN, stole out of the wide bed she shared with Constance, and
dressed herself very quietly and cautiously, but even so the sense of movement,
rather than any sound, disturbed the maid’s sleep, and caused her to open eyes
at once alert and intelligent.
Emma
laid a finger to her lips, and cast a meaning glance towards the door beyond
which Hugh and Aline were still sleeping. “Hush!” she whispered. “I’m only
going to church for Prime. I don’t want to wake anyone else.”
Constance
shrugged against her pillow, raised her brows a little, and nodded. Today there
would be the Mass for the dead uncle, and then the transference of his coffin
to the barge that would take him home. Not surprising if the girl was disposed
to turn this day into a penitential exercise, for the repose of her uncle’s
soul and the merit of her own. “You won’t go out alone, will you?”
“I’m
going straight to the church,” promised Emma earnestly.
Constance
nodded again, and her eyelids began to close. She was asleep before Emma had
drawn the door to very softly, and slipped away towards the great court.
Brother
Cadfael rose for Prime like the rest, but left his cell before his companions,
and went to take counsel with the only authority in whom he could repose his
latest discovery. Such a violation was the province of the abbot, and only he
had the right to hear of it first.
With the door of the abbot’s austere cell
closed upon them, they were notably at ease together, two men who knew their
own minds and spoke clearly what they had to say. The rose petal, a little
shrunken and weary, but with its yellow and pink still silken-bright, lay in
the abbot’s palm like a golden tear.
“You
are sure this cannot have fallen when our daughter brought it as an offering?
It was a gentle gift,” said Radulfus.
“Not
one grain of dust fell. She carried it like a vessel of wine, in both hands. I
saw every move. I have not yet seen the coffin by daylight, but I doubt not it
has been dealt with competently, and looks as it looked when the
master-carpenter firmed it down. Nevertheless, it has been opened and closed
again.”
“I
take your word,” said the abbot simply. “This is vile.”
“It
is,” said Cadfael and waited.
“And
you cannot put name to the man who would do this thing?”
“Not
yet.”
“Nor
say if he has gained by it? As God forbid!”
“No,
Father! But God will forbid.”
“Give
your might to it,” said Radulfus, and brooded for a while in silence. Then he
said: “We have a duty to the law. Do what is best there, for I hear you have
the deputy sheriff’s ear. As for the affont to the church, to our house, to our
dead son and his heiress, I am left to read between rubrics. There will be a
Mass this morning for the dead man. The holy rite will cleanse all foulness
from his passing and his coffin. As for the child, let her be at peace, for so
she may, her dead is in the hand of God, there has no violence been done to his
soul.”
Brother
Cadfael said, with hearty gratitude: “She will rest the better if she knows
nothing. She is a good girl, her grief should have every consolation.”
“See
to it, brother, as you may. It is almost time for Prime.”
Cadfael
was hurrying from the abbot’s lodging towards the cloister when he saw Emma
turn in there ahead of him, and slowed his steps to be unnoticed himself while
he watched what she would do. On this of all days Emma was entitled to every
opportunity of prayer and meditation, but she also had a very
private secular preoccupation of her own, and which of these needs she was
serving by this early-rising zeal there was no telling.
In
at the south door went Emma, and in after her, just as discreetly, went Brother
Cadfael. The monks were already in their stalls, and concentrating all upon the
altar. The girl slipped silently round into the nave, as though she would find
herself a retired spot there in privacy; but instead of turning aside, she
continued her rapid, silent passage towards the west door, the parish door that
opened on to the Foregate, outside the convent walls. Except during times of
stress, such as the siege of Shrewsbury the previous year, it was never closed.
In
at one door and out at another, and she was free, for a little while, to go
where she would, and could return by the same way, an innocent coming back from
church.
Brother
Cadfael’s sandals padded soundlessly over the tiled floor after her, keeping
well back in case she should look round, though here within he was reasonably sure
she would not. The great parish door was unlatched, she had only to draw it
open a little way, her slenderness slipped through easily, and since this was
facing due west, no betraying radiance flooded in. Cadfael gave her a moment to
turn right or left outside the door, though surely it would be to the right,
towards the fairground. What should she have to do in the direction of the
river and the town?
She
was well in sight when he slid through the doorway and round the corner of the
west front, and looked along the Foregate. She did not hurry now, but curbed
her pace to that of the early buyers who were sauntering along the highroad,
halting at stalls already busy, handling goods, arguing over prices. The last
day of the fair was commonly the busiest. There were bargains to be snapped up
at the close, and lowered prices. There was bustle everywhere, even at this
hour, but the pace of the ambulant shoppers was leisurely. Emma matched hers to
it, as though she belonged among them, but for all that, she was making her way
somewhere with a purpose. Cadfael followed at a respectful distance.
Only
once did she speak to anyone, and then she chose the holder of one of the
larger stalls, and it seemed that she was asking him for directions, for he
turned and pointed ahead along the street, and towards the
abbey wall. She thanked him, and went on in the direction he had indicated, and
now she quickened her pace. Small doubt that she had known all along to whom
she was bound; apparently she had not known precisely where to find him. Now
she knew. By this time all the chief merchants gathered here knew where to find
one another.
Emma
had come to a halt, almost at the end of the Foregate, where a half-dozen
booths were backed into the abbey wall. It seemed that she had arrived at her
destination, yet now stood hesitant, gazing a little helplessly, as if what she
confronted surprised and baffled her. Cadfael drew nearer. She was frowning
doubtfully at the last of the booths, backed into a corner between buttress and
wall. Cadfael recognised it; a lean, suspicious face had peered out from that
hatch as the sheriff’s officers had hoisted Turstan Fowler on to a board and
borne him away to an abbey cell on the eve of the fair. The booth of Euan of
Shotwick. Here they came again, those imagined gloves, so feelingly described,
so soon stolen!
And
Emma was at a loss, for the booth was fast-closed, every panel sealed, and
business all around in full swing. She turned to the nearest neighbour, clearly
questioning, and the man looked, and shrugged, and shook his head. What did he
know? There had been no sign of life there since last night, perhaps the glover
had sold out and departed.
Cadfael
drew nearer. Beneath the austere white wimple, so sharp a change from the frame
of blue-black hair, Emma’s young profile looked even more tender and
vulnerable. She did not know what to do. She advanced a few steps and raised a
hand, as though she would knock at the closed shutter, but then she wavered and
drew back. From across the street a brawny butcher left his stall, patted her
amiably on the shoulder, and did the knocking for her lustily, then stood to
listen. But there was no move from within.
A
large hand clapped Cadfael weightily on the back, and the cavernous voice of
Rhodri ap Huw boomed in his ear in Welsh: “What’s this, then? Master Euan not
open for trade? That I should see the day! I never knew him to miss a sale
before, or any other thing to his advantage.”
“The
stall’s deserted,” said Cadfael. “The man may have left for home.”
“Not he! He was there past midnight, for
I took a turn along here to breathe the cool before going to my inn, and there
was a light burning inside there then.” No gleam from within now, though the
slanting sunlight might well pale it into invisibility. But no, that was not
so, either. The chinks between shutter and frame were utterly dark.
It
was all too like what Roger Dod had found at another booth, only one day past.
But there the booth had been barred from within, and the bar hoisted clear with
a dagger. Here there was a lock, to be mastered from within or without, and
certainly no visible key.
“This
I do not like,” said Rhodri ap Huw, and strode forward to try the door, and
finding it, as was expected, locked, to peer squint-eyed through the large
keyhole. “No key within,” he said shortly over his shoulder, and peered still.
“Not a movement in there.” He had Cadfael hard on his heels by then, and three
or four others closing in. “Give me room!”
Rhodri
clenched the fingers of both hands in the edge of the door, set a broad foot
against the timber wall, and hauled mightily, square shoulders gathered in one
great heave. Wood splintered about the lock, small flinders flying like motes
of dust, and the door burst open. Rhodri swayed and recovered in recoil, and
was first through the opening, but Cadfael was after him fast enough to ensure
that the Welshman touched nothing within. They craned into the gloom together,
cheek by jowl.
The
glover’s stall was in chaos, shelves swept clear, goods scattered like grain
over the floor. On a straw palliasse along the rear wall his cloak lay
sprawled, and on an iron stand beside, a quenched candle sagged in folds of
tallow. It took them a few seconds to accustom their eyes to the dimness and
see clearly. Tangled in his spilled stock of belts, baldricks, gloves, purses
and saddle-bags, Euan of Shotwick lay on his back, knees drawn up, a coarse
sacking bag drawn half-over his lean face and greying head. Beneath the hem of
the hood his thin-lipped mouth grinned open in a painful rictus, large white
teeth staring, and the angle at which his head lay had the horrible suggestion
of a broken wooden puppet.
Cadfael
turned and flung up the shutter of the booth, letting in the morning light. He
stooped to touch the contorted neck and hollow cheek. “Cold,”
said Rhodri, behind him, not attempting to verify his judgment, which for all
that was accurate enough. Euan’s flesh was chilling. “He’s dead,” said Rhodri
flatly.
“Some
hours,” said Cadfael.
In
the stress of the moment he had forgotten Emma, but the shriek she gave caused
him to swing round in haste and dismay. She had crept in fearfully to peer over
the shoulders of the neighbours, and stood staring with eyes wide with horror,
both small fists crushed against her mouth. “Oh, no!” she said in a whisper.
“Not dead! Not he, too…”
Cadfael
took her in his arms, and thrust her bodily before him out of the booth,
elbowing the gaping onlookers out of his way. “Go back! You mustn’t stay here.
Go back before you’re missed, and leave this to me.” He wondered if she even
heard his rapid murmur into her ear; she was shaking and white as milk, her
blue eyes fixed and huge with shock. He looked about him urgently for someone
to whom he could safely confide her, for he doubted if she should be left to
return alone, and yet he did not care to leave this scene until Beringar should
be here to take charge, or one of the sheriff’s sergeants at least. The sudden
alarmed shout of recognition that came from the rear of the gathering crowd was
a most welcome sound.
“Emma!
Emma!” Ivo Corbiиre came cleaving an unceremonious way through the press, like
a sudden vehement wind in a cornfield, bludgeoning the standing stems out of
its path. She turned at the call, and a spark of returning life sprang up in
her eyes. Thankfully Cadfael thrust her into the young man’s arms, which
reached eagerly and anxiously to receive her.
“For
God’s sake, what has happened to her? What…” His glance flashed from her
stunned visage to Cadfael’s, and beyond, to the open door with its splintered
panel. Over her head his lips framed silently for Cadfael: “Not again?
Another?”
“Take
her back,” said Cadfael shortly. “Take care of her. And tell Hugh Beringar to
come. We have sheriff’s business here within.”
All
the way back along the Foregate, Corbiиre kept a supporting arm about her, and
curbed his long stride to hers, and all the way he poured
soothing, caressing words into her ear, while she, until they had almost
reached the west door of the church, said nothing at all, simply walked
docilely beside him, distantly aware of the lulling sound and the comforting
touch. Then suddenly she said: “He’s dead. I saw him, I know.”
“A
bare glimpse you had,” said Ivo consolingly. “It may not be so.”
“No,”
said Emma, “I know the man is dead. How could it happen? Why?”
“There
are always such acts, somewhere, robberies, violence and evil. It is sad, but
it is not new.” His fingers pressed her hand warmly. “It is no fault of yours,
and alas, there is nothing you or I can do about it. I wish I could make you
forget it. In time you will forget.”
“No,”
she said. “I shall never forget this.”
She
had meant to return by the church, as she had left, but now it no longer
mattered. As far as he or any other was concerned, she had simply set out early
to buy some gloves, or at least to view what the glover had to offer. She went
in with Ivo by the gatehouse. By the time he had brought her tenderly on his
arm to the guest-hall she had regained her composure. There was a little colour
in her face again, and her voice was alive, even if its tone indicated that
life was painful.
“I’m
recovered now, Ivo,” she said. “You need not trouble for me further. I will
tell Hugh Beringar that he is needed.”
“Brother
Cadfael entrusted you to me,” said Ivo with gentle and confident authority,
“and you did not reject me. I shall fulfil my errand exactly. As I hope,” he
said smiling, “I may perform any other missions you may care to entrust to me
hereafter.”
Hugh
Beringar came with four of the sheriff’s men, dispersed the crowd that hung
expectantly round the booth of Euan of Shotwick, and listened to the accounts
rendered by the neighbouring stall-holders, by the butcher from over the road,
and by Rhodri ap Huw, for whom Cadfael interpreted sentence by sentence. In no
haste to go, for as he said, his best lad was back with the boat from
Bridgnorth and competent to take charge of what stock he still
had to sell, the Welshman nonetheless showed no unbecoming desire to linger,
once his witness was taken. Imperturbable and all-beholding, he ambled away at
the first indication that the law had done with him. Others, more persistent,
hung about the booth in a silent, watchful circle, but were kept well away from
earshot. Beringar drew the door to. The opened hatches gave light enough.
“Can
I take the man’s account for fair and true?” asked Hugh, casting a glance after
Rhodri’s retreating back. There was no backward glance from the Welshman, his
assurance was absolute.
“To
the letter, for all that happened here from the time I came on the scene. He’s
an excellent observer, there’s little he misses of what concerns him, or may
concern him, and what does not. He does business, too, his trade here is no
pretext. But it may be only half his business that we see.”
There
were only the two of them within there now, two living and the dead man. They
stood one either side of him, drawn back to avoid disturbing either his body or
the litter of leatherwork scattered about and over him.
“He
says there was a light showing through the chinks here past midnight,” said
Beringar. “The light is quenched now, not burned out. And if he locked his door
after closing the booth for the night…”
“As
he would,” said Cadfael. “Rhodri’s account of him rings true. A man complete in
himself, trusting no one, able to take care of himself, until now. He would
have locked his door.”
“Then
he also unlocked it, to let in his murderer. The lock never was forced until
now, as you saw. Why should a wary man unlock his door to anyone in the small
hours?”
“Because
he was expecting someone,” said Cadfael, “though not the someone who came.
Because, it may be, he had been expecting someone all these three days, and was
relieved when the expected message came at last.”
“So
relieved that he ceased to be cautious? Given your Welshman’s estimate of him,
I should doubt it.”
“So
should I,” agreed Cadfael, “unless there was a private word he was waiting for,
and it was known and given. A name, perhaps. For you see, Hugh, I think he was
already well aware that the one he had expected to deliver the
message was never going to tap at his door by night, or stop in the Foregate to
pass the time with him.”
“You
mean,” said Hugh, “Thomas of Bristol, who is dead.”
“Who
else? How many strange chances can come together, all against what is likely,
or even possible? A merchant is killed, his barge searched, his booth searched,
then, dear God, his coffin! I have not yet had time, Hugh, to tell you of
that.” He told it now. He had the rose-petal in the breast of his habit,
wrapped in a scrap of linen; it still spoke as eloquently as before. “You may
trust my eyes, I know it did not fall earlier, I know it has been in the coffin
with him. Now that same man’s niece makes occasion to come by stealth to this
glover’s stall, only to find the glover dead like her uncle. It is a long list
of assaults upon all things connected with Thomas of Bristol. Now, since this
unknown treasure was not found even in his coffin, for safe-conduct back to
Bristol in default of delivery, the next point of search has been here—where
Master Thomas should have delivered it.”
“They
would need to have foreknowledge of that.”
“Or
good reason to guess aright.”
“By
your witness,” said Hugh, pondering, “the coffin was opened and closed between
Compline and Matins. Before midnight. When would you say, Cadfael—your
experience is longer than mine—when would you say this man died?”
“In
the small hours. By the second hour after midnight, I judge, he was dead. After
the coffin, it seems, they were forced to the conclusion that somehow, for all
they had a watch on Master Thomas from his arrival, and disposed of him before
ever the fair started, yet somehow he, or someone else on his behalf, must have
slipped through their net, and delivered the precious charge. This poor soul
certainly opened his door last night to someone he believed had business with
him. The mention of a privileged name… a password… He let in his murderer, but
what he had expected was the thing promised.”
“Then
even now,” said Hugh sharply, “with two murders on their souls, they have not
what they wanted. He thought they were bringing it. They trusted to find it
here. And neither of them had it. Both were deceived.” He brooded with a brown fist clamping his jaw, and his black brows down-drawn in
unaccustomed solemnity. “And Emma came here… by stealth.”
“She
did. Not every man,” said Cadfael, “has your view of women, or mine. Most of
your kind, most of mine, would never dream of looking in a woman’s direction to
find anything of importance in hand. Especially a mere child, barely grown. Not
until every other road was closed, and they were forced to notice a woman there
in the thick of the matter. Who just might be what they sought.”
“And
who has now betrayed herself,” said Hugh grimly. “Well, at least she reached
the guest-hall safely, thanks to Corbiиre. I have left her with Aline, very
shaken, for all her strength of will, and she will not stir a step this day
unguarded. That I can promise. Between us I think we can take care of Emma. Now
let’s see if this poor wretch has anything to tell us that we don’t yet know.”
He
stooped and drew back the coarse sack that covered half the glover’s narrow
face, from eyebrow on one side to jaw on the other. A broken bruise in the
greying hair above the left temple indicated a right-handed blow as soon as the
door was opened to his visitor, meant to stun him, probably, until he could be
muffled in the sack and gagged like Warin. Here it was a case of gaining entry
and confronting a wide-awake man, not a timid sleeper.
“Much
the same manner as the other one,” said Cadfael, “and I doubt if they ever
meant to kill. But he was not so easily put out of the reckoning. He put up a
fight. And his neck is broken. By the look of it, one made round behind him to
secure this blindfold, and in the struggle he gave them, tried all too hard to
haul him backwards by it. He was wiry and agile, but his bones were aging, and
too brittle to sustain it. I don’t think it was intended. We should have found
him neatly bound and still alive, like Warin, if he had not fought them. Once
they knew he was dead, they made their search in haste, and left all as it
fell.”
Beringar
brushed aside the light tangle of girdles and straps and gloves that littered
the floor and lay over the body. Euan’s right arm was covered from the elbow
down by the skirts of his own gown, kicked out of the way of the searchers in
their hunt. When the folds were drawn down Hugh let out a sharp
whistle of surprise, for in the dead man’s hand was a long poniard, the naked
blade grooved, and ornamented with gilding near the hilt. At his belt,
half-hidden now under his right hip, the scabbard lay empty.
“A
man of his hands! And see, he’s marked one of them for us!” There was blood on
the point of the blade, and drawn up by the grooving for some three fingers’
breadth in two thin crimson lines, now drying to black.
“Rhodri
ap Huw said of him,” Cadfael remembered, “that he was a solitary soul who
trusted nobody—his own porter and his own watchman. He said he wore a weapon,
and knew how to use it.” He went on his knees beside the body, and cleared away
the debris that still lay about it, eying and handling from head to foot.
“You’ll have him away to the castle, I suppose, or the abbey, and look him over
more carefully, but I do believe the only blood he’s lost is this smear on his
brow. This on the dagger is not his.”
“If
only we could as easily say whose it is!” said Hugh dryly, sitting on his heels
with the nimbleness of the young on the other side of the body. Brother Cadfael
eased creaky elderly knees on the hard boards, and briefly envied him. The
young man lifted the stiffening arm, and tested the grip of the clenched
fingers. “He holds fast!” It took him some effort to loosen the convulsive
grasp enough to slip the hilt of the dagger free. In the slanting light from
the open hatch something gleamed briefly, waving at the tip of the blade, and
again vanished, as motes of dust come and go in gold in bright sunlight. There
was also what seemed at first to be a thin encrustation of blood fringing the
steel on one edge. Cadfael exclaimed, leaning to point. “A yellow hair—There it
shows again!” The flashing gleam curled and twisted as Hugh turned the dagger
in his hand.
“Not
a hair, a fine, yellowish thread. Thread of flax, not bleached. This grooving
has ripped out a shred of cloth, and the blood has stuck it fast. See!”
A
mere wisp of brown material it was, a fringe along the groove that had held it.
Narrow as a blade of grass, but when Cadfael carefully took hold of a thread at
the end and drew it out straight, it stretched to the length of his hand. The colour, though fouled by dried blood, showed plain at one edge, a
light russet-brown; and at the end of the sliver floated gaily the long, fine
flax thread, scalloped like a curly hair.
“A
sliced tear a hand long,” said Cadfael, “and ending at a hem, for surely this
thread sewed the edging, and the dagger ripped out a length of the stitching.”
He narrowed his eyes, and considered, imagining Euan facing the door as he
opened it, the instant blow that failed to tame him, and then his rapid drawing
of his poniard and striking with it. Almost brow to brow and breast to breast,
a man good with his right hand, and his attacker’s heart an open target.
“He
struck for the heart,” said Cadfael with conviction. “So would I, or so would I
have done once. The other man, surely, slipped behind him and spoiled the
stroke, but that is where he aimed. Someone, somewhere, has a torn cotte. It
might be in the left breast, or it might be in the sleeve. The man’s arms would
be raised, reaching to grapple him. I should say the left sleeve, ripping from
the hem halfway to the elbow. The sewing thread was caught first, and pulled
out a length of stitches.”
Hugh
considered that respectfully, and found no fault with it. “Much of a scratch,
would you guess? He did not drip blood to the doorway. It could not have been
enough to need much stanching.”
“The
sleeve would hold it. Likely only a graze, but a long graze. It will be there
to be seen.”
“If
we knew where to look!” Hugh gave a short bark of laughter at the thought of
sending sergeants about this teeming marketplace to ask every man to roll up
his left sleeve and show his arm. “A simple matter! Still, no reason why you
and I, and all the men I can spare and trust, should not be keeping our eyes
open all the rest of this day for a torn sleeve—or a newly cobbled one.”
He
rose, and turned to beckon his nearest man from the open hatch. “Well, we’ll
have him away from here, and do what we can. A word with your Rhodri ap Huw
wouldn’t come amiss, and I fancy you might get more out of him in his own
tongue than ever I should at second hand. If he knows this man so well, prick
him on to talk, and bring me what you learn.”
“That I’ll do,” said Cadfael, clambering
stiffly from his knees.
“I
must go first to the castle, and report what we’ve found. One thing I’ll make
certain of this time,” said Hugh. “The sheriff was in no mood to listen too
carefully last night, but after this he’ll have to turn young Corviser loose on
his father’s warranty, like the rest of them. It would take a more pig-headed
man than Prestcote to believe the lad had any part in the first death, seeing
the trail of offences that have followed while he was in prison. He shall eat
his dinner at home today.”
Rhodri
was not merely willing to spend an hour pouring the fruits of his wisdom and
experience into Brother Cadfael’s ear, he was hovering with that very thing in
mind as soon as the corpse of Euan of Shotwick had been carried away, and the
booth closed, with one of the sheriff’s men on guard. Though ever-present, he
had the gift of being unobtrusive until he chose to obtrude, and then could
appear from an unexpected direction, and as casually as if only chance had
brought him there.
“No
doubt you’ll have sold all you brought with you,” said Cadfael, encountering
him thus between the stalls, clearly untroubled by business.
“Goods
of quality are recognized everywhere,” said Rhodri, sharp eyes twinkling
merrily. “My lads are clearing the last few jars of honey, and the wool’s long
gone. But I’ve a half-full bottle there, if you care to share a cup at this
hour? Mead, not wine, but you’ll be happy with that, being a Welshman
yourself.”
They
sat on heaped trestles already freed from their annual use by the removal of
small tradesmen who had sold out their stock, and set the bottle between them.
“And
what,” asked Cadfael, with a jerk of his head towards the guarded booth, “do
you make of that affair this morning? After all that’s gone before? Have we more
birds of prey this way than usual, do you think? It may be they’ve taken fright
and left the shires where there’s still fighting, and we get the burden of it.”
Rhodri
shook his shaggy head, and flashed his large white teeth out of
the thicket in a grin. “I would say you’ve had a more than commonly peaceful
and well-mannered fair, myself—apart from the misfortunes of two merchants
only. Oh, tonight’s the last night, and there’ll be a few drunken squabbles and
a brawl or two, I daresay, but what is there in that? But chance has played no
part in what has happened to Thomas of Bristol. Chance never goes hounding one
man for three days through hundreds of his fellows, yet never grazes one of the
others.”
“It
has more than grazed Euan of Shotwick,” remarked Cadfael dryly.
“Not
chance! Consider, brother! Earl Ranulf of Chester’s eyes and ears comes to a
Shropshire fair and is killed. Thomas of Bristol, from a city that holds by
Earl Robert of Gloucester, comes to the same fair, and is killed the very night
of his coming. And after his death, everything he brought with him is turned
hither and yon, but precious little stolen, from all I hear.” And certainly he
had a way of hearing most of what was said within a mile of him, but at least
he had made no mention of the violation of Master Thomas’s coffin. Either that
had not reached his ears, and never would, or else he had been the first to
know of it, and would be the last ever to admit it. The parish door was always
open, no need to set foot in the great court or pass the gatehouse. “Something
Thomas brought to Shrewsbury is of burning interest to somebody, it seems to
me, and the somebody failed to get hold of it from man, barge or stall. And the
next thing that happens is that Euan of Shotwick is also killed in the night,
and all his belongings ransacked. I would not say but things were stolen there.
They may have learned enough for that, and his goods are small and portable,
and why despise a little gain on the side? But for all that— No, two men from
opposite ends of a divided country, meeting midway, on important private
business? It could be so! Gloucester’s man and Chester’s man.”
“And
whose,” wondered Cadfael aloud, “was the third man?”
“The
third?”
“Who
took such an interest in the other two that they died of it. Whose man would he
be?”
“Why,
there are other factions, and every one of them needs its
intelligencers. There’s the king’s party—they might well feel a strong interest
if they noted Gloucester’s man and Chester’s man attending the same fair midway
between. And not only the king—there are others who count themselves kings on
their own ground, besides Chester, and they also need to know what such a one
as Chester is up to, and will go far to block it if it threatens their own
profit. And then there’s the church, brother, if you’ll take it no offence is
meant to the Benedictines. For you’ll have heard by now that the king has dealt
very hardly with some of his bishops this last few weeks, put up all manner of
clerical backs, and turned his own brother and best ally, Bishop Henry of
Winchester, who’s papal legate into the bargain, into a bitter enemy. Bishop
Henry himself might well have a finger in this pie, though I doubt if he can
have had word of things afoot here in time, being never out of the south. But
Lincoln, or Worcester—all such lords need to know what’s going on, and for men
of influence there are always plenty of bully-boys for hire, who’ll do the
labouring work while their masters sit inviolable at home.”
And
so, thought Cadfael, could wealthy men sit inviolable here in their stalls, in
full view of hundreds, while their hired bully-boys do the dirty work. And this
black Welshman is laying it all out for me plain to be seen, and taking delight
in it, too! Cadfael knew when he was being deliberately teased! What he could
not be quite sure of was whether this was the caprice of a blameless but
mischievous man, or the sport of a guilty one taking pleasure in his own
immunity and cleverness. The black eyes sparkled and the white teeth shone. And
why grudge him his enjoyment, if something useful could yet be gleaned from it?
Besides, his mead was excellent.
“There
must,” said Cadfael thoughtfully, “be others here from Cheshire, even some from
close to Ranulfs court. You yourself, for instance, come from not so far away,
and are knowledgeable about those parts, and the men and the mood there. If you
are right, whoever has committed these acts knew where to look for the thing
they wanted, once they gave up believing that it was still among the effects of
Thomas of Bristol. Now how would they be able to choose, say, between Euan of
Shotwick and you? As an instance, of course! No offence!”
“None in the world!” said Rhodri
heartily. “Why, bless you! The only reason I know myself is because I am myself,
and know I’m not in Ranulf of Chester’s employ. But you can’t know that, not
certainly, and neither can any other. There’s a small point, of course—Thomas
of Bristol, I doubt, spoke no Welsh.”
“And
you no English,” sighed Cadfael. “I had forgotten!”
“There
was a traveller from down towards Gloucester stayed overnight at Ranulf s court
not a month ago,” mused Rhodri, twinkling happily at his own omniscience, “a
jongleur who got unusual favour, for he was called in to play a stave or two to
Ranulf and his lady in private, after they left the hall at night. If Earl
Ranulf has an ear for music, it’s the first I’ve heard of it. It would
certainly need more than a French virelai to fetch him in for his
father-in-law’s cause. He would want to know what were the prospects of
success, and what his reward might be.” He slanted a radiant smile along his
shoulder at Cadfael, and poured out the last of the mead. “Your health,
brother! You, at least, are delivered from the greed for gain. I have often
wondered, is there a passion large enough to take its place? I am still in the
world myself, you understand.”
“I
think there might be,” said Cadfael mildly. “For truth, perhaps? Or justice?”
Chapter
Two
THE
GAOLER UNLOCKED THE DOOR OF PHILIP’S CELL somewhat before noon, and stood back
to let the provost enter. Father and son eyed each other hard, and though
Geoffrey Corviser continued to look grimly severe, and Philip obdurate and
defiant, nevertheless the father was mollified and the son reassured. By and
large, they understood each other pretty well.
“You
are released to my warranty,” said the provost shortly. “The charge is not
withdrawn, not yet, but you’re trusted to appear when called, and until then,
let’s hope I may get some sensible work out of you.”
“I
may come home with you?” Philip sounded dazed; he knew nothing of what had been
going on outside, and was unprepared for this abrupt release. Hurriedly he
brushed himself down, all too aware that he presented no very savoury spectacle
to walk through the town at the provost’s side. “What made them change their
mind? There’s no one been taken for the murder?” That would clear him utterly
in Emma’s eyes, no doubts left.
“Which
murder?” said his father grimly. “Never mind now, you shall hear, once we have
you out of here.”
“Ay,
stir yourself, lad,” advised the goodhumoured warder, jingling his keys,
“before they change their minds again. The rate things are happening at this
year’s fair, you might find the door slammed again before you can get through
it.”
Philip
followed his father wonderingly out of the castle. The noon
light in the outer ward fell warm and dazzling upon him, the sky was a
brilliant, deep blue, like Emma’s eyes when she widened them in anxiety or
alarm. It was impossible not to feel elated, whatever reproaches might still
await him at home; and hope and the resilience of youth blossomed in him as his
father recounted brusquely all that had happened while his son fretted in
prison without news.
“Then
there have been two attacks upon Mistress Vernold’s boat and booth, her goods
taken, her men assaulted?” He had quite forgotten his own bedraggled
appearance, he was striding towards home with his head up and his visage roused
and belligerent, looking, indeed, very much as he had looked when he led his
ill-fated expedition across the bridge on the eve of the fair. “And no one
seized for it? Nothing done? Why, she herself may be in danger!” Indignation
quickened his steps. “For God’s sake, what’s the sheriff about?”
“He
has enough to do breaking up unseemly riots by you and your like,” said his
father smartly, but could not raise so much as a blush from his incensed
offspring. “But since you want to know, Mistress Vernold is in the guest-hall
of the abbey, safe enough, in the care of Hugh Beringar and his lady. You’d do
better to be thinking about your own troubles, my lad, and mind your own step,
for you’re not out of the wood yet.”
“What
did I do that was so wrong? I went only one pace beyond what you did yourself
the day before.” He did not even sound aggrieved about being judged hard, he
made that brief defence only absently, his mind all on the girl. “Even in the
guest-hall she may not be out of reach, if this is all some determined plot
against her uncle and all his family.” In the death of one more tradesman at
the fair he showed less interest, shocking though it was, since it seemed to
have little or nothing to do with the vindictive catalogue of offences against
Master Thomas and all his possessions. “She spoke so fairly,” he said. “She
would not have me accused of worse than I did.”
“True
enough! She was a fine, honest witness, no denying it. But no business of yours
now, she’s well cared for. It’s your mother you need to be thinking of, she’s
been in a fine taking over you all this while, and now they’re looking in other directions for the one who did the killing—with one eye
still on you, though, mind!—she’ll likely take some sweetening. One way or
another, you’ll get a warm welcome.”
Philip
was far beyond minding that, though as soon as he entered the house behind the
shoemaker’s shop he did indeed get a warm welcome, not one way or another, but
both ways at once. Mistress Corviser, who was large, handsome and voluble,
looked round from her fireside hob, uttered a muted shriek, dropped her ladle,
and came billowing like a ship in full sail to embrace him, shake him, wrinkle
her nose at the prison smell of him, abuse him for the damage to his best cotte
and hose, box his ears for laughing at her tirade, exclaim lamentably over the
dried scar at his temple, and demand that he sit down at once and let her crop
the hair that adhered to the matted blood, and clean up the wound. By far the
easiest thing to do was to submit to all, and let her talk herself out.
“The
trouble and shame you’ve put us to, the heartaches you’ve cost me, wretch, you
don’t deserve that I should feed you, or wash and mend for you. The provost’s
son in prison, think of our mortification! Are you not ashamed of yourself?”
She was sponging away the encrusted blood, and relieved to find so
insignificant a scar remaining; but when he said blithely: “No, mother!” she
pulled his hair smartly.
“Then
you should be, you good-for-nothing! There, that’s not so bad. Now I hope
you’re going to settle down to work, and make up for all the trouble you’ve
made for us, instead of traipsing about the town egging on other people’s sons
to mischief with your wild ideas…”
“They
were the same ideas father and all the guild merchant had, mother, you should
have scolded them. And you ask those who’re wearing my shoes whether there’s
much amiss with my work.” He was a very good workman, in fact, as she would
have asserted valiantly if anyone else had cast aspersions on his diligence and
ability. He hugged her impulsively, and kissed her cheek, and she put him off
impatiently, with what was more a slap than a caress. “Get along with you, and
don’t come moguing me until you’re cleared of the worse charge, and have paid
your fine for the riot. Now come and eat your dinner!”
It
was an excellent dinner, such as she produced on festivals and
saints’ days. After it, instead of shedding the clothes he had worn day and
night in his cell, he shaved carefully, made a bundle of his second-best suit,
and left the house with it under his arm.
“Now
where are you going?” she demanded inevitably.
“To
the river, to swim and get clean again.” They had a garden upstream, below the
town hall, as many of the burgesses had, for growing their own fruit and
vegetables, and there was a small hut there, and a sward where he could dry in
the sun. He had learned to swim there, shortly after he learned to walk. He did
not tell her where he was going afterwards. It was a pity he would have to
present himself in his second-best coat, but in this hot summer weather perhaps
he need not put it on at all; in shirt and hose most men look the same,
provided the shirt is good linen and well laundered.
The
water was not even cold in the sandy shallow by the garden, but after his meal
he did not stay in long, or swim out into deep water. But it was good to feel
like himself again, cleansed even of the memory of his failure and downfall.
There was a still place under the bank where the water hung almost motionless,
and showed him a fair image of his face, and the thick bush of red-brown hair which
he combed and straightened with his fingers. He dressed as carefully as he had
shaved, and set off back to the bridge, and over it to the abbey. The town’s
grievance, which he had had on his mind the last time he came this way, was
quite forgotten; he had other important business now on the abbey side of
Severn.
“There’s
one here,” said Constance, coming in from the great court with a small, private
smile on her lips, “who asks to speak with Mistress Vernold. And not a bad
figure of a young fellow, either, though still a thought coltish about the
legs. He asked very civilly.”
Emma
had looked up quickly at the mention of a young man; now that she had gone some
way towards accepting what had happened, and coming to terms with a disaster
which, after all, she had not caused, she had been remembering words Ivo had
used, almost disregarded then in her shocked daze, but significant and warming
now.
“Messire
Corbiиre?”
“No, not this time. This one I don’t
know, but he says his name is Philip Corviser.”
“I
know him,” said Aline, and smiled over her sewing. “The provost’s son, Emma,
the boy you spoke for in the sheriff’s court. Hugh said he would see him set
free today. If there’s one soul can say he has done no evil to you or any these
last two days, he’s the man. Will you see him? It would be a kindness.”
Emma
had almost forgotten him, even his name, but she recalled the plea he had made
for her belief in him. So much had happened between. She remembered him now,
unkempt, bruised and soiled, pallid-sick after his drunkenness, but still with
a despairing dignity. “Yes, I remember him. Of course I’ll see him.”
Philip
followed Constance into the room. Fresh from the river, with damp hair curling
thickly about his head, shaven and glowing and in fierce earnest, but without
the aggression of the manner she had first seen in him, this was a very
different person from the humiliated prisoner of the court. The last look he
had given her, chin on shoulder, as he was dragged out… yes, she saw the
resemblance there. He made his reverence to Aline, and then to Emma.
“Madam,
I am released on my father’s bail. I came to say my thanks to Mistress Emma for
speaking so fairly for me, when I had no right to expect goodwill from her.”
“I’m
glad to see you free, Philip,” said Aline serenely, “and looking none the
worse. You will like to speak with Emma alone, I daresay, and company other
than mine may be good for her, for here we talk nothing but babies.” She rose,
folding her sewing carefully to keep the needle in view as she carried it.
“Constance and I will sit on the bench by the hall door, in the sun. The light
is better there, and I am no such expert needlewoman as Emma. You can be
undisturbed here.”
Out
she went, and they saw a ray of sun from the open outer door sparkle in her
piled gold hair, before Constance followed, and closed the door between. The
two of them were left, gazing gravely at each other.
“The
first thing I wanted to do with freedom,” said Philip, “was to see you again,
and thank you for what you did for me. As I do, with all my
heart. There were some who bore witness there who had known me most of my life,
and surely had no grudge against me, and yet testified that I had been the
first to strike, and done all manner of things I knew I had not done. But you,
who had suffered through my act, though God knows I never willed it, you spoke
absolute truth for me. It took a generous heart and a fair mind to do so much
for an unknown whom you had no cause to love.” He had not chosen that word, it
had come naturally in the commonplace phrase, but when he heard it, it raised a
blush like fire in his own face, faintly reflected the next moment in hers.
“All
I did was to tell the truth of what I had seen,” she said. “So should we all
have done, it’s no virtue, but an obligation. It was shame that they did not.
People do not think what it is they are saying, or trouble to be clear about
what they have seen. But that’s all by now. I’m very glad they’ve let you go. I
was glad when Hugh Beringar said they must, taking into account what has been
happening, for which you certainly can bear no blame. But perhaps you have not
heard…”
“Yes,
I have heard. My father has told me.” Philip sat down beside her in the place
Aline had vacated, and leaned towards her earnestly. “There is some very evil
purpose against you and yours, surely, how else to account for so many
outrages? Emma, I am afraid for you… I fear danger threatening even you. I’m
grieved for your loss, and all the distress you’ve suffered. I wish there might
be some way in which I could serve you.”
“Oh,
but you need not be troubled for me,” she said. “You see I am in the best and
kindest hands possible, and tomorrow the fair will all be over, and Hugh
Beringar and Aline will help me to find a safe way to go home.”
“Tomorrow?”
he said, dismayed.
“It
may not be tomorrow. Roger Dod will take the barge down-river tomorrow, but it
may be that I must stay a day or two more. We have to find a party going south
by Gloucester, for safe-conduct, and with some other women for company. It may
take a day or two.”
Even
a day or two would be gold; but after that she would be gone, and he might
never see her again. And still, confronted by this cause for
unhappiness on his own part, he could only think of her. He could not rid
himself of the feeling that she was threatened.
“In
only two days, see how many ill things have happened, and always close to you,
and what may not still happen in a day or two more? I wish you were safe home
this moment,” he said passionately, “though God knows I’d rather lose my right
hand than the sight of you.” He was not even aware that that same right hand
had taken possession of her left one, and was clasping it hard. “At least find
me some way of serving you before you go. If nothing more, tell me you know
that I never did harm to your uncle…”
“Oh,
yes,” she said warmly, “that I can, most willingly. I never did truly believe
it. You are no such person, to strike a man dead by stealth. I never thought
it. But still we don’t know who did it! Oh, don’t doubt me, I’m sure of you.
But I wish it could be shown clear to the world, for your sake.”
It
was said very prettily and sincerely, and he took it to his heart gratefully,
but it was said out of generous fellow-feeling, and nothing deeper, and he was
gallingly sure of it while he hugged at least the kindness to him.
“For
mine, too,” she said honestly, “and for the sake of justice. It is not right
that a mean murderer should escape his due, and it does aggrieve me that my
uncle’s death should go unpaid for.”
Find
me some way of serving you, he had said; and perhaps she had. There was nothing
he would not have undertaken for her; he would have lain over the threshold of
any room in which she was, like a dog on guard, if she had needed it, but she
did not, she was cared for by the sheriff’s own deputy and his lady, and they
would watch over her until they saw her safely on her way home. But when she
spoke of the unknown who had slipped a dagger in her uncle’s back, her great
eyes flared with the angry blue of sapphires, and her face grew marble-clear
and taut. Her complaint was his commission. He would achieve something for her
yet.
“Emma,”
he began in a whisper, and drew breath to commit himself deep as the sea.
The
door opened, though neither of them had heard the knock; Constance put her head
into the room.
“Messire Corbiиre waits to see you, when
you are free,” she said, and withdrew, but left the door ajar. Evidently
Messire Corbiиre ought not to be kept waiting long.
Philip
was on his feet. Emma’s eyes had kindled at the name like distant stars,
forgetting him. “You may remember him,” she said, still sparing a morsel of her
attention for Philip, “the young gentleman who came to help us on the jetty,
along with Brother Cadfael. He has been very kind to me.”
Philip
did remember, though his bludgeoned senses at the time had seen everything
distorted; a slender, elegant, assured lordling who leaped a rolling cask to
catch her in his arm at the water’s edge, and further, to be just to him, had
appeared in the sheriff’s court and borne out Emma’s honest story— even if he
had also produced his falconer to testify to the silly threats Philip had been
indulging in, drunk as he was, later that evening. Testimony Philip did not
dispute, since he knew he had been incapable of clear thought or positive
recollection. He recalled his disgusting self, and smarted at the thought. And
the young lord with the bright gold crest and athlete’s prowess had showed so
admirable by contrast.
“I’ll
take my leave,” said Philip, and allowed her hand to slip out of his, though
with reluctance and pain. “For the journey, and always, I wish you well.”
“So
do I you,” she said, and with unconscious cruelty added: “Will you ask Messire
Corbiиre to come in?”
Never
in his life until then had Philip been required to draw himself to his full
stature, body and mind. His departure was made with a dignity he had not
dreamed he could achieve, and meeting Corbiиre face to face in the hall, he did
indeed bid him within, at Mistress Emma’s invitation, very civilly and amiably,
while he burned with jealousy inwardly. Ivo thanked him pleasantly, and if he
looked him over, did so with interest and respect, and with no apparent
recollection of ever having seen him in less acceptable circumstances.
No
one would have guessed, thought Philip, marching out into the sunshine of the
great court, that a working shoemaker and a landed lord rubbed shoulders there.
Well, he may have several manors in Cheshire and one in Shropshire, and be
distant kin of Earl Ranulf, and welcome at his court; but I have something I
can try to do for her, and I have a craft as honourable as his
noble blood, and if I succeed, whether she comes my way or no, she’ll never
forget me.
Brother
Cadfael came in at the gatehouse after some hours of fruitless prowling about
the fair and the riverside. Among hundreds of men busy about their own
concerns, the quest of a gashed sleeve, or one recently and hastily mended, is
much the same as hunting one straw in a completed stack. His trouble was that
he knew no other way to set about it. Moreover, the hot and settled weather
continued unbroken, and most of those about the streets and the stalls were in
their shirt-sleeves. There was a point there, he reflected. The glover’s dagger
had drawn blood, therefore it had reached the skin, but never a thread of white
or unbleached linen had it brought away with the sliver of brown cloth. If the
intruder had worn a shirt, he had worn it with sleeves rolled up, and it had
emerged unscathed, and could now cover his graze, and if the wound had needed
one, his bandage. Cadfael returned to tend the few matters needing him in his
workshop, and be ready for Vespers in good time, more because he was at a loss
how to proceed than for any other reason. An interlude of quiet and thought
might set his wits working again.
In
the great court his path towards the garden happened to cross Philip’s from the
guest-hall to the gatehouse. Deep in his own purposes, the young man almost
passed by unnoticing, but then he checked sharply, and turned to look back.
“Brother
Cadfael!” Cadfael swung to face him, startled out of just as deep a
preoccupation. “It is you!” said Philip. “It was you who spoke for me, after
Emma, in the sheriff’s court. And I knew you then for the one who came to help
me to my feet and out of trouble, when the sergeants broke up the fight on the
jetty. I never had the chance to thank you, brother, but I do thank you now.”
“I
fear the getting you out of trouble didn’t last the night,” said Cadfael
ruefully, looking this lanky youngster over with a sharp eye, and approving
what he saw. Whether it was time spent in self-examination in the gaol, or time
spent more salutarily still in thinking of Emma, Philip had done a great deal
of growing up in a very short time. “I’m glad to see you about again among us,
and none the worse.”
“I’m
not clear of the load yet,” said Philip. “The charge still
stands, even the charge of murder has not been withdrawn.”
“Then
it stands upon one leg only,” said Cadfael heartily, “and may fall at any
moment. Have you not heard there’s been another death?”
“So
they told me, and other violence, also. But surely this last bears no
connection with the rest? Until this, all was malice against Master Thomas.
This man was a stranger, and from Chester.” He laid a hand eagerly on Cadfael’s
sleeve. “Brother, spare me some minutes. I was not very clear in my wits that
night, now I need to know—all that I did, all that was done to me. I want to
trace every minute of an evening I can barely piece together for myself.”
“And
no wonder, after that knock on the head. Come and sit in the garden, it’s quiet
there.” He took the young man by the arm, and turned him towards the archway
through the pleached hedge, and sat him down on the very seat, had Philip known
it, where Emma and Ivo had sat together the previous day. “Now, what is it you
have in mind? I don’t wonder your memory’s hazy. That’s a good solid skull you
have on you, and a blessedly thick thatch of hair, or you’d have been carried
away on a board.”
Philip
scowled doubtfully into distance between the roses, hesitated how much to say,
how much to keep painfully to himself, caught Brother Cadfael’s comfortably
patient eye, and blurted: “I was coming now from Emma. I know she is in better
care than I could provide her, but I have found one thing, at least, that might
still be done for her. She wants and needs to see the man who killed her uncle
brought to justice. And I mean to find him.”
“So
does the sheriff, so do all his men,” said Cadfael, “but they’ve had little
success as yet.” But he did not say it in reproof or discouragement, but very
thoughtfully. “So, for that matter, do I, but I’ve done no better. One more
mind probing the matter could just as well be the mind that uncovers the truth.
Why not? But how will you set about it?”
“Why,
if I can prove—prove!—that I did not do it, I may also rub up against something
that will lead me to the man who did. At least I can make a start by trying to
follow what happened to me that night. Not only for my own defence,” he said
earnestly, “but because it seems to me that I gave cover to the
deed by what I had begun, and whoever did it may have had me and my quarrel in
mind, and been glad of the opening I made for him, knowing that when murder
came of the night, the first name that would spring to mind would be mine. So
whoever he may be, he must have marked my comings and goings, or I could be no
use to him. If I had been with ten friends throughout, I should have been out
of the reckoning, and the sheriff would have begun at once to look elsewhere.
But I was drunk, and sick, and took myself off alone to the river for a long
time, so much I do know. Long enough for it to have been true. And the murderer
knew it.”
“That
is sound thinking,” agreed Cadfael approvingly. “What, then, do you mean to
do?”
“Begin
from the riverside, where I got my clout on the head, and follow my own scent
until I get clear what’s very unclear now. I do remember what happened there,
as far as you hauling me out of the way of the sheriff’s men, and then being
hustled away between two others, but my legs were grass and my wits were
muddied, and I can’t for my life recall who they were. It’s a place to start,
if you knew them.”
“One
of them was Edric Flesher’s journeyman,” said Cadfael. “The other I’ve seen,
though I don’t know his name, a big, sturdy young fellow twice your width, with
tow-coloured hair…”
“John
Norreys!” Philip snapped his fingers. “I seem to recall him later in the night.
It’s enough, I’ll begin with them, and find out where they left me, and how—or
where I shook them off, for so I might have done, I was no fit company for
Christians.” He rose, draping his coat over one shoulder. “That whole evening
I’ll unravel, if I can.”
“Good
lad!” said Cadfael heartily. “I wish you success with all my heart. And if
you’re going to be threading your way through a few of the ale-houses of the
Foregate, as you seem to have done that night, keep your eyes open on my
behalf, will you? If you can find your murderer, you may very well also be
finding mine.” Carefully and emphatically he told him what to look for. “An arm
raising a flagon, or spread over a table, may show you what I’m seeking. The
left sleeve sliced open for a hand’s-length from the cuff of a russet-brown
coat, that was sewn with a lighter linen thread. It would be on
the underside of the arm. Or where arms are bared, look for the long scratch
the knife made when it slit the sleeve, or for the binding that might cover it
if it still bleeds. But if you find him, don’t challenge him or say word to
him, only bring me, if you can, his name and where to find him again.”
“This
was the glover’s slayer?” asked Philip, marking the details with grave nods of
his brown head. “You think they may be one and the same?”
“If
not the same, well known to each other, and both in the same conspiracy. Find
one, and we shall be very close to the other.”
“I’ll
keep a good watch, at any rate,” said Philip, and strode away purposefully
towards the gatehouse to begin his quest.
Chapter
Three
AFTERWARDS
BROTHER CADFAEL PONDERED many times over what followed, and wondered if prayer
can even have a retrospective effect upon events, as well as influencing the
future. What had happened had already happened, yet would he have found the
same situation if he had not gone straight into the church, when Philip left
him, with the passionate urge to commit to prayer the direction of his own
efforts, which seemed to him so barren? It was a most delicate and complex
theological problem, never as far as he knew, raised before, or if raised, no
theologian had ventured to write on the subject, probably for fear of being
accused of heresy.
Howbeit,
the urgent need came over him, since he had lost some offices during the day,
to recommit his own baffled endeavours to eyes that saw everything, and a power
that could open all doors. He chose the transept chapel from which Master
Thomas’s coffin had been carried that morning, resealed into sanctity by the
Mass sung for him. He had time, now, to kneel and wait, having busied himself
thus far in anxious efforts like a man struggling up a mountain, when he knew
there was a force that could make the mountain bow. He said a prayer for
patience and humility, and then laid that by, and prayed for Emma, for the soul
of Master Thomas, for the child that should be born to Aline and Hugh, for
young Philip and the parents who had recovered him, for all who suffered
injustice and wrong, and sometimes forgot they had a resource beyond the
sheriff.
Then
it was high time for him to rise from his knees, and go and see
to his primary duty here, whatever more violent matters clamoured for his
attention. He had supervised the herbarium and the manufactory derived from it,
for sixteen years, and his remedies were relied upon far beyond the abbey
walls; and though Brother Mark was the most devoted and uncomplaining of
helpers, it was unkind to leave him too long alone with such a responsibility.
Cadfael hastened towards his workshop with a lightened heart, having shifted
his worries to broader shoulders, just as Brother Mark would be happy to do on
his patron’s arrival.
The
heavy fragrance of the herb-garden lay over all the surrounding land, after so
many hours of sunshine and heat, like a particular benediction meant for the
senses, not the soul. Under the eaves of the workshop the dangling bunches of
dried leafage rustled and chirped like nests of singing birds in waves of
warmed air, where there was hardly any wind. The very timbers of the hut,
dressed with oil against cracking, breathed out scented warmth.
“I
finished making the balm for ulcers,” said Brother Mark, making dutiful report,
and happily aware of work well done. “And I have harvested all the poppy-heads
that were ripe, but I have not yet broken out the seed, I thought they should
dry in the sun a day or two yet.”
Cadfael
pressed one of the great heads between his fingers, and praised the judgment.
“And the angelica water for the infirmary?”
“Brother
Edmund sent for it half an hour ago. I had it ready. And I had a patient,” said
Brother Mark, busy stacking away on a shelf the small clay dishes he used for
sorting seeds, “earlier on, soon after dinner. A groom with a gashed arm. He
said he did it on a nail in the stables, reaching down harness, though it
looked like a knife-slash to me. It was none too clean, I cleansed it for him,
and dressed it with some of your goose-grass unguent. They were gambling with
dice up there in the loft last night, I daresay it came to a fight, and
somebody drew on him. He’d hardly admit to that.” Brother Mark dusted his
hands, and turned with a smile to report for the sum of his stewardship. “And
that’s all. A quiet afternoon, you need not have worried.” At sight of
Cadfael’s face his brows went up comically, and he asked in surprise: “Why are you staring like that? Nothing there, surely, to open your
eyes so wide.”
My
mouth, too, thought Cadfael, and shut it while he reflected on the strangeness
of human effort, and the sudden rewards that fell undeserved. Not undeserved,
perhaps, in this case, since this had fallen to Brother Mark, who modestly made
no demands at all.
“Which
arm was gashed?” he asked, further baffling Brother Mark, who naturally could
not imagine why that should matter.
“The
left. From here, the outer edge of the wrist, down the underside of the
forearm. Almost to the elbow. Why?”
“Had
he his coat on?”
“Not
when I saw him,” said Mark, smiling at the absurdity of this catechism. “But he
had it over his sound arm. Is that important?”
“More
than you know! But you shall know, later, I am not playing with you. Of what
colour was it? And did you see the sleeve that should cover that arm?”
“I
did. I offered to stitch it for him—I had little to do just then. But he said
he’d already cobbled it up, and so he had, very roughly, and with black thread.
I could have done better for him, the original was unbleached linen thread. The
colour? Reddish dun, much like most of the grooms and men-at-arms wear, but a
good cloth.”
“Did
you know the man? Not one of our own abbey servants?”
“No,
a guest’s man,” said Brother Mark, patient in his bewilderment. “Not a word to
his lord he said! It was one of Ivo Corbiиre’s grooms, the older one, the surly
fellow with the beard.”
Gilbert
Prestcote himself, unescorted and on foot, had taken an afternoon turn about
the fairground to view the public peace with his own eyes, and was in the great
court on his way back to the town, conferring with Hugh Beringar, when Cadfael
came in haste from the garden with his news. When the blunt recital was ended,
they looked at him and at each other with blank and wary faces.
“Corbiиre’s
within at this moment,” said Hugh, “and I gather from Aline has
been, more than an hour. Emma has him dazed, I doubt if he’s had any other
thought, these last two days. His men have been running loose much as they
pleased, provided the work was done. It could be the man.”
“His
lord has the right to be told,” said Prestcote. “Households grow lax when they
see the country torn, and their betters flouting law. There’s nothing been said
or done to alarm this fellow, I take it? He has no reason to make any move? And
surely he values the shelter of a name like Corbiиre.”
“No
word has been said to any but you,” said Cadfael. “And the man may be telling
the truth.”
“The
tatter of cloth,” said Hugh, “I have here on me. It should be possible to match
or discard.”
“Ask
Corbiиre to come,” said the sheriff.
Hugh
took the errand to himself, since Ivo was a guest in his rooms. While they
waited in braced silence, two of the abbey’s men-at-arms came in at the
gatehouse with unstrung longbows, and Turstan Fowler between them with his
arbalest, the three of them hot, happy and on excellent terms. On the last day
of the fair there were normally matches of many kinds, wrestling, shooting at
the butts along the river meadows, long-bow against cross-bow, though the
long-bow here was usually the short bow of Wales, drawn to the breast, not the
ear. The six-foot weapon was known, but a rarity. There were races, too, and
riding at the quintain on the castle tiltyard. Trade and play made good
companions, and especially good profits for the ale-houses, where the winners
very soon parted with all they had won, and the losers made up their losses.
These
three were wreathed together in argumentative amity, passing jokes along the
line; each seemed to be vaunting his own weapon. They had strolled no more than
halfway across the court when Hugh emerged from the guest-hall with Ivo beside
him. Ivo saw his archer crossing towards the stable-yard, and made him an
imperious signal to stay.
There
was no fault to be found with Turstan’s service since his disastrous fall from
grace on the first evening; motioned to hold aloof but remain at call, he
obeyed without question, and went on amusing himself with his rivals. He must
have done well at the butts for they seemed to be discussing his arbalest, and
he braced a foot in the metal stirrup and drew the string to
the alert for them, demonstrating that he lost little in speed against their
instant arms. No doubt the dispute between speed and range would go on as long
as both arms survived. Cadfael had handled both in his time, as well as the
eastern bow, the sword, and the lance of the mounted man. Even at this grave
moment he spared a long glance for the amicable wrangle going on a score of
paces away.
Then
Ivo was there among them, and shaken out of his easy confidence and grace. His
face was tense, his dark eyes large and wondering under the proudly raised
auburn brows and golden cap of curls. “You wanted me, sir? Hugh has not been specific,
but I took it this was urgent matter.”
“It
is a matter of a man of yours,” said the sheriff.
“My
men?” He shook a doubtful head, and gnawed his lip. “I know of nothing… Not
since Turstan drank himself stiff and stupid, and he’s been a penitent and
close to home ever since, and he did no harm then to any but himself, the dolt.
But they all have leave to go forth, once their work’s done. The fair is every
man’s treat. What’s amiss concerning my men?”
It
was left to the sheriff to tell him. Ivo paled visibly as he listened, his
ruddy sunburn sallowing. “Then my man is suspect of the killing I brushed arms
with—Good God, this very morning! That you may know, his name is Ewald, he
comes from a Cheshire manor, and his ancestry is northern, but he never showed
ill traits before, though he is a morose man, and makes few friends. I take
this hard. I brought him here.”
“You
may resolve it,” said Prestcote.
“So
I may.” His mouth tightened. “And will! About this hour I appointed to ride, my
horse has had little exercise here, and he’ll be bearing me hence tomorrow.
Ewald is the groom who takes care of him. He should be saddling him up in the
stables about this time. Shall I send for him? He’ll be expecting my summons.
No!” he interrupted his own offer, his brows contracting. “Not send for him, go
for him myself. If I sent Turstan, there, you might suspect that a servant
would stand by a servant, and give him due warning. Do you think he has not
been watching us, this short while? And do you think this colloquy has the look
of simple talk among us?”
Assuredly
it had not. Turstan, dangling his braced bow, had lost interest
in enlightening his rivals, and they, sensing that there was something afoot
that did not concern them, were drawing off and moving away, though with
discreet backward glances until they vanished into the grange court.
“I’ll
go myself,” said Ivo, and strode away towards the stable-yard at a great pace.
Turstan, hesitant, let him pass, since he got no word out of him in passing,
but then turned and hurried on his heels, anxiously questioning. For a little
way he followed, and they saw Ivo turn his head and snap some hasty orders at
his man. Chastened, Turstan drew back and returned towards the gatehouse, and
stood at a loss.
Some
minutes passed before they heard the sharp sound of hooves on the cobbles of
the stable-yard, brittle and lively. Then the tall, dusky bay, glowing like the
darkest of copper and restive for want of work, danced out of the yard with the
stocky, bearded groom holding his bridle, and Ivo stalking a yard or so ahead.
“Here
is my man Ewald,” he said shortly, and stood back, as Cadfael noted, between
them and the open gateway. Turstan Fowler drew nearer by discreet inches, and
silently, sharp eyes flicking from one face to another in quest of
understanding. Ewald stood holding the bridle, uneasy eyes narrowed upon
Prestcote’s unrevealing countenance. When the horse, eager for action, stirred
and tossed his head, the groom reached his left hand across to take the bridle,
and slid the right one up to the glossy neck, caressing by rote, but without
for an instant shifting his gaze.
“My
lord says your honour has something to ask me,” he said in a slow and grudging
voice.
Under
his left forearm the cobbled mend in his sleeve showed plainly, the cloth
puckered between large stitches, and the end of linen thread shivered in sun
and breeze like a gnat dancing.
“Take
off your coat,” ordered the sheriff. And as the man gaped in real or pretended
bewilderment: “No words! Do it!”
Slowly
Ewald slipped out of his coat, somewhat awkwardly because he was at pains to
retain his hold on the bridle. The horse had been promised air and exercise,
and was straining towards the gate, the way to what he desired. He had already
shifted the whole group, except Cadfael, who stood mute and apart, a little
nearer the gate.
“Turn back your sleeve. The left.”
He
gave one wild glance round, then lowered his head like a bull, set his jaw, and
did it, his right arm through the bridle as he turned up the coarse homespun to
the elbow. Brother Mark had bound up the gash in a strip of clean linen over
his dressing. The very cleanness of it glared.
“You
have hurt yourself, Ewald?” said Prestcote, quietly grim.
He
has his chance now, thought Cadfael, if he has quick enough wit, to change his
story and say outright that he took a knife-wound in a common brawl, and told
Brother Mark the lie about a nail simply to cover up the folly. But no, the man
did not stop to think; he had his story, and trusted it might still cover him.
Yet if Mark, on handling the wound, could tell a cut from a tear, so at the
merest glance could Gilbert Prescote.
“I
did it on a nail in the stables, my lord, reaching down harness.”
“And
tore your sleeve through at the same time? It was a jagged nail, Ewald. That’s
stout cloth you wear.” He turned abruptly to Hugh Beringar. “You have the slip
of cloth?”
Hugh
drew out from his pouch a folded piece of vellum, and opened it upon the
insignificant strip of fabric, that looked like nothing so much as a blade of
dried grass fretted into fibres and rotting at the edge. Only the wavy tendril
of linen thread showed what it really was, but that was enough. Ewald drew away
a pace, so sharply that the horse backed off some yards towards the gateway, and
the groom turned and took both hands to hold and soothe the beast. Ivo had to
spring hurriedly backwards to avoid the dancing hooves.
“Hand
here your coat,” ordered Prestcote, when the bay was appeased again, and
willing to stand, though reluctantly.
The
groom looked from the tiny thing he had recognised to the sheriff’s composed
but unrelenting face, hesitated only a moment, and then did as he was bid, to
violent effect. He swung back his arm and flung the heavy cotte into their
faces, and with a leap was over the bay’s back and into the saddle. Both heels
drove into the glossy sides, and a great shout above the pricked ears sent the
horse surging like a flung lance for the gateway.
There
was no one between but Ivo. The groom drove the bay straight at
him, headlong. The young man leaped aside, but made a tigerish spring to grasp
at the bridle as the horse hurtled by, and actually got a hold on it and was
dragged for a moment, until the groom kicked out at him viciously, breaking the
tenuous hold and hurling Ivo out of the way, to fall heavily and roll under the
feet of the sheriff and Hugh as they launched themselves after the fugitive.
Out at the gateway and round to the right into the Foregate went Ewald, at a
frantic gallop, and there was no one mounted and ready to pursue, and for once
the sheriff was without escort or archers.
But
Ivo Corbiиre was not. Turstan Fowler had rushed to help him to his feet, but
Ivo waved him past, out into the Foregate, and heaving himself breathlessly
from the ground, with grazed and furious face ran limping after. The little
group of them stood in the middle of the highroad, helplessly watching the bay
and his rider recede into distance, and unable to follow. He had killed, and he
would get clear away, and once some miles from Shrewsbury, he could disappear
into forest and lie safe as a fox in its lair.
In
a voice half-choked with rage, Ivo cried: “Fetch him down!”
Turstan’s
arbalest was still braced and ready, and Turstan was used to jumping to his
command. The quarrel was out of his belt, fitted and loosed, in an instant, the
thrum and vibration of its flight made heads turn and duck and women shriek
along the Foregate.
Ewald,
stooped low over the horse’s neck, suddenly jerked violently and reared up with
head flung high. His hands slackened from the reins and his arms swung lax on
either side. He seemed to hang for a moment suspended in air, and then swung
heavily sidewise, and heeled slowly out of the saddle. The bay, startled and
shocked, ran on wildly, scattering the frightened vendors and buyers on both
sides, but his flight was uncertain now, and confused by this sudden lightness.
He would not go far. Someone would halt and soothe him, and lead him back.
As for the groom Ewald, he was dead before ever the
first of the appalled stallholders reached him, dead, probably, before ever he
struck the ground.
Chapter
Four
“HE WAS MY VILLEIN,” asserted Ivo strenuously, in
the room in the gatehouse where they had brought and laid the body, “and I
enjoy the power of the high justice over my own, and this one had forfeited
life. I need make no defence, for myself or my archer, who did nothing more
than obey my order. We have all seen, now, that this fellow’s wound is no tear
from a nail, but the stroke of a dagger, and the fret you took from the
glover’s blade matches this sleeve past question. Is there doubt in any mind
that this was a murderer?”
There
was none. Cadfael was there with them in the room, at Hugh’s instance, and he
had no doubts at all. This was the man Euan of Shotwick had marked, before he
himself died. Moreover, some of Euan of Shotwick’s goods and money had been
found among the sparse belongings Ewald had left behind him; his saddle-roll
held a pouch of fine leather full of coins, and two pairs of gloves made for
the hands of girls, presents, perhaps, for wife or sister. This was certainly a
murderer. Turstan, who had shot him down, obviously did not consider himself
anything of the kind, any more than one of Prestcote’s archers would have done,
had he been given the order to shoot. Turstan had taken the whole affair
stolidly, as none of his business apart from his duty to his lord, and gone
away to his evening meal with an equable appetite.
“I
brought him here,” said Ivo bitterly, wiping smears of blood from his grazed
cheek. “It is my honour he has offended, as well as the law of
the land. I had a right to avenge myself.”
“No
need to labour it,” said Prestcote shortly. “The shire has been saved a trial
and a hanging, which is to the good, and I don’t know but the wretch himself
might prefer this way out. It was a doughty shot, and that’s a valuable man of
yours. I never thought it could be done so accurately at that distance.”
Ivo
shrugged. “I knew Turstan’s quality, or I would not have said what I did, to
risk either my horse or any of the hundreds about their harmless business in
the Foregate. I don’t know that I expected a death…”
“There’s
only one cause for regret,” said the sheriff. “If he had accomplices, he can
never now be made to name them. And you say, Beringar, that there were probably
two?”
“You’re
satisfied, I hope,” said Ivo, “that neither Turstan nor my young groom Arald
had any part with him in these thefts?”
Both
had been questioned, he had insisted on that. Turstan had been a model of virtue
since his one lapse, and the youngster was a fresh-faced country youth, and
both had made friends among the other servants and were well liked. Ewald had
been morose and taciturn, and kept himself apart, and the revelation of his
villainy did not greatly surprise his fellows.
“There’s
still the matter of the other offences. What do you think? Was it this man in
all of them?”
“I
cannot get it out of my mind,” said Hugh slowly, “that Master Thomas’s death
was the work of one man only. And without reason or proof, by mere pricking of
thumbs, I do not believe it was this man. For the rest—I don’t know! Two, the
merchant’s watchman said, but I am not sure he may not be increasing the odds
to excuse his own want of valour—or his very good sense, however you look at
it. Only one, surely, would enter the barge in full daylight, no doubt briskly,
as if he had an errand there, something to fetch or something to bestow. Where
there were two, this must surely be one of them. Who the other was, we are
still in the dark.”
After
Compline Cadfael went to report to Abbot Radulfus all that had happened. The
sheriff had already paid the necessary courtesy visit to inform
the abbot, but for all that Radulfus would expect his own accredited observer
to bring another viewpoint, one more concerned with the repute and the
standards of a Benedictine house. In an order which held moderation in all
things to be the ground of blessing, immoderate things were happening.
Radulfus
listened in disciplined silence to all, and there was no telling from his face
whether he deplored or approved such summary justice.
“Violence
can never be anything but ugly,” he said thoughtfully, “but we live in a world
as ugly and violent as it is beautiful and good. Two things above all concern
me, and one of them may seem to you, brother, a trivial matter. This death, the
shedding of this blood, took place outside our walls. For that I am grateful.
You have lived both within and without, what must be accepted and borne is the
same to you, within or without. But many here lack your knowledge, and for
them, and for the peace we strive to preserve here as refuge for others beside
ourselves, the sanctity of this place is better unspotted. And the second thing
will matter as deeply to you as to me: Was this man guilty? Is it certain he
himself had killed?”
“It
is certain,” said Brother Cadfael, choosing his words with care, “that he had
been concerned in murder, most likely with at least one other man.”
“Then
harsh though it may be, this was justice.” He caught the heaviness of Cadfael’s
silence, and looked up sharply. “You are not satisfied?”
“That
the man took part in murder, yes, I am satisfied. The proofs are clear. But
what is justice? If there were two, and one bears all, and the other goes free,
is that justice? I am certain in my soul that there is more, not yet known.”
“And
tomorrow all these people will depart about their own affairs, to their own
homes and shops, wherever they may be. The guilty and the innocent alike. That
cannot be the will of God,” said the abbot, and brooded a while in silence.
“Nevertheless, it may be God’s will that it should be taken out of our hands.
Continue your vigil, brother, through the morrow. After that others, elsewhere,
must take up the burden.”
Brother Mark sat on the edge of his cot,
in his cell in the dortoire, with his elbows on his knees and his head in his
hands, and grieved. From a child he had lived a hard life, privation, brutality
and pain were all known to him as close companions until he came into this
retreat, at first unwilling. But death was too monstrous and too dark for him,
coming thus instant in terror, and without the possibility of grace. To live
misused, ill-fed, without respite from labour, was still life, with a sky above
it, and trees and flowers and birds around it, colour and season and beauty.
Life, even so lived, was a friend. Death was a stranger.
“Child,
it is with us always,” said Cadfael, patient beside him. “Last summer
ninety-five men died here in the town, none of whom had done murder. For
choosing the wrong side, they died. It falls upon blameless women in war, even
in peace at the hands of evil men. It falls upon children who never did harm to
any, upon old men, who in their lives have done good to many, and yet are
brutally and senselessly slain. Never let it shake your faith that there is a
balance hereafter. What you see is only a broken piece from a perfect whole.”
“I
know,” said Brother Mark between his fingers, loyal but uncomforted. “But to be
cut off without trial…”
“So
were the ninety-four last year,” said Cadfael gently, “and the ninety-fifth was
murdered. Such justice as we see is also but a broken shred. But it is our duty
to preserve what we may, and fit together such fragments as we find, and take
the rest on trust.”
“And
unshriven!” cried Brother Mark.
“So
went his victim also. And he had neither robbed nor killed, or if he had, only
God knows of it. There has many a man gone through that gate without a
safe-conduct, who will reach heaven ahead of some who were escorted through
with absolution and ceremony, and had their affairs in order. Kings and princes
of the church may find shepherds and serfs preferred before them, and some who
claim they have done great good may have to give place to poor wretches who have
done wrong and acknowledge it, and have tried to make amends.”
Brother
Mark sat listening, and at least began to hear. Humbly he recognised and
admitted the real heart of his grievance. “I had his arm between my hands, I
saw him wince when I cleansed his wound, and I felt his pain.
It was only a small pain, but I felt it. I was glad to help him, it was
pleasure to anoint the cut with balm, and wrap it clean, and know he was eased.
And now he’s dead, with a cross-bow bolt through him…” Briefly and angrily, Brother
Mark brushed away tears, and uncovered his accusing face. “What is the use of
mending a man, if he’s to be broken within a few hours, past mending?”
“We
were speaking of souls,” said Cadfael mildly, “not mere bodies, and who knows
but your touch with ointment and linen may have mended to better effect the one
that lasts the longer? There’s no arrow cleaves the soul but there may be balm
for it.”
Chapter
Five
HEAD-DOWN
ON HIS OWN TRACES, Philip had run his friend John Norreys to earth at last at the
butts by the riverside, where the budding archers of the town practised, and
together they hunted out Edric Flesher’s young journeyman from the yard behind
his master’s shop. Philip’s odyssey on the eve of the fair had begun with these
two, who had had him bundled into their arms by Brother Cadfael when the
sheriff’s men descended on the Gaye.
By
their own account, they had hauled him away through the orchards and the narrow
lanes behind the Foregate, avoiding the highroads, and sat him down in the first
booth that sold drink, to recover his addled wits. And very ungrateful they had
found him, as soon as the shock of his blow on the head began to pass, and his
legs were less shaky under him.
Furious
with himself, he had turned his ill-temper on them, snarled at them, said John
tolerantly, that he was capable of looking after himself, and they had better
go and warn some of the other stalwarts who had rushed on along the Foregate
overturning stalls and scattering goods, before the officers reached them. Which
they had taken good-humouredly enough, knowing his head was aching villainously
by that time, and had followed him for a while at a discreet distance as he
blundered away through the fair-ground, until he turned on them again and
ordered them away. They had stood to watch him, and then shrugged and left him
to his own devices, since he would have none of them.
“You had your legs again,” said John
reasonably, “and since you wouldn’t let us do anything for you, we thought best
to let you go your own way. Let alone, you wouldn’t go far, but if we followed,
you might do who knows what, out of contrariness.”
“There
was another fellow who looked after you a thought anxiously,” said the
butcher’s man, thinking back, “when we left that booth with you. Came out after
us, and set off the same way you took. He thought you were already helpless
drunk, I fancy, and might need helping home.”
“That
was kind in him,” said Philip, stiffening indignantly, and meaning that it was
damned officious of whoever it was. “That would be what hour? Not yet eight?”
“Barely.
I did hear the bell for Compline shortly after, over the wall. Curious how it
carries over all the bustle between.” In the upper air, so it would; people in
the Foregate regulated their day by the office bells.
“Who
was this who followed me? Did you know him?”
They
looked at each other and hoisted indifferent shoulders; among the thousands at
a great fair the local people are lost. “Never seen him before. Not a
Shrewsbury man. He may not have been following, to call it that, at all, just
heading the same way.”
They
told him exactly where he had left them, and the direction he had taken. Philip
made his way purposefully to the spot indicated, but in that busy concourse,
spreading along the Foregate and filling every open space beyond, he was still
without a map. All he knew was that before nine, according to the witness in
the sheriff’s court, he had been very drunk and still drinking in Wat’s tavern,
and blurting out hatred and grievance and the intent of vengeance against
Master Thomas of Bristol. The interval it was hard to fill. Perhaps he had made
his way there at once, and been well advanced in drink before the stranger
noted his threats.
Philip
gritted his teeth and set off along the Foregate, so intent on his own quest
that he had no ears for anything else, and missed the news that was being
busily conveyed back and forth through the fair, with imaginative variations
and considerable embellishments before it reached the far corner of the
horse-fair. It was news more than two hours old by then, but Philip had heard
no word of it, his mind was on his own problem. All round him
stalls were being stripped down to trestle and board, and rented booths being
locked up, and the keys delivered to abbey stewards. Business was almost put
away, but the evening was not yet outworn, there would be pleasure after
business.
Walter
Renold’s inn lay at the far corner of the horse-fair, not on the London
highroad, but on the quieter road that bore away north-eastwards. It was handy
for the country people who brought goods to market, and at this hour it was
full. It went against the grain with Philip even to order a pot of ale for
himself while he was on this desperate quest, but alehouses live by sales, and
at least he was so formidably sober now that he could afford the indulgence.
The potboy who brought him his drink was hardly more than a child, and he did
not remember the tow hair and pock-marked face. He waited to speak with Wat
himself, when there was a brief interlude of calm.
“I
heard they’d let you go free,” said Wat, spreading brawny arms along the table
opposite him. “I’m glad of it. I never thought you’d do harm, and so I told
them where they asked. When was it they loosed you?”
“A
while before noon.” Hugh Beringar had said he should eat his dinner at home,
and so he had, though at a later hour than usual.
“So
nobody could point a finger at you over the latest ill-doings. Such a fair as
we’ve had! Good weather and good sales, and good attendance all round, even good
behaviour,” said Wat weightily, considering the whole range of his experience
of fairs. “And yet two merchants murdered, the second of them a northern man
found only this morning broken-necked in his stall. You’ll have heard about
that? When did we ever have such happenings! It’s not the lads of Shrewsbury, I
said when they asked me, that get up to such villainies, you look among the
incomers from other parts. We’re decent folk herebouts!”
“Yes,
I know of that,” said Philip. “But it’s not that death they pointed at me, it’s
the first, the Bristol merchant…” North and south had met here, he reflected,
fatally for both. Now why should that be? Both the victims strangers from far
distances, where some born locally were as well worth plundering.
“This one they could hardly charge to
your account,” said Wat, grinning broadly, “even if you’d been at large so
early. It’s all past and gone. You hadn’t heard? There was a grand to-do along
the Foregate, a few hours ago. The murderer’s found out red-handed, and made a
break for his freedom on his lord’s horse, and kicked his lord into the dust on
the way. And he’s shot down dead as a storm-struck tree, at his lord’s orders.
A master’s shot, they say. The glover’s soon avenged. And you’d not heard of
it?”
“Not
a word! The last I heard they were looking for a man who might have a slit
sleeve to show, and a gash in his arm. When was this, then?” It seemed that
Brother Cadfael must have found his man, unaided, after all.
“Not
an hour before Vespers it must have been. All I heard was the shouting at the
abbey end of the Foregate. But they tell me the sheriff himself was there.”
About
five in the afternoon, perhaps less than an hour after Philip had left Brother
Cadfael and gone back into the town to look for John Norreys. A short hunt that
had been, no need any longer for him to cast a narrowed eye at men’s sleeves
wherever he went. “And it’s certain they got the right man?”
“Certain!
The merchant had marked him, and they say there were goods and money from the
glover’s stall found in his pack. Some groom called Ewald, I heard…”
A
mere sneak-thief, then, who had gone too far. Nothing there to bear on Philip’s
own quest. He was free to concentrate his mind once again, and even more
intently, upon his own pilgrimage. It had begun as a penitential exercise, but
was gradually abandoning that aspect. Certainly he had made a fool of himself,
but the original impulse on which he had acted, and roused others to act, had
not been so foolish, after all, and was nothing to be ashamed of. Only when it
collapsed about him in ruins had he thrown good sense to the winds, and
indulged his misery like a sulking child.
“Now
if only I could find out as certainly who it was did for Master Thomas! It was
that night there was grave matter urged against me, and I will own I laid
myself open. It’s all very well being let out on my father’s bail, but no one
has yet said I’m clear of the charge. The rest I’ll pay my score for, but I
want to prove I never did the merchant any violence. I know I was here that
night—the eve of the fair, you’ll remember? From what hour?
I’ve no recollection of times, myself. According to his men, Master Thomas was
alive until a third of the hour past nine.”
“Oh,
you were here, no question!” Wat could not help grinning at the memory. “There
was noise enough, we were busy, but you made yourself heard! No offence, lad,
who hasn’t made a fool of himself in his cups from time to time? It can’t have
been more than a quarter after eight when you came in, and I doubt you’d had
much, up to then.”
Only
a quarter after the hour of Compline—then he must have come straight here after
shaking off his friends. Not straight, perhaps that was an inappropriate word,
but weavingly and unsteadily, though at that rate not calling anywhere else on
the way. It was a natural thing to do, to hurry clean through the thick of the
fair, and put as much ground as possible between himself and his solicitous
companions before calling a halt.
“I
tell you what, boy,” said the expert kindly, “if you’d taken it slowly you’d
have been sober enough. But you had to rush the matter. I doubt I’ve ever seen
a fellow put so much down in the time, no wonder your belly turned against it.”
It
was not cheering listening, but Philip swallowed it doggedly. Evidently he had
been as foolish as he had been dreading, and the archer’s account of his
behaviour had not been at all exaggerated.
“And
was I yelling vengeance against the man who struck me? That’s what they said of
me.”
“Well,
now, I wouldn’t go so far as that, and yet it’s not too far off the mark,
either. Let’s say you were not greatly loving him, and no wonder, we could all
see the dunt he’d given you. Arrogant and greedy you called him, and a few
other things I don’t recall, and mark your words, you kept telling us, pride
like his was due for a disastrous fall, and soon. That must be what they had in
mind who witnessed against you. I never heard word of any going to this hearing
from my tavern, not until afterwards. Who were they that testified, then?”
“It
was one man,” said Philip. “Not that I can blame him, it seems he told no
lies—indeed, I never thought he had, I know I was the world’s fool that night.”
“Why,
bless you, lad, with a cracked head a man’s liable to act like one cracked, he
has the right. But who’s this one man? What with all the
incomers at the fair, I had more strangers than known customers of these
evenings.”
“It
was a man attending one of the abbey guests,” said Philip. “Turstan Fowler,
they said his name was. He said he was here drinking, and went from ale to
wine, and then to strong liquor—it seems he ended up as drunk as I was myself,
they took him up helpless later, and slung him into a cell at the abbey
overnight. A well-set-up fellow, but slouching and unkempt when I saw him in the
court. About thirty-five years old, at a guess, sunburned, a bush of brown
hair…”
Wat
shook his head, pondering the description. “I don’t know him, not by that,
though I’ve got a rare memory for faces. An ale-house keeper has to have. Ah,
well, if he’s a stranger he’d no call to give false witness, I suppose he was
but honest, and put the worst meaning on your bletherings for want of knowing
you.”
“What
time was it when I left here?” Philip winced ever at the recollection of the
departure, sudden and desperate, with churning stomach and swimming head, and
both hands clamped hard over his grimly locked jaw. Barely time to weave a
frantic way across the road and into the edge of the copse beyond, where he had
heaved his heart out, and then blundered some distance further in cover towards
the orchards of the Gaye, and collapsed shivering and retching into the grass,
to pass into a sodden sleep. He had not dragged himself out of it until the
small hours.
“Why,
reckoning from Compline, I’d say an hour had passed, it would be about nine of
the clock.”
Thomas
of Bristol had set out from his booth to return to his barge only a quarter of
an hour or so later. And someone, someone unknown, had intercepted him on the
way, dagger in hand. No wonder the law had looked so narrowly at Philip
Corviser, who had reason to resent and hate, and had blundered out of sight and
sound of other men around that time, after venting his grievance aloud for all
to hear.
Wat
rose to go and cope with the custom that was overwhelming his two potboys, and
Philip sat brooding with his chin on his fist. Most of the flares must be out
by now along the Foregate, most of the stalls packed up and ready for
departure. Another balmy summer night, heaven dropping fat blessings on the
abbey receipts and the profits of trade, after a lost summer of
warfare and a winter of uncertainty. And the town walls still unrepaired, and
the streets still broken!
The
door stood propped wide on the warm, luminous twilight, and the traffic in and
out was brisk. Youngsters came with jugs and pitchers to fetch for their
elders, maids tripped in for a measure of wine for their masters, labourers and
abbey servants wandered in to slake their thirst between spells of work. Saint
Peter’s Fair was drawing to its contented and successful close.
Through
the open door came a fresh-faced youngster in a fine leather jerkin, and on his
heels a sturdy, brown-faced man at least fifteen years older, in the same good
livery. It took Philip a long moment of staring to recognise Turstan Fowler,
sober, well-behaved, in good odour with his lord and all the world. Still
longer to cause him to reflect afresh how he himself must have looked, drunk,
if the difference could stretch so far. He watched the little potboy serve
them. Wat was busy with others, and the room was full. The end of the fair was
always a busy time. Another day, and these same hours would hang heavy and
dark.
Philip
never quite knew why he turned his head away, and hoisted a wide shoulder
between himself and Ivo Corbiиre’s men. He had nothing against either of them,
but he did not want to be recognised and condoled with, or congratulated on his
release, or in any way, sympathetic or not, have public attention called to
him. He kept his shoulder hunched between, and was glad to have the room so
full of people, and most of them strangers.
“Fairs
are good business,” remarked Wat, returning to his place and plumping down on
the bench with a sigh of pleasure, “but I wish we could spread them round the
rest of the year. My feet are growing no younger, and I’ve hardly been off them
an hour in all, the last three days. What was it we were saying?”
“I
was trying to describe for you the fellow who reported me as threatening
revenge,” said Philip. “Cast a look over yonder now, and you’ll see the very
man. The two in leather who came in together—the elder of the two.”
Wat
let his sharp eyes rove, and surveyed Turstan Fowler with apparent disinterest,
but very shrewdly. “Slouching and hangdog, was he? Smart as a new coat now.”
His gaze returned to Philip’s face. “That’s the man? I remember
him well enough. I seldom forget a man’s face, but his name and condition I’ve
no way of knowing.”
“He
can’t have looked quite so trim that evening,” said Philip, “seeing he owned to
being well soused. He was lost to the world two hours later, by his own tale.”
“And
he said he got it all here?” Wat’s eyes had narrowed thoughtfully.
“So
he said. ‘Where I got my skinful’ is what he said.”
“Well,
let me tell you something interesting, friend…” Wat leaned confidentially
across the table. “Now I see him, I know how I saw him the last time, for if
you’ll credit me, he looked much as he looks now. And what’s more, now I know
of the connection he had with you and your affairs, I can recall small things that
happened that night, things I never gave a thought to before, and neither would
you have done. He was in here twice that evening, or rather, he was in the
doorway once, before he came over the threshold later. In that doorway he
stood, and looked round him, a matter of ten minutes or so after you came in. I
made nothing of it that he gave you a measuring sort of look, for well he
might, you were in full cry then. But look at you he did, and weighed you up,
and went away again. And the next we saw of him, it might be half an hour
later, he came in and bought a measure of ale, and a big flask of strong geneva
liquor, and sat supping his ale quietly, and eyeing you from time to time—as
again well he might, it was about then you were greenish and going suspicious
quiet. But do you know when he drank up and left, Philip, lad? The minute after
you made for the door in a hurry. And his flask under his arm, unopened. Drunk?
Him? He was stone cold sober when he went out of here.”
“But
he took the juniper liquor with him,” pointed out Philip, reasonably. “He was
drunk enough two hours later, there were several of them to swear to that. They
had to carry him back to the abbey on a trestle-board.”
“And
how much of the juniper spirit did they find remaining? Did they ever mention
that? Did they find the flask at all?”
“I
never heard mention of it,” owned Philip, startled and doubtful. “Brother
Cadfael was there, I could ask him. But why?”
Wat laid a kindly if patronising hand on
his shoulder. “Lad, it’s easy to see you never went beyond wine or ale, and if
you’ll heed me you’ll leave the strong stuff to strong stomachs. I said a large
flask, and large I meant. There was a quart of geneva spirits in that bottle!
If any man drank that dry in two hours, it wouldn’t be dead drunk they’d be
carrying him away, it would be plain dead. Or if he did live to tell of it, it
wouldn’t be the next day, nor for several after. Sober as the sheriff himself
was that fellow when he went out of here on your heels, and why he should want
to lie about it is more than I can say, but lie about it he did, it seems. Now
you tell me why a man should go to some pains to convict himself of a debauch
he never even had, and get himself slung into a cell for recompense. Unless,”
added Wat, considering the problem with lively interest, “it was to get himself
out of something worse.”
The
elder potboy, a freckled lad born and bred in the Foregate, came by with a
cluster of empties in either hand, and paused to nudge Wat in the ribs with an
elbow, and lean to his ear.
“Do
you know who you have there, master?” A jerk of his head indicated the two in
leather jerkins. “The young one’s fellow-groom to the one that got a bolt
through him along the Foregate a while ago. And the other—Will Wharton just
told me, and he was close by and saw it all!—that’s the fellow who loosed the
bolt! His comrade in the same price, mark! Should he be here and in such
spirits the same night? That’s a stronger stomach than mine. ‘Fetch him down!’
says the master, and down the fellow fetches him, sharp and cool. You’d have
thought his hand would have shook too much to get near the target, but
no!—thump between the shoulders and through to the breast, so Will says. And
that’s the very man that did it, supping ale like any Christian.”
They
were both of them staring at him open-mouthed, and turned away only to stare
again, briefly and intently, at Turstan Fowler sitting at ease with his
tankard, sturdy legs splayed under the table. It had never even occurred to
Philip to ask in whose service the dead malefactor was employed, and perhaps
Wat would not have known the name if he had asked. He would have mentioned it
else.
“That’s
the man? You’re sure?” pressed Philip.
“Will Wharton is sure, and he helped to
pick up the poor devil who was killed.”
“Turstan
Fowler? The falconer to Ivo Corbiиre? And Corbiиre ordered him to shoot?”
“The
name I don’t know, for neither did Will. Some young lord at the abbey
guest-hall. Very handsome sprig, yellow-haired, Will says. Though it’s no great
blame to him for wanting a murderer and thief stopped in his tracks, granted,
and any road, the man had just stolen his horse, and kicked him off into the
dust when he tried to halt him. And I suppose when a lord orders, his man had
better jump to obey. Still, it’s a grim thing to work side by side with a man
maybe months and years, and then to be told, strike him dead! And to do it!”
And the potboy rolled up his eyes and loosed a long, soft whistle, and passed
on with his handful of tankards, leaving them so sunk in reconsideration that
neither of them had anything to say.
But
there could not be anything in it of significance for him, surely? Philip
looked back briefly as he left the inn, and Turstan Fowler and the young groom
were sitting tranquilly with their ale, talking cheerfully with half a dozen
other sober drinkers around them. They had not noticed him, or if they had, had
not recognised him, and neither of them seemed to have anything of grave moment
on his mind. Strange, though, how this same man seemed to be entangled in every
untoward episode, never at the centre of things yet always somewhere in view.
As
for the matter of the flask of juniper spirits, what did it really signify? The
man had been picked up too drunk to talk, no one had looked round for his
bottle, it might well have been left lying, still more than half-full, if the
stuff was as potent as Wat said, and some scavenger by night might have picked
it up and rejoiced in his luck. There were a dozen ways of accounting for the
circumstances. And yet it was strange. Why should he have said he was drunk
before he left Wat’s inn, if he had really left it cold sober? More to the
point, why should he have left so promptly on Philip’s heels? Yet Wat was a
good observer.
The
tiny discrepancies stuck like barbs in Philip’s mind. It was far too late to
trouble anyone else tonight, Compline was long over, the monks
of Shrewsbury, their guests, their servants, would all be in their beds or
preparing to go there, except for the few lay stewards who had almost completed
their labours, and would be glad enough to make a modestly festive night of it.
Moreover, his parents would be vexed that he had abandoned them all the day and
he could expect irate demands for explanations at home. He had better make his
way back.
All
the same, he crossed the road and made for the copse, as on the night he was
repeating, and found some faint signs of his wallow still visible, dried into
the trampled grass. Then back towards the river, avoiding the streets, keeping
to the cover of woodland, and there was the sheltered hollow where he had slept
off the worst of his orgy, before gathering himself up stiffly and hobbling
back to the town. There was enough lambent starlight to see his way, and show
him the scuffled and flattened grasses.
But
no, this was not the place! Here there was a faint, trodden path, and he had
certainly moved much deeper into the bushes and trees, down-river, hiding even
from the night. This glade looked very like the other, but it was not the same.
Yet someone or something, large as a man, had lain here, and not peacefully.
Surely more than one pair of feet had ploughed the turf. A pair of opportunist
lovers, enjoying one of the traditional pleasures of the fair? Or another kind
of struggle? No, hardly a struggle, though something had been dragged downhill
towards the river, which was just perceptible as a gleam between the trees.
There was a patch of bare soil, dry and pale as clay, between the spreading
roots of the birch tree against which he leaned, and ribbons of dropped bark
littered it. The largest of them showed curiously dark instead of silvery, like
the rest. He stooped and picked it up, and his fingertips recoiled from the
black, encrusted stain. In the grass, if he searched by daylight, there might
well be other such blots.
In
looking for the place of his own humiliation, he had found something very
different, the place where Master Thomas had been killed. And below, from that
spur of grass standing well above the undermined bank, his body had been thrown
into the river.
After
the Fair
Chapter One
BROTHER
CADFAEL CAME OUT FROM PRIME, next morning, to find Philip hovering anxiously in
the great court, fidgeting from one foot to the other as if the ground under
him burned, and so intent and grim of face that there was no doubting the
urgency of what he had to impart. At sight of Cadfael he came bounding
alongside to lay a hand on his sleeve.
“Will
you come with me to Hugh Beringar? You know him, he’ll listen if you vouch for
me. I didn’t know if he’d be stirring this early, so I waited for you. I think
I’ve found the place where Master Thomas was killed.”
It
was certainly not what he had been looking for, and came as a total irrelevance
for a moment to Brother Cadfael, who checked and blinked at an announcement so
unexpected. “You’ve done what!”
“It’s
true, I swear it! It was so late last night, I couldn’t pester anyone with it
then, and I’ve not been there by daylight—but someone bled there—someone was
dragged down to the water—“
“Come!”
said Cadfael, recovering. “We’ll go together.” And he set out at a brisk trot
for the guest-hall, Philip’s long strides keeping easy pace with him. “If
you’re right… He’ll want you to show the place. Can you find it again with
certainty?”
“I
can, you’ll see why.”
Hugh
came out to them yawning, in shirt and hose, but wide awake and shaven all the
same. “Speak low!” he said, finger on lip, and softly closed
the door of his rooms behind him. “The women are still asleep. Now, what is it?
I know better than to turn away anyone who comes with Brother Cadfael’s
warranty.”
Philip
told only what was needful. For his own personal need there would be time
later. What mattered now was the glade in the edge of the woods, beyond the
orchards of the Gaye.
“I
was following my own scent, last night, and I made too short a cast at the way
I took down to the river. I came on a place in the trees there—I can find it
again—where some heavy thing had lain, and been dragged down to the water. The
grass is flattened where he lay, and combed downhill, where he was dragged, and
for all the three days between, it still shows the traces. I think there are
also spots of blood.”
“The
merchant of Bristol?” asked Hugh, after an instant of startled silence.
“I
think so. Daylight may show for certain.”
Hugh
turned to drain his morning ale in purposeful haste, and demolish the end of
oatcake he had been eating. “You slept at home? In the town?” He was brushing
his black crest hastily as he talked, tying the laces of his shirt and reaching
for his cotte. “And came to me rather than to the sheriff! Well, no harm, we’re
nearer than he, it will save time.” Sword and sword-belt he left lying, and
thrust his feet into his shoes. “Cadfael, you’ll be missing breakfast, take
these cakes with you, and drink something now, while you may. And you, friend,
have you eaten?”
“No
escort?” said Cadfael.
“To
what end? Your eyes and mine are all we require here, and the fewer great boots
stamping about the sward, the better. Come, before Aline wakes, she has a bird’s
hearing, and I’d rather have her rest. Now, Philip, lead! You’re on your home
turf, take us the quickest way.”
Aline
and Emma were at breakfast, resigned to Hugh’s sudden and silent departures,
when Ivo came asking admittance. Punctilious as always, he asked for Hugh.
“But
as that husband of mine has already gone forth somewhere on official business,”
said Aline, amused, “and as it’s certainly you he really wants to see, shall we
let him in? I felt sure he would not go away without paying his
respects to you yet again. He has probably been exercising his wits to find a
way of ensuring it shan’t be the last time, either. He was hardly at his best
last night, and no wonder, after so many shocks, and grazed and bruised from
his fall.”
Emma
said nothing, but her colour rose agreeably. She had risen from her bed with a
sense of entering a life entirely new, and more her own to determine than ever
it had been before. By this hour Master Thomas’s barge must be well down the
Severn on its way home. She was relieved of the necessity of avoiding Roger
Dod’s grievous attentions, and eased of the sense of guilt she felt in doing
him what was probably the great wrong of fearing and distrusting his intentions
towards her. Her belongings were neatly packed for travelling, in a pair of
saddle-bags bought at the fair, for whatever was to become of her now, she
would be leaving the abbey today. If no immediate escort offered for the south,
she would go home with Aline, to await whatever arrangements Hugh could make for
her, and in default of any other trustworthy provision, he himself had promised
her his safe-conduct home to Bristol.
The
bustle of departure filled the stable-yard and the great court, and half the
rooms in the guest-hall had already been vacated. No doubt Turstan Fowler and
the young groom were also assembling their lord’s purchases and effects, and
saddling up the bay horse, returned to the abbey by an enterprising errand-boy
who had been lavishly rewarded, and their own shaggy ponies. Two of them! The third
would be on a leading rein.
Emma
felt cold when she remembered what had befallen the rider of the third pony,
and the things he had done. So sudden a death filled her with horror. But the
man had done murder, and had not scrupled to ride down his own lord when he was
unmasked. It was unreasonable to blame Ivo for what had happened, even if his
order had not been given in an understandable rage at the misuse of his
patronage and the assault upon his own person. Indeed, Emma had been touched,
the previous evening, when the very vehemence with which Ivo had defended his
action had so clearly betrayed his own doubts and regrets. It had ended in her
offering reassurance and comfort. It was a terrible thing in itself, she thought, to have the power of life and death over your
fellowmen, whatever crimes they might have committed.
If
Ivo had lacked something of his normal balance and confidence last night, he
had certainly regained them this morning. His grooming was always immaculate,
and his dress, however simple, sat upon his admirable body with a borrowed
elegance. It had been hateful to him to be spilled into the dust, and rise
limping and defaced before a dozen or more witnesses. This morning he had made
sure of his appearance, and wore even the healing grazes on his left cheek like
ornaments; but as soon as he entered, Emma saw that he was still limping after
his fall.
“I’m
sorry to have missed your husband,” he said as he came into the room where they
were sitting, “but they tell me he’s already gone forth. I had a scheme to put
to him for approval. Dare I put it to you, instead?”
“I’m
already curious,” said Aline, smiling.
“Emma
has a problem, and I have a solution. I’ve been thinking about it ever since
you told me, Emma, two days ago, that you would not be returning to Bristol
with the barge, but must find a safe escort south by road. I have no right at
all to advance any claim, but if Beringar will consent to trust you to me… You
need to get home, I’m sure, as quickly as you can.”
“I
must,” said Emma, eyeing him with wondering expectation. “There are so many
things I must see to there.”
Ivo
addressed himself very earnestly to Aline. “I have a sister at Stanton Cobbold
who is determined to take the veil, and the convent of her choice has consented
to take her. And by luck it happens that she wished to join a Benedictine
house, and the place is the priory at Minchinbarrow, which is some few miles
beyond Bristol. She is waiting for me to take her there, and to tell the truth,
I’ve been delaying to give her time to change her mind, but the girl’s set on
her own way. I’m satisfied she means it. Now if you’ll confide Emma to my care,
as I swear you may with every confidence, for it will be my pleasure to serve
her, then why should not she and Isabel travel down very comfortably together?
I have men enough to provide a safe guard, and naturally I should myself be
their escort. That’s the plan I wanted to put to your husband,
and I hope he would have felt able to fall in with it and give his approval.
It’s great pity he is not here—“
“It
sounds admirable,” said Aline, wide-eyed with pleasure, “and I’m sure Hugh
would feel completely happy in trusting Emma to your care. Had we not better
ask Emma herself what she has to say?”
Emma’s
flushed face and dazzled smile were speaking for her. “I think it would be the
best possible answer, for me,” she said slowly, “and I’m most grateful for so
kind a thought. But I must really go as soon as possible, and your sister— you
said, you wanted her to have time to be sure…”
Ivo
laughed, a little ruefully. “I’ve already reached the point of giving up the
hope of persuading her to stay in the world. Never fear that you may be forcing
Isabel’s hand, ever since she was accepted she has been trying to force mine.
And if it’s what she wants, who am I to prevent? She has everything ready, it
will give her only pleasure if I come home to say that we can start tomorrow.
If you’re willing to trust yourself to me alone for the few miles to Stanton
Cobbold, and sleep under our roof tonight, we can be on our way in the morning.
We can provide you horse and saddle, if you care to ride, or a litter for the
pair of you, as you please.”
“Oh,
I can ride,” she said, glowing. “It would be a delight.”
“We
would try and make it so. If,” said Ivo, turning his grazed smile almost
diffidently upon Aline, “if I may have your approval, and my lord Beringar’s. I
would not presume without that. But since this is a journey I must make, sooner
or later, and Isabel insists the sooner the better, why not take advantage of
it to serve Emma’s need, too?”
“It
would certainly solve everything very happily,” agreed Aline. And there could
be no doubt, thought Emma, bolstering her own dear wish with the persuasion of
virtue, that Aline would be relieved and happy if Hugh could be spared a
journey, and she several days deprived of his company. “Emma knows,” said
Aline, “that she may choose as she thinks best, for both you and we, it seems,
are equally at her service. As for approval, why, of course I approve, and so,
I’m sure, would Hugh.”
“I
wish he would put in an appearance,” said Ivo, “I should be the
happier with his blessing. But if we are to go, I think we should set out at
once. I know I said all’s ready with Isabel, but for all that we may need to
make the most of this day.”
Emma
wavered between her desire and her regret at leaving without making her due and
grateful farewell to Hugh. But it was gain for him, great gain, to be rid of
the responsibility he had assumed, and so securely as this promised. “Aline,
you have been the soul of kindness to me, and I leave you with regret, but it
is better to spare an extra journey, in such times, and then, Hugh has been
kept so busy on my account already, and you’ve seen so little of him these
days… I should like to go with Ivo, if you’ll give me your blessing. Yet I hate
to go without thanking him properly…”
“Don’t
fret about Hugh, he will surely think you wise to take advantage of so kind and
fortunate an offer. I will give him all the pretty messages you’re thinking of.
Once I lose sight of him, now, I never know when he’ll return, and I’m afraid
Ivo is right, you may yet need every moment of the day, or certainly Isabel
may. It’s a great step she’s taking.”
“So
I’ve told her,” he said, “but my sister has the boldness of mind to take great
steps. You won’t mind, Emma, riding pillion behind me, the few miles we have to
go today? At home we’ll find you saddle and horse and all.”
“Really,”
said Aline, eyeing the pair of them with a small and private smile, “I begin to
be envious!”
He
sent the young groom to fetch out her saddle-bags. Their light weight was added
to the bales of Corbiиre’s purchases on the spare pony, her cloak, which she
certainly would not need on so fine a day, folded and stowed away with the
bags. It was like setting out into a new world, sunlit and inviting, but
frighteningly wide. True, she had solemn duties waiting for her in Bristol, not
least the confession of a failure, but for all that, she felt as if she had
almost shed the past, and could be glad of the riddance, and was stepping into
this unknown world unburdened and unguarded, truly her own mistress.
Aline
kissed her affectionately, and wished them both a happy journey. Emma cast
frequent glances towards the gatehouse until the last moment, in case Hugh
should appear, but he did not; she had still to leave her messages to Aline for delivery. Ivo mounted first, since the bay, as he said, was in a
skittish mood and inclined to play tricks, and then turned to give her a
steady, sustaining hand as Turstan Fowler hoisted her easily to the pillion.
“Even
with two of us up,” said Ivo over his shoulder, smiling, “this creature can be
mettlesome when he’s fresh out. For safety hold me fast about the waist, and
close your hands on my belt—so, that’s well!” He saluted Aline very gracefully
and courteously. “I’ll see she reaches Bristol safely, I promise!”
He
rode out at the gatehouse in shirt-sleeves, just as he had ridden in, his men,
now two only, at his heels, and the pack-pony trotting contentedly under his
light load. Emma’s arms easily spanned Ivo’s slenderness, and the feel of his
spare, strong body was warm and muscular and vital through the fine linen. As
they threaded the Foregate, now emptying fast, he laid his own left hand over
her clasped ones, pressing them firmly against his flat middle, and though she
knew he was simply assuring himself that her hold was secure, she could not
help feeling that it was also a caress.
She
had laughed and shaken her head over Aline’s romantic fantasies, refusing to
believe in any union between landed nobility and trade, except for mutual
profit. Now she was not so sure that wisdom was all with the sceptics.
The
hollow where the big, heavy body had lain still showed at least the approximate
bulk of Master Thomas’s person, and round about it the grass was trodden, as
though someone, or perhaps more than one, had circled all round him as he lay
dead. And so they surely had, for here he must have been stripped and searched,
the first of those fruitless searches Brother Cadfael had deduced from the
events following. Out of the hollow, down to the raised bank of the river, went
the track by which he had been dragged, the grass, growing longer as it emerged
from shade, all brushed in one direction. Nor was there any doubt about the
traces of blood, meagre though they were. The sliver of birch bark under the
tree showed a thin crust, dried black. Careful search found one or two more
spots, and a thin smear drawn downhill, where it seemed the dead man had been
turned on his back to be hauled the more easily down to the water.
“It’s deep here,” said Hugh, standing on
the green hillock above the river, “and undercuts the bank, it would take him
well out into the current. I fancy the clothes went after him at once, we may
find the rest yet. One man could have done it. Had they been two, they would
have carried him.”
“Would
you say,” wondered Cadfael, “that this is a reasonable way he might take to get
back to his barge? He’d know his boat lay somewhat down-river from the bridge,
I suppose he might try a chance cut through from the Foregate, and overcast by
a little way. You see the end of the jetty, where the barge tied up, is only a
small way upstream from us. Would you say he was alone, and unsuspecting, when
he was struck down?”
Hugh
surveyed the ground narrowly. It was not the scene of a struggle, there was the
flattened area of the body’s fall, and the trampling of feet all round its
stillness. The brushings of the grass this way and that were ordered, not the
marks of a fight.
“Yes.
There was no resistance. Someone crept behind, and pierced him without word or
scruple. He went down and lay. He was on his way back, preferring the byways,
and came out a little downstream of where he aimed. Someone had been watching and
following him.”
“The
same night,” said Philip flatly, “someone had been watching and following me.”
He
had their attention at once, both of them eyeing him with sharp interest. “The
same someone?” suggested Cadfael mildly.
“I
haven’t told you my own part,” said Philip. “It went out of my head when I
stumbled on this place, and guessed at what it meant. What I set out to do was
to find out just what I did that night, and prove I never did murder. For I’d
come to think that whoever intended this killing had his eye on me from the
start. I came from that riot on the jetty, with my head bleeding and my mood
for murder, I was a gift, if I could but be out of sight and mind when murder
was done.” He told them everything he had discovered, word for word. By the end
of it they were both regarding him with intent and frowning concentration.
“The
man Fowler?” said Hugh. “You’re sure of this?”
“Walter
Renold is sure, and I think him a good witness. The man was
there to be seen, I pointed him out, and Wat told me what he’d seen of him that
night. Fowler looked in, saw and heard the condition I was in, and went away
again for it might be as much as half an hour, says Wat. Then he came back,
took one measure of ale to drink, and bought a big flask of geneva spirit.”
“And
left with it unopened,” Brother Cadfael recalled, “as soon as you took yourself
off with your misery into the bushes. No need to blush for it now, we’ve all
done as foolishly once or twice in our lives, many of us have bettered it. And
the next that’s known of him,” he said, meeting Hugh’s eyes across the glade,
“is two hours later, when we discover him lying sodden-drunk under a store of
trestles by the Foregate.”
“And
Wat of the tavern swears he was sober as a bishop when he quit the inn.”
“And
I would swear by Wat’s judgment,” said Philip stoutly. “If any man drank that
flagon dry in two hours, he says, it would be the death of him, or go very
near. And Fowler was testifying in court next day, and little the worse for
wear.”
“Good
God!” said Hugh, shaking his head. “I stooped over him, I pulled back the cloak
from his shoulders. The fellow reeked. His breath would have felled an ox. Am I
losing my wits?”
“Or
was it rather the reek you loosed by moving the cloak? I begin to have curious
thoughts,” said Cadfael, “for I fancy that juniper liquor was bought for his
outside, not his inside.”
“A
costly freak,” mused Hugh, “the price such liquors are. Cheap enough, though,
if it bought him immunity from all suspicion of a thing that could have cost him
a deal higher. What was the first thing I said?—more fool I! By the look of
him, I said, he must have been here some hours already. And where did he go
from there? Safely into an abbey punishment cell, and lay there overnight. How
could he be guilty of anything but being a drunken sot? Children and drunken
men are the world’s only innocents! If murder was done that night, who was to
look at a man who had put himself out of the reckoning from the time Master
Thomas was last seen alive to the time when his body was brought back to
Shrewsbury?”
Cadfael’s
mind had probed even beyond that point, though nothing beyond
was yet clear. “I have a fancy, Hugh, to look again at the place where we
picked up that sodden carcase, if it can be found. Surely an honest drunk
should have had his bottle lying beside him for all to see. But I remember
none. If we missed it, and some stray scavenger found it by night, still
half-full or more, well and good. But if by any chance it was hidden—so that no
questions need ever be asked about how much had been drunk, and what manner of
head could have borne it—would that be the act of a simple sot? He could not
walk through the fairground stinking as he did, whether from outside or in. His
baptism was there, where we found him tucked away. So should his bottle have
been.”
“And
if he was neither simple nor a sot that night, Cadfael, how do you read his
comings and goings? He looked in at the tavern, took note of this lad’s state,
listened to his complaints, and went away—where?”
“As
far as Master Thomas’s booth, perhaps, to make sure the merchant was there,
busy about his wares, and likely to be busy for a while longer? And so back to
the tavern to keep watch on Philip, so handy a scapegoat, and so clearly on the
way to ending the evening blind and deaf. And afterwards, when he had followed
him far enough into the copse to know he was lost to the world, back to dog
Master Thomas’s footsteps as he made his way back to the barge. Made his way,
that is, as far as this place.”
“It
is all conjecture,” said Hugh reasonably.
“It
is. But read it so, and it makes sense.”
“Then
back with his flask of spirits ready, to slip unseen into a place withdrawn and
private, and become the wretched object we found. How long would it take, would
you say, to kill his man, search and strip him down to the river?”
“Counting
the time spent following him unseen, and returning unnoticed to the fairground
after all was done, more than an hour of those two hours lost between drunk and
sober. No,” said Cadfael sombrely, “I do not think he spent any of that time
drinking.”
“Was
it he, also, who boarded the barge? But no, that he could not, he was at the
sheriff’s court. Concerning the merchant of Shotwick, we already know his
slayer.”
“We
know one of them,” said Cadfael. “Can any of these matters be
separated from the rest? I think not. This pursuit is all one.”
“You do grasp,” said Hugh, after a long moment of
furious thought, “what it is we are saying? Here are these two men, one proven
a murderer, the other suspect. And yesterday the one of them fetched down the
other to his death. Coldly, expertly… Before we say more,” said Hugh abruptly,
casting a final glance about the glade, “let’s do as you suggested, look again
at the place where we found him lying.”
Chapter
Two
PHILIP,
WHO WAS LEARNING HOW TO LISTEN AND BE SILENT, followed at their heels all the
way back through the orchards and gardens of the Gaye. Neither of them found
fault with his persistence. He had earned his place, and had no intention of
being put off. All the larger boats were already gone from the jetty. Soon the
labourers would begin dismantling the boards and piers until the following
year, and stowing them away in the abbey storehouses. Along the Foregate stalls
were being taken down and stacked for removal, while two of the abbey carts
worked their way along from the horse-fair towards the gatehouse.
“More
than halfway along, I remember,” said Hugh, “and well back from the roadway.
There were few lights, most of the stalls here were for the country people who
come in by the day. Somewhere in this stretch.”
There
had been trestles stacked that night, and canvas awnings leaning against them
ready for use. This morning there were also piles of trestles and boards, ready
now to be put away for the next fair. They surveyed all the likely area, but to
lay a finger on the exact place was impossible. One of the collecting carts had
reached this stretch, and two lay servants were hoisting the heaped planks
aboard, and stacking the trestles one within another in high piles. Cadfael
watched as the ground was gradually cleared.
“You’ve
found some unexpected discards,” he commented, for a corner of the cart carried
a small pile of odd objects, a large shoe, a short cotte, bedraggled but by no means old or ragged, a child’s wooden doll with one arm missing, a
green capuchon, a drinking-horn.
“There’ll
be many more such, brother,” said the carter, grinning, “before the whole
ground’s cleared. Some will be claimed. I fancy some child will want to know
where she lost her doll. And the cotte is good stuff, some young gentleman took
a drop too much, and forgot to collect that when he moved. The shoe’s as good
as new, too, and a giant’s size, somebody may sneak in, shamefaced, to ask
after that. I hope he had not far to go home with only one. But it wasn’t a
rowdy night—not like many a night I’ve seen.” He slid powerful arms under a
stack of trestles, and hoisted them bodily. “You’d hardly credit where we found
that flagon mere.”
His
nod indicated the front of the car, to which Cadfael had hitherto devoted no
attention. Slung by a thin leather thong from the shaft hung a flattened glass
bottle large enough to hold a quart. “Stuck on top of the canvas over one of
the country stalls. An old woman who sells cheeses had the stall, I know her,
she comes every year, and seeing she’s not so nimble nowadays, we put up the
stall for her the night before the fair opened. The bottle all but brained
Daniel here, when we took it down, this morning! Fancy tossing a bottle like
that away as if it had no value! He could have got a free drink at Wat’s if
he’d taken it back, whoever he was.”
His
armful of trestles thumped into the cart, and he turned to heave a stack of
boards after it.
“It
came from Wat’s tavern then, did it?” asked Cadfael, very thoughtfully gazing.
“It
has his mark on the thong. We all know where they belong, these better vessels.
But they’re not often left for us.”
“And
where was the stall where this one was left?” asked Hugh over Cadfael’s
shoulder.
“Not
ten yards back from where you’re standing.” They could not resist looking back
to measure, and it would do. It would do very well. “The odd thing is, the old
woman swore, when she came to put out her wares, that there was a stink of
spirits about the place. Said she could smell it in her skirts at night, as if
she’d been wading in it. But after the first day she forgot
about it. She’s half-Welsh, and has a touch of the strange about her, I daresay
she imagined it.”
Cadfael
would have said, rather, that she had a keen nose, and some knowledge of the
distilling of spirits, and had accurately assessed the cause of her uneasiness.
Somewhere in the grass close to her stall, he was now certain, a good part of
that quart of liquor had been poured out generously over clothing and ground,
no wonder the turf retained it. A taste of it, perhaps, to scent the breath and
steady the mind, might have gone down a throat; but no more, for the mind had
been steady indeed, when stranger stooped over its fleshly habitation, and sniffed
at its flagrant drunkenness. Strangers, all but one! Cadfael began to see what
could hardly be called light, for he was looking into a profound darkness.
“It
so happens,” he said, “that we have some business with Walter Renold. Will you
let us take your bottle back to him? You shall have the credit for it with
him.”
“Take
it, brother,” agreed the carter cheerfully, unleashing the bottle from the
shaft. “Tell him Rychart Nyall sent it. Wat knows me.”
“Nothing
in it, I suppose, when you found it?” hazarded Cadfael, hefting the fated thing
in one hand.
“Never
a drop, brother! Fair-goers may abandon the bottle, but they make sure of
what’s inside before they fall senseless!”
The
boards were stowed, the stripped ground lay trampled and naked, the cart moved
on. It would take no more than a handful of days and the next summer showers,
and all the green, fine hair would grow again, and the bald clay coil into
ringlets.
“It’s
mine, surely,” said Wat, receiving the bottle into a large hand. “The only one
of its kind I’m short. Who buys this measure of spirits, even at a fair? Who
has the money to afford it? And who chooses it afore decent ale and wine? Not
many! I’ve known men desperate to sink their souls fast, at whatever cost, but
seldom at a fair. They turn genial at fairs, even the sad fellows get the wind
of it, and mellow. I marvelled at that one, even when he asked for it and paid
the price, but he was plainly some lord’s servant, he had his orders. He had
money, and I sell liquor. But yes, if it’s of worth to you,
that same fellow Philip here knows of, that’s the measure he bought.”
A
retired corner of Wat’s large taproom was as good a place as any to sit down
and think before action, and try to make sense of what they had gathered.
“Wat
has just put words to it,” said Cadfael. “We should have been quicker to see.
He was plainly some lord’s servant, he had his orders, he had money. One man
from a lord’s household suborned to murder by an unknown, one such setting out
on his own account to enrich himself by murder and theft, that I could believe
in. But two? From the same household? No, I think not! They never strayed from
their own manor. They served but one lord.”
“Their
own? Corbiиre?” whispered Philip, the breath knocked out of him by the enormity
of the implications. “But he… The way I heard it, the groom tried to ride him
down. Struck him into the dust when he tried to stop him. How can you account
for that? There’s no sense in it.”
“Wait!
Take it from the beginning. Say that on the night Master Thomas died, Fowler
was sent out to deal with him, to get possession of whatever it is someone so
much desires. His lord has spied out the land, told him of a handy scapegoat
who may yet be useful, given him money for the drink that will put him out of
the reckoning when the deed is done. The man would demand immunity, he must be
seen to be out of the reckoning. His lord keeps in close touch, joins us when
we go forth to look for the missing merchant. Recollect, Hugh, it was Corbiиre,
not we, who discovered his truant man. We had passed him by, and that would not
have done. He must be found, must be seen to be so drunk as to have been
helpless and harmless some hours, and must then be manifestly under lock and
key many hours more. Ten murders could have been committed that night, and no
one would ever have looked at Turstan Fowler.”
“All
for nothing,” pointed out Hugh. “Sooner or later he had to tell his master that
murder had been done in vain. Master Thomas did not carry his treasure on him.”
“I
doubt if he found that out until morning, when he had his man let out of
prison. Therefore he brought Fowler to lay evidence that made sure the finger
was pointed at Philip here, and while we were all blamelessly
busy at the sheriff’s hearing, sent his second man to search the barge. And
again, vainly. Am I making sense of it thus far?”
“Sound
enough,” said Hugh sombrely. “The worst is yet to come. Which man, do you
suppose, did the work that day?”
“I
doubt if they ever involved the young one. Two were enough to do the business.
The groom Ewald, I think. Those two were the hands that did all. But they were
not the mind.”
“That
same night, then, they broke into the booth, and made their search there, and
still without success. The next night came the attack that killed Euan of
Shotwick.” Hugh said no word of the violation of Master Thomas’s coffin. “And,
as I remember you argued, once more in vain. So far, possible enough. But come
to yesterday’s thorny business. For God’s sake, how can sense be made of that affair?
I was there watching the man, I saw him change colour, I swear it! Shock and
anger and affronted honour, he showed them all. He would not send for the
groom, for fear a fellow-servant might warn him, he would fetch him himself. He
placed himself between his man and the gate, he risked maiming or worse, trying
to halt his flight…”
“All
that,” agreed Cadfael heavily, “and yet there is sense in it all, though a more
abominable sense even than you or I dreamed of. Ewald was in the stables, there
was no escape for him unless he could break out of our walls. Corbiиre came at
the sheriff’s bidding, and was told all. His man was detected past denying, and
driven into a corner, he would pour out everything he knew, lay the load on his
lord. Consider the order in which everything happened from that moment. Fowler
had been at the butts, and had his arbalest with him. Corbiиre set off to
summon Ewald from the stables, Turstan made to follow him, yes, and some words
were exchanged that sent him back. But what words? They were too distant to be
heard. Nor could we guess what was said in the stable-yard. We waited—you’ll
agree?—several minutes before they came. Long enough for Corbiиre to tell the
groom how things stood, bid him keep his head, promise him escape. Bring the
horse, I will ensure that only I stand between you and the gate, pick your
moment, mount and away. Lie up in hiding—doubtless at his manor—and you shan’t
be the loser. But make it clear that I have no part in
this—attack me, make it good for your part, I will make it good for mine. And
so he did—the finest player of a part that ever I saw. He set himself between
Ewald and the gate, and between them they used the lively horse to edge us all
that way. He made a gallant grab at the rein, and took a heavy fall, and the
groom was clear.”
They
were both gazing at him in mute fascination, wide-eyed.
“Except
that his lord had one more trick to play,” said Cadfael. “He had never intended
to let him go. Escape was too great a risk, he might yet be taken, and open his
mouth. ‘Fetch him down!’ said Corbiиre, and Turstan Fowler did it. Without
compunction, like master, like man. A dangerous mouth—dangerous to both of
them—closed at no cost.”
There
was a long moment of appalled silence. Even Beringar, whose breadth of mind
could conceive, though with detestation, prodigies of evil and treachery, was
shocked out of words. Philip stared aghast, huge of eye, and came slowly to his
feet. His experience was narrow, local and decent, it was hard to grasp that
men could be monsters.
“You
mean it! You believe it! But this man—he visits her, he pays court to her! And
you say there was something he wanted from her uncle, and has missed
getting—not on his body, not in his barge, not in his booth—where is there
left, but with Emma? And we delay here!”
“Emma
is with my wife,” said Hugh reasonably, “in the abbey guest-hall, what harm can
come to her there?”
“What
harm?” cried Philip passionately. “When you tell me we are dealing not with
men, but with devils?” And he whirled on the heel of a trodden shoe and ran,
out of the tavern and arrow-straight along the road towards the Foregate, long
legs flashing.
Cadfael
and Hugh were left regarding each other mutely across the table, but for no
more than a moment. “By God,” said Hugh then, “we learn of the innocents! Come
on, we’d best make haste after. The lad’s shaken me!”
Philip
came to the guest-hall out of breath. With chest heaving from his running he
asked for Aline, and she came out, smiling but alone.
“Why, Philip, what’s the matter?” Then
she thought she knew, and was sorry for a lovesick boy who came too late even
to take a dignified farewell, and receive what comfort a few kind words,
costing nothing, could provide him. “Oh, Philip, I am sorry you’ve missed her,
but they could not linger, it was necessary to leave in good time. She would
have wished me to say her goodbye to you, and wish you…” The words faded on her
lips. “Philip, what is it? What ails you?”
“Gone?”
he said, hard and shrill. “She’s gone? They, you said! Who? Who is gone with
her?”
“Why,
she left with Messire Corbiиre, he has offered to escort her to Bristol with
his sister, who goes to a convent there. It seemed a lucky chance… Philip! What
have I said? What is wrong?” He had let out a great groan of fury and anguish,
and even reached a hand to grip her wrist.
“Where?
Where is he taking her? Now, today!”
“To
his manor of Stanton Cobbold for tonight—his sister is there…”
But
he was gone, the instant she had named the place, running like a purposeful
demon, and not towards the gatehouse, but across the court to the stable-yard.
There was no time to ask leave of any man, or respect any man’s property,
whatever the consequences. Philip took the best-looking horse he saw ready to
hand, which by luck—Philip’s luck, not the owner’s!—stood saddled and waiting
for departure, on a tether in the yard. Before Aline, bewildered and
frightened, reached the doorway of the hall, Philip was already out of the
gate, and a furious groom was haring across the court in voluble and hopeless
pursuit.
Since
the nearest way to the road leading south towards Stretton and Stanton Cobbold
was to turn left at the gate, and left again by the narrow track on the near
side of the bridge, Brother Cadfael and Hugh Beringar, hastening along the
Foregate, saw nothing of the turmoil that attended Philip’s departure. They
came to the gatehouse and the great court without any intimation that things
could have gone amiss. There were still guests departing, the normal bustle of
the day after the fair, but nothing to give them pause. Hugh made straight for
the guest-hall, and Cadfael, following hard on his heels, was
suddenly arrested by a large hand on his shoulder, and a familiar, hearty voice
hailing him in amiable Welsh.
“The
very man I was looking for! I come to make my farewells, brother, and thank you
for your companionship. A good fair! I’m off to my boat now, and away home with
a handsome profit.”
Rhodri
ap Huw beamed merrily from within the covert of his black beard and thorn-bush
of black hair.
“Far
from a good fair to two, at least, who came looking for a profit,” said Cadfael
ruefully.
“Ah,
but in cash, or some other currency? Though it all comes down to cash in the
end, cash or power. What else do men labour for?”
“For
a cause, perhaps, now and then one. You said yourself, I remember, no place
like one of the great fairs for meeting someone you’d liefer not be seen
meeting. Nowhere so solitary as the middle of a market place!” And he added
mildly: “I daresay Owain Gwynedd himself may have had his intelligencers here.
Though they’d need to have good English,” he said guilelessly, “to gather much
profit from it.”
“They
would so. No use employing me. I daresay you’re right, though. Owain needs to
have forward information, as much as any man, if he’s to keep his princedom
safe, and add a few more miles to it here and there. Now I wonder which of all
these traders I’ve rubbed shoulders with will be making his report in Owain’s
ear!”
“And
what advice he’ll be giving him,” said Cadfael.
Rhodri
stroked his splendid beard, and his dark eyes twinkled. “I think he might take
him word that the message Earl Ranulf expected from the south—who knows, maybe
even from overseas—will never be delivered, and if he wants to get the best out
of the hour, he should be aiming to enlarge his rule away from Chester’s
borders, for the earl will be taking no risks, but looking well to his own.
Owain would do better to make his bid in Maelienydd and Elfael, and let Ranulf
alone.”
“Now
I come to think,” mused Cadfael, “it would be excellent cover for Owain’s
intelligencers to ask the help of an interpreter in these parts, and be seen to
need him. Tongues wag more freely before the deaf man.”
“A good thought,” approved Rhodri.
“Someone should suggest it to Owain.” Though there was every indication that
the prince of Gwynedd needed no other man’s wits to fortify his own, but had
been lavishly endowed by God in the first place. Cadfael wondered how many
other tongues this simple merchant knew. French, almost certainly enough for
his purposes. Flemish, possibly a little, he had undoubtedly travelled in
Flanders. It would be no surprise if he knew some Latin, too.
“You’ll
be coming to Saint Peter’s Fair next year?”
“I
may, brother, I may, who knows! Will you come forth again and speak for me, if
I do?”
“Gladly.
I’m a Gwynedd man myself. Take my greetings back with you to the mountains. And
good speed on the way!”
“God
keep you!” said Rhodri, still beaming, and clapped him buoyantly on the
shoulder, and set off towards the riverside.
Hugh
had no sooner set foot in the hall when Aline flew into his arms, with a cry of
relief and desperation mingled, and began to pour into his ears all her
bewilderment and anxiety.
“Oh,
Hugh, I think I must have done something terrible! Either that, or Philip
Corviser has gone mad. He was here asking after Emma, and when I told him she
was gone he rushed away like a madman, and there’s a merchant from Worcester in
the stables accusing him of stealing his horse and making off with it, and what
it all means I daren’t guess, but I’m afraid…”
Hugh
held her tenderly, dismayed and solicitous. “Emma’s gone? But she was coming
home with us. What happened to change it?”
“You
know he’s been paying attentions to her… He came this morning asking for you—he
said he has a sister who is entering the nunnery at Minchinbarrow, and since he
must escort her there, and it’s barely five miles from Bristol, he could as
well take Emma home in his sister’s company. He said they’d sleep overnight at
his manor, and set off tomorrow. Emma said yes, and I thought no wrong, why
should I? But the very name has sent Philip off like a man demented…”
“Corbiиre?” demanded Hugh, holding her
off by the shoulders to peer anxiously into her face.
“Yes!
Yes, Ivo, of course—but what’s so wrong in that? He takes her to his sister at
Stanton Cobbold—I thought it ideal, so did she, and you were not here to say
yes or no. Besides, she is her own mistress…”
True,
the girl had a will of her own, and liked the man who had made the offer, and
was flattered at being singled out for his favours. Even for the sake of her
own independence she would have chosen to go, and Hugh, had he been present,
would not then have known or suspected enough to prevent. He tightened his arms
comfortingly round his trembling wife, his cheek pressed against her hair. “My
love, my heart, you could not have done anything but what you did, and I should
have done the same. But I must go after. No questions now, you shall know
everything later. We’ll bring her back— there’ll be no harm done…”
“It’s
true, then!” whispered Aline, her breath fluttering against his throat.
“There’s reason to fear harm? I’ve let her go into danger?”
“You
could not stop her. She chose to go. Think no more of your part, you played none—how
could you know? Where’s Constance? Love, I hate to leave you like this…”
He
was thinking, of course, like all men, she thought, that any grievous upset to
his wife in this condition was a potential upset to his son. That roused her.
She was not the girl to keep a man dancing anxious attention on her, even if
she had a wife’s claim on him, when he was needed more urgently elsewhere. She
drew herself resolutely out of his arms.
“Of
course you must leave me. I’ve taken no harm, and shall take none. Go, quickly!
They have a good three hours start of you, and besides, if you delay, Philip
may run his head into trouble alone. Send quickly for what men you can muster,
and I’ll go see what I can do to placate the merchant whose horse has been
borrowed…” He was loath, all the same, to let go of her. She took his head
between her hands, kissed him hard, and turned him about just as Cadfael came
in at the hall door.
“She’s
gone with Corbiиre,” said Hugh, conveying news in the fewest words possible.
“Bound for his one Shropshire manor. The boy’s off after them, and so must I.
I’ll send word to Prestcote to have a guard follow as fast as
may be. You’ll be here to take care of Aline…”
Aline
doubted that, seeing the spark flare up in Brother Cadfael’s bright and militant
eye. Hastily she said: “I need no one to nurse me. Only go—both of you!”
“I have licence,” said Cadfael, clutching at virtue
to cover his ardour. “Abbot Radulfus gave me the charge of seeing that his
guest came to no harm under his roof, and I’ll stretch that to extend beyond
his roof, and make it good, too. You have a horse to spare, Hugh, besides that
raw-boned dapple of yours. Come on! It’s a year since you and I rode together.”
Chapter
Three
THE
MANOR OF STANTON COBBOLD lay a good seventeen miles from Shrewsbury, in the
south of the shire, and cheek by jowl with the large property of the bishops of
Hereford in those parts, which covered some nine or ten manors. The road lay
through the more open and sunlit stretches of the Long Forest, and at its
southernmost fringe plunged in among the hump-backed hills at the western side
of a long, bare ridge that ran for some miles. Here and there a wooded valley
backed into its bare flank, and into one of these Corbiиre turned, along a firm
cart-track. It was the height of the early afternoon then, the sun at its
highest, but even so the crowding trees cast sudden chill and shadow. The bay
horse had worked off his high spirits, and went placidly under his double
burden. Once in the forest they had halted briefly, and Ivo had produced wine
and oat-cakes as refreshment on the journey, and paid Emma every possible
delicate attention. The day was fair, the countryside strange to her and
beautiful, and she was embarked on an agreeable adventure. She approached Stanton
Cobbold with only the happiest anticipation, flattered by Ivo’s deference, and
eager to meet his sister.
A
rivulet ran alongside the track, coming down from the ridge. The path narrowed,
and the trees closed in.
“We
are all but home,” said Ivo over his shoulder; and in a few minutes more the
rising ground opened before them into a narrow, level plot enclosed before with
a wooden stockade. Within, the manor house backed solidly into the hillside,
trees at the back, trees shutting it in darkly at either end. A
boy came running to open the gate for them, and they rode into the enclosure.
Barns and byres lined the stockade within. The manor itself showed a long
undercroft of stone, buttressed, and pierced with two doors wide enough for
carts, and a living floor above, also of stone for most of its length, where
the great hall and the kitchens and pantries lay, but at the right, stone gave
place to timber, and stone mullions to wooden window-frames and stout shutters;
and this wooden living apartment was taller than the stone portion, and seemed
to have an additional floor above the solar. A tall stone stair led up to the
hall door.
“Modest
enough,” said Ivo, turning his head to smile at her, “but it has room and a
welcome for you.”
He
was well served. Grooms came running before the horse had halted, a maid
appeared in the hall doorway, and began to flutter down to meet them.
Ivo
kicked his feet free of the stirrups, swung a leg nimbly over the horse’s
bowing head, and leaped down, waving Turstan Fowler aside, to stretch up his
arms to Emma and lift her down herself. Her slight weight gave him no trouble,
he held her aloft for a long moment to prove it, laughing, before he set her
down.
“Come,
I’ll take you up to the solar.” He put off the maid with a flick of his hand,
and she stood aside and followed them demurely up the steps, but let them go on
without her when they reached the hall. The thick stone walls struck inward
with a palpable chill. The hall was large and lofty, the high ceiling
smoke-stained, but now, in the summer, the huge fireplace was empty and cold.
The mullioned windows let in air far more genial than that within, and a
comforting light, but they were narrow, and could do little to temper the
oppression of the room. “Not my most amiable home,” said Ivo with a grimace,
“but in these Welsh borders we built for defence, not for comfort. Come up to
the solar. The timber end was built on later, but even there this is a chill,
dark house. Even on summer evenings we need some firing.”
A
short staircase at the end of the hall led up to a broad gallery and a pair of
doors. “The chapel,” he said, indicating that on the left. “There are two small
bedchambers above, dark, since they look into the hillside and the trees at
close quarters. And in here, if you’ll forgive me while I attend to your baggage and mine, and see the horses stabled, I’ll rejoin you
shortly.”
The
solar into which he led her contained a massive table, a carved bench,
cushioned chairs, tapestries draping the walls, and rugs on the floor, and was
a place of some comfort and elegance, if also somewhat dim and cold, chiefly by
reason of the looming hillside and the shrouding trees, and the narrow windows
that let in so little of the day, and so filtered through heavy branches. Here there
was no fireplace, the only chimney serving the hall and the kitchens; but the
centre of the floor was set with large paving stones to make a hearth proof
against cinders, and on this square a brazier burned, even on this summer day.
Charcoal and wood glowed, discreetly massed, to give a central spark of comfort
without smoke. Summer sunlight failed to warm through the arm’s-length
thickness of the stone walls below, and here the sun, though confronted only
with friendly timber, hardly ever reached.
Emma
went forward into the room and stood looking about her curiously. She heard Ivo
close the door between them, but it was only a very small sound in a large
silence.
She
had expected his sister to appear immediately on his return, and felt a pang of
disappointment, though she knew it was unreasonable. He had sent no word ahead,
how could the girl have known? She might, with good reason, be out walking on
the open hill in the full summer warmth, or she might have duties elsewhere.
When she did come, it would be to the pleasure of having her brother home, and
with a visitor of her own sex and approximate age, into the bargain, and to
hear that she was to have her will without further delay. Yet her absence was a
disappointment, and his failure to remark on it or apologise for it was a check
to her eagerness.
She
began to explore the room, interested in everything. Her own city home was
cushioned and comfortable by comparison, though no less dark and shut in, if
not among trees, among the buildings the trees provided. She was aware that she
had been born to comparative wealth, but wealth concentrated into one
commodious and well-furbished dwelling, whereas this border manor represented
only perhaps a tenth of what Ivo possessed, without regard to the land attached
to all those manors. He had said himself that this was not the most
genial of his homes, yet it held sway over she could not guess how many miles
of land, and how many free tenants and unfree villeins. It was another world.
She had looked at it from a distance, and been dazzled, but never to blindness.
She
felt a conviction suddenly that it was not for her, though whether she was glad
or sorry remained a mystery.
All
the same, there was knowledge and taste here beyond her experience. The brazier
was a beautiful thing, a credit to the smith who made it; on three braced legs
like saplings, the fire-basket a trellis of vine-leaves. If it had a fault, it
was that it was raised rather too high, she thought, to be completely stable.
The cushions of the chairs were of fine embroidery of hunting scenes, though
dulled by use and friction and the touch of slightly greasy fingers. On a shelf
built under the table there were books, a psalter, a vellum folder of music,
and a faded treatise with strange diagrams. The carving of chairs and table and
bench-ends was like live plants growing. The tapestries that covered all the
walls between windows and door were surely old, rich, wonderfully worked, and
once had had glorious colours that showed still, here and there, in the
protected folds; but they were smoke-blackened almost beyond recognition,
rotted here and there into tinder. She parted a fold, and the hound, plunging
with snarling jaws and stretched paws between her fingers, disintegrated into
powdery dust, and floated on the air in slow dissolution. She let fall the
threads she held, and retreated in dismay. The very dust on her palms felt like
ash.
She
waited, but nobody came. Probably the time she waited was not as long as she
supposed, by no means as long as it felt to her, but it seemed an age, a year
of her life.
In
the end, she thought she might not be offending by wandering along the gallery
into the chapel. She might at least hear if there was any activity below. Ivo
had bought Flemish tapestries for his new Cheshire manor, he might well be
unbaling them and delighting in their fresh colours. She could forgive a degree
of neglect in such circumstances.
She
set her hand to the latch of the door, and trustingly lifted it. The door did
not give. She tried it again, more strongly, but the barrier remained
immovable. No doubt of it, the door was locked.
What
she felt first was sheer incredulity, even amusement, as if
some foolish accident had dropped a latch and shut her in by mistake. Then came
the instinctive wish of every creature locked in, to get out; and only after
that the flare of alarm and the startled and furious reappraisal, in search of
understanding. No mistake, no! Ivo’s own hand had turned the key on her.
She
was not the girl to fall into a frenzy and batter on the door. What good would
that do? She stood quite still with the latch in her hand, while her wits ran
after truth as fiercely as the hound in the tapestry after the hart. She was
here in an upstairs room, with no other door, and windows not only narrow for
even her slender body to pass through, but high above ground, by reason of the
slope. There was no way out until someone unlocked the door.
She
had come with him guilelessly, in good faith, and he turned into her gaoler.
What did he want of her? She knew she had beauty, but suddenly was certain he
would not go to such trouble on that account. Not her person, then, and there
was only one thing in her possession for which someone had been willing to go
to extremes. Deaths had followed it wherever it passed. One of those deaths a
servant of his had helped to bring about, and he had dealt out summary justice.
A sordid attack for gain, a theft that accidentally ended in murder, and the
stolen property found to prove it! She had accepted that as everyone had
accepted it. To doubt it was to see beyond into a pit too black to be credited,
but she was peering into that darkness now. It was Ivo, and no other, who had
caged her.
If
she could not pass through the windows, the letter she carried could, though
that would be to risk others finding it. Its weight was light, it would not
carry far. All the same, she crossed to the windows and peered out through the
slits at the slope of grass and the fringe of trees below; and there, sprawled
at ease against the bole of a beech with his arbalest beside him, was Turstan
Fowler, looking up idly at these very windows. When he caught sight of her face
between the timbers of the frame, he grinned broadly. No help there.
She
withdrew from the window, trembling. Quickly she drew up, from its
resting-place between her breasts, the small, tightly-rolled vellum bag she had
carried ever since Master Thomas had hung it about her neck, before they
reached Shrewsbury. It measured almost the length of her hand, but was
thin as two fingers of that same hand, and the thread on which it hung was of
silk, cobweb-fine. It did not need a very large hiding-place. She coiled the
silk thread about it, and rolled it carefully into the great swathe of
blue-black tresses coiled within her coif of silken net, until its shape was
utterly shrouded and lost. When she had adjusted the net to hold it secure, and
every strand of hair lay to all appearances undisturbed, she stood with hands
clasped tightly to steady them, and drew in long breaths until the racing of
her heart was calmed. Then she put the brazier between herself and the door,
and looking up across the room, felt the heart she had just steeled to
composure leap frantically in her breast.
Once
again she had failed to hear the key turn in the lock. He kept his defences
well oiled and silent. He was there in the doorway, smiling with easy
confidence, closing the door behind him without taking his eyes from her. She
knew by the motion of his arm and shoulder that he had transferred the key to
the inner side, and again turned it. Even in his own manor, with his household
about him, he took no risks. Even with no more formidable opponent than Emma
Vernold! It was, in its way, a compliment, but one she could have done without.
Since
he could not know whether she had or had not tried the door, she chose to
behave as if nothing had happened to disturb her. She acknowledged his entrance
with an expectant smile, and opened her lips to force out some harmless
enquiry, but he was before her.
“Where
is it? Give it to me freely, and come to no harm. I would advise it.”
He
was in no hurry, and he was still smiling. She saw now that his smile was a
deliberate gloss, as cold, smooth and decorative as a coat of gilt. She gazed
at him wide-eyed, the blank, bewildered stare of one suddenly addressed in an
unknown tongue. “I don’t understand you! What is it I’m to give you?”
“Dear
girl, you know only too well. I want the letter your uncle was carrying to Earl
Ranulf of Chester, the same he should have delivered at the fair, by prior
agreement, to Euan of Shotwick, my noble kinsman’s eyes and ears.” He was
willing to go softly with her, since time was now no object, he even found the
prospect amusing, and was prepared to admire her playing of the game, provided
he got his own way in the end. “Never tell me, sweet, that you
have not even heard of any such letter. I doubt if you make as good a liar as I
do.”
“Truly,”
she said, shaking her head helplessly, “I understand you not at all. There is
nothing else I could say to you, for I know nothing of a letter. If my uncle
carried one, as you claim, he never confided in me. Do you suppose a man of
business takes his womenfolk into his confidence over important matters? You’re
mistaken in him if you believe that.”
Corbiиre
came forward an idle pace or two into the room, and she saw that no trace of
his limp remained. The brazier had burned into a steady, scarlet glow, the
light from it reflected like the burnish of sunset along the waving gold of his
hair. “So I thought,” he agreed, and laughed at the memory. “It took me a long
time, too long, to arrive at you, my lady. I would not have trusted a woman,
no… But Master Thomas, it seems, had other ideas. And I grant you, he had an
unusual young woman to deal with. For what it’s worth, I admire you. But I
shall not let that stand in my way, believe me. What you hold is too precious
to leave me any scruples, even if I were given to such weaknesses.”
“But
I don’t hold it! I can’t give you what I have not in my possession. How can I
convince you?” she demanded, with the first spurt of impatience and
indignation, though she knew in advance that she was wasting all pretences. He
knew.
He
shook his head at her, smiling. “It is not in your baggage. We’ve taken apart
even the seams of your saddlebags. Therefore it is here, on your person. There
is no other possibility. It was not on your uncle, it was neither in his barge
nor in his booth. Who was left but you? You, and Euan of Shotwick, if I had
somehow let a messenger slip through my guard. You, I knew, would keep, and
come tamed to my hand—but for a sudden qualm I had, that you might have sent it
back in Thomas’s coffin for safe-keeping, but that was to overrate you, my
dear, clever as you are. And Euan never received it. Who was then left, but
you? Not his crew—all of them far too simple, even if he had not had orders to
keep strict secrecy, as I know he had. I doubt if he told even you what was in
the letter.”
It
was true, she had no idea of its contents. She had simply been given it to wear
and guard, as the obvious innocent who would never come under
suspicion of being anyone’s courier, but its importance had been impressed upon
her most powerfully. Lives, her uncle had said, hung upon its safe delivery,
or, failing that, its safe return to the sender. Or, in the last resort, its
total destruction.
“I
am tired of telling you,” she said forcefully, “that you are wrong in supposing
that I know anything about it, or believe it ever existed but in your
imagination. You brought me here, my lord, on the pretext of providing me the
companionship of your sister, and conducting us both to Bristol. Do you intend
to do as you promised?”
He
threw his head back and laughed aloud, the red glow dancing on his fine
cheekbones. “You would not have come with me if there had not been a woman in
the story. If you behave sensibly now you may yet meet, some day, the only
sister I have. She’s married to one of Ranulf’s knights, and keeps me informed
of what goes on in Ranulf’s court. But devil a nun she’d ever have made, even
if she were not already a wife. But send you safe home to Bristol—yes, that
I’ll do, when you’ve given me what I want from you. And what I will have!” he
added with a snap, and his shapely, smiling lips thinned and tightened into a
sword-blade.
There
was a moment, then, when she almost considered obeying him, and giving up what
she had kept so obstinately through so many shocks. Fear was a reality by this
time, but so was anger, all the more fierce because she was so resolutely
suppressing it. He came a step towards her, his smile as narrow as a cat’s
bearing down on a bird, and she moved just as steadily to keep the brazier
between them; that also amused him, but he had ample patience.
“I
don’t understand,” she said, frowning as if she had begun to feel genuine
curiosity, “why you should set such store on a letter. If I had it, do you
think I should refuse it to you, when I’m in your power? But why does it matter
to you so much? What can there be in a mere letter?”
“Fool
girl, there can be life and death in a letter,” he said condescending to her
simplicity, “wealth, power, even land to be won or lost. Do you know what that
single packet could be worth? To King Stephen, his kingdom entire! To me, maybe
an earldom. And to a number of others, their necks! For I think you must know,
for all your innocence, that Robert of Gloucester has his plans
made to bring the Empress Maud to England, and make a fight of it for her claim
to the throne, and has been touting through his agents here to get Earl
Ranulf’s support for her cause when they do land. My noble kinsman has a hard
heart, and has demanded proof of the strength of that cause before he lifts a
hand or stirs a foot to commit himself. Names, numbers, every detail, if I know
my Ranulf, they’ve been forced to set down in writing for him. All the tale of
the king’s enemies, the names of all those who pay him lip service now but are
preparing to betray him. There could be as many as fifty names on the list, and
it will serve, believe me, for Ranulf s ruin no less, since if his name is not
there, he had reached the point of considering adding it. What will not King
Stephen give, to have that delivered into his hand? All committed to writing,
it may be even the date they plan to sail, and the port where they hope to
land. All his enemies cut off before they can forgather, a prison prepared for
Maud before ever she gets foot ashore. That, my child, is what I propose to
offer to the king, and never doubt but I shall get my price for it.”
She
stood staring at him with drawn brows and shocked eyes across the brazier, and
felt her blood chill in her veins and all her body grow cold. And he was not
even a partisan! He had killed, or procured others to kill for him, three times
already, not for a cause, but coldly and methodically for his own gain and
advancement. He cared nothing at all for which of them wore the crown, Stephen
or Maud. If he could have got his hands rather on information of value to Maud,
and felt that she was likely to prevail and reward him well, he would have
betrayed Stephen and all his supporters just as blithely.
For
the first time she was terrified, the weight of all those imperilled lives lay
upon her heart like a great stone. She had no doubt that this estimate of what
would be in the letter must be very close to the truth, close enough to destroy
a great many men who adhered to the same side her uncle had served with
devotion. He had been a passionate partisan, and it had cost him his life. Now,
unless she could bring about a miracle, the message he had carried would cost
many more lives, bloodshed, bereavement, ruin. And all for the enrichment and
advancement of Ivo Corbiиre! She had followed and supported Master Thomas as a
matter of family loyalty. Now that meant nothing any longer,
and all she felt was a desperate desire to avoid more killing, not to betray
any man on either side of the quarrel to his enemies on the other. To help
every fugitive, to hide every hunted man, to keep the wives unwidowed and the
children still fathered, was better by far than to fight and kill either for
Stephen or for Maud.
And
she would not let him have them! Whatever the cost, he should not tread his way
unscathed to his earldom over other men’s faces.
“I
have nothing against you,” Corbiиre was saying, confident and at ease. “Give me
the letter, and you shall reach Bristol in safety, and not be the loser. But
don’t think I’ll scruple to pay you in full, either, if you thwart me.”
She
stood fixed and still, her hands cupping her face, as though pressing hard to
contain fear. The tips of her fingers worked unseen under the edge of her
tissue net into the coils of her hair, feeling for the little cylinder of
vellum, but face to face with her he saw no movement at all.
“Come,
you are not so attractive to me that you need fear rape,” he said, disdainfully
smiling, “provided you are sensible, but for all that, it would be no hardship
to me to strip you with my own hands, if you are obstinate. It might even give
me pleasure, if the act proves stimulating. Give, or have it taken from you by
force. You should know by now that I let no man stand in my way, much less a
little shopkeeper’s girl of no account.”
Of
no account! No, she had never been of any account to him, never for a moment,
only of use in his ruthless pursuit of his own ambitious interests. Still she
stood as if frozen, except that when he advanced upon her at leisure, his smile
now wolfish and hungry, she circled inch by inch to keep the brazier between
them. Its heart was a red glow. She stood close, as if only that core of warmth
gave her some comfort and protection; and suddenly she tore down the coil of
her hair and clawed out the letter, tearing off her silken net with it in her
haste. She dared not simply cast it into the fire, it might roll clear or be
too easily retrieved. She made a desperate lunge, and thrusting it deep into
the heart of the glow, held it there for an agonised moment, snatching back
burned fingers with a faint cry that sounded half of pain and half of triumph.
He
uttered a bellow of rage, and lunged as quickly to snatch it
out again, but the net had flared at a touch, tiny worms of fire climbed to
lick his hand, and all he touched of the precious letter, before he recoiled,
was the wax of the seal, which had melted at once, and clung searingly to his
fingers as he wrung them and whined with pain. She heard herself laughing, and
could not believe she was the source of the sound. She heard him frantically
cursing her, but he was too intent on recovering his prize to turn upon her
then. He tore off his cotte, wrapped a corner of the skirt about his hand, and
leaned to grasp again at the glowing cylinder thrust upright in the
fire-basket. And he would get it, defaced and incomplete, perhaps, but enough
for his purpose. The outer covering was not yet burned through everywhere. He
should not have it, she would not bear it! She stooped as he snatched at it,
clutched with her good hand at the leg of the brazier, and overturned it over
his ankles and feet.
He
screamed aloud and leaped back. Glowing coals flew, cascading over the floor,
starting a brown furrow, a flurry of smoke and a stink of burning wood across
the nearest rug, and reached the tinder-dry skirts of the tapestries on the
wall between the two windows. There was a strange sound like a great indrawn
breath, and an instant serpent of flame climbed the wall, and after it a tree
of fire grew, thickened, put out lightning branches on all sides, enveloped all
the space between the windows, and coursed both ways like hounds at fault, to
reach the dusty hangings on the neighbouring walls. A brittle shell of fire
encased the room before Emma could even stir from her horrified stillness. She
saw the huntsmen and huntresses in the tapestries blaze for an instant into
quivering life, the hounds leap, the forest trees shimmer in fierce light,
before they disintegrated into glittering dust. Smoke rose from a dozen burning
fragments over half the floor, and vision dimmed rapidly.
Somewhere
in that abrupt hell beyond the hearth, Ivo Corbiиre, shirt and hair aflame, a
length of blazing tapestry fallen upon him, rolled and shrieked in agony, the
sounds he made tearing her senses. Behind her one wall of the room was still
clean, but the circling flames were licking round both ways towards it.
There
was a rug untouched at her back, she dragged it up and tried to reach the
burning man with it, but smoke thickened quickly, stinging and
blinding her eyes, and flashing tongues of fire jetted out of the smoke and
drove her back. She flung the rug, in case he could still clutch at it and roll
himself in its smothering folds, but she knew then that it was too late for
anyone to help him. The room was already thick with smoke, she clutched her
wide sleeve over mouth and nostrils, and drew back from the awful screaming
that shrilled in her ears. And he had the key of the room on him! No hope of
reaching him now, no hope of recovering the key. The room was ablaze, timber at
window and wall and floor began to cry out in loud cracks and splitting groans,
spurting strange jets of flame.
Emma
drew back, shielding her face, and hammered at the door, shrieking for help
against the furious sounds of the fire. She thought she heard cries somewhere
below, but distantly. She knotted her hands in the tapestries on either side
the door, where the flames had not yet reached, tore the rotting fabric down,
rolled it up tightly to resist sparks, and hurled it into the furnace on the
other side of the room. Let the door at least remain passable. All the hangings
that were not yet burning she dragged down. Her seared hand she had forgotten,
she used it as freely as the other. All those other lives, surely, were safe
enough, no one was ever going to read the letter that had failed to reach
Ranulf of Chester. Even that fearful life shut in this room with her must be
all but over, the sounds were almost lost in the voice of the fire. A busy,
preoccupied voice, not unlike the obsessed hum of the fairground. She had a
life to lose, too. She was young, angry, resolute, she would not lose it
tamely. She hammered at the door, and called again. No one came. She heard no
voices, no hasty footsteps on the stairs to the gallery, nothing but the
singing of the fire, mounting steadily from a hum to a roar, like a rioting
crowd, but better harmonised, the triumphant utterance of a single will.
Emma stooped to the keyhole, and called through it
as long as breath and strength lasted. She could neither see nor think by then,
all about her was gathering blackness, and a throttling hand upon her throat.
From stooping she sank to her knees, and from her knees sagged forward along
the base of the door, and lay there with mouth and nose pressed against the gap
that let in a thread of clean air. After a while she was not aware of anything,
even of breathing.
Chapter
Four
PHILIP
LOST HIMSELF BRIEFLY in the tangle of small valley tacks that threaded the
hills, after leaving the Long Forest, and was forced to hunt out a local man
from the first assart he came to, to put him on the road for Stanton Cobbold.
The region he knew vaguely, but not the manor. The cottar gave him precise
instructions, and turning to follow his own pointing, saw the first thin column
of smoke going up into a still sky, and rapidly thickening and darkening as he
stared at it.
“That
could be the very place, or near it. The woods are dry enough for trouble. God
send they can keep it from the house, if some fool’s set a spark going…”
“How
far is it?” demanded Philip, wildly staring.
“A
mile and over. You’d best…” But Philip was gone, heels driving into his stolen
horse’s sides, off at a headlong gallop. He kept his eyes upon that growing,
billowing column of smoke more often than upon the road, and took risks on
those little-used and eccentric paths that might have fetched him down a dozen
times if luck had not favoured him. With every minute, the spectacle grew more
alarming, the red of flames belching upward spasmodically against the black of
smoke. Long before he reached the manor, and came bursting out of the trees
towards the stockade, he could hear the bursting of beams, splitting apart in
the heat with louder reports than any axe-blow. It was the house, not the
forest.
The
gate stood open, and within, frantic servants ran confusedly, dragging out from
hall and kitchen whatever belongings they could, salvaging from
the stables and byres, dangerously near to the wooden part of the house,
terrified and shrieking horses, and bellowing cattle. Philip stared aghast at
the tower of smoke and flames that engulfed one end of the house. The long
stone building of hall and undercroft would stand, though as a gutted shell,
but the timbered part was already a furnace. Confused men and screaming maids
ran about distractedly and paid him no heed. The disaster had overtaken them so
suddenly that they were half out of their wits.
Philip
kicked his feet out of the stirrups which were short for him, but which he had
never paused to lengthen, and vaulted from the horse, leaving it to wander at
will. One of the cowmen blundered across his path, and Philip seized him by the
arm and wrenched him round to face him.
“Where’s
your lord? Where’s the girl he brought here today?” The man was dazed and slow
to answer; he shook him furiously. “The girl—what has he done with her?”
Gaping
helplessly, the man pointed into the pillar of smoke. “They’re in the solar—my
lord as well… It’s there the fire began.”
Philip
dropped him without a word, and began to run towards the stair to the hall
door. The man howled after him: “Fool, it’s the hob of hell in there, nothing
could live in it! And the door’s locked—he had the key with him… You’ll go to
your death!”
Nothing
of this made any impression upon Philip, until mention of the locked door
checked him sharply. If there was no other way in, by a locked door he would
have to enter. He cast about him at all the piles of hangings and furnishings
and utensils they had dragged out into the courtyard, for something he could
use to break through such a barrier. The kitchen had been emptied, there were meat-choppers
and knives, but, better still, there was a pile of arms from the hall. One of
Corbiиre’s ancestors, it seemed, had favoured the battle-axe. And these craven
creatures of the household had made no attempt to use so handy a weapon! Their
lord could roast before they would risk a burned hand for him.
Philip
went up the stone steps three at a time, and into the black and stifling cavern
of the hall. The heat, after all, was not so intense here, the stone walls were
thick, and the floor, too, was laid with stones over the great beams of the undercroft. The worst enemy was the smoke that bit acrid and
poisonous into his throat at the first breath. He spared the few moments it
took to tear off his shirt and bind it round his face to cover nose and mouth,
and then began to grope his way at reckless speed along the wall towards the
other end of the hall, whence the heat and the fumes came. He did not think at
all, he did what he had to do. Emma was somewhere in that inferno, and nothing
mattered but to get her out of it.
He
found the foot of the staircase to the gallery by stumbling blindly over the
first step, and went up the flight stooped low, because it seemed that the bulk
of the smoke was rolling along the roof. The shape of the solar door he found by
the framework of smoke pouring in a thin, steady stream all round it. The wood
itself was not yet burning. He hammered and strained at the door, and called,
but there was no sound from within but the crackling of the fire. No way but to
go through.
He
swung the axe like a berserker Norseman, aiming at the lock. The door was
stout, the wood old and seasoned, but less formidable axes had felled the trees
that made it. His eyes smarted, streaming tears that helped by damping the
cloth that covered his mouth. The blows started the beams of the door, but the
lock held. Philip went on swinging. He had started a deep crack just above the
lock, so deep that he had trouble withdrawing the axe. Time after time he
struck at the same place, aware of splinters flying, and suddenly the lock
burst clear with a harsh, metallic cry, and the edge of the door gave, only to
stick again when he had thrust it open no more than a hand’s breadth. The upper
part, when he groped round it, offered no resistance. He felt along the floor
within, and closed his hand upon a coil of silky hair. She was there, lying
along the doorway, and though the heat that gushed out at him was terrifying,
yet only the smoke, not the flames, had reached her.
The
opening of the door had provided a way through for the wind that fed the
flames, such a brightness burned up beyond the black that he knew he had only
minutes before the blaze swept over them both. Frantically he leaned to get a
grasp of her arm and drag her aside, so that he could open the door for the
briefest possible moment, just wide enough to lift her through, and again draw
it to against the demon within.
There was a great explosion of scarlet
and flame, that sent a tongue out through the opening to singe his hair, and
then he had her, the soft, limp weight hoisted on his shoulder, the door
dragged to again behind them, and he was half-falling, half-running down the
staircase with her in his arms, and the devil of fire had done no worse than
snap at their heels. He did not even realise, until he took off his shoes much
later, that the very treads of the stairs had been burning under his feet.
He
reached the hall doorway with head lolling and chest labouring for breath, and
had to sit down with his burden on the stone steps, for fear of falling with
her. Greedily he dragged the clean outside air into him, and pulled down the
smoke-fouled shirt from about his face. Vision and hearing were blurred and
distant, he did not even know that Hugh Beringar and his guard had come
galloping into the courtyard, until Brother Cadfael scurried up the steps to
take Emma gently from him.
“Good
lad! I have her. Come away down after us—lean on me as we go, so! Let’s find
you a safe corner, and we’ll see what we can do for you both.”
Philip,
suddenly shivering, and so feeble he dared not trust his legs to stand, asked
in urgent, aching terror “Is she…?”
“She’s
breathing,” said Brother Cadfael reassuringly. “Come and help me care for her,
and with God’s blessing, she’ll do.”
Emma
opened her eyes upon a clean, pale sky and two absorbed and anxious faces.
Brother Cadfael’s she knew at once, for it bore its usual shrewdly amiable
aspect, though how he had come to be there, or where, indeed, she was, she
could not yet divine. The other face was so close to her own that she saw it
out of focus, and it was wild and strange enough, grimed from brow to chin, the
blackness seamed with dried rivulets of sweat, the brown hair along one temple
curled and brown from burning! but it had two fine, clear brown eyes as honest as
the daylight above, and fixed upon her with such devotion that the face, marred
as it was, and never remarkable for beauty, seemed to her the most pleasing and
comforting she had ever seen. The face on which her eyes had last looked,
before it became a frightful lantern of flame, had been the face of ambition,
greed and murder, in a plausible shell of beauty. This face was
the other side of the human coin.
Only
when she stirred slightly, and he moved his position to accommodate her more
comfortably, did she realise that she was lying in his arms. Feeling and
awareness came back gradually, even pain took its time. Her head was cradled in
the hollow of his shoulder, her cheek rested against the breast of his cotte. A
craftsman’s working clothes, homespun. Of course, he was a shoemaker. A
shopkeeper’s boy, of no account! There was much to be said for it. The stink of
smoke and burning still hung about them both, in spite of Cadfael’s attentions
with a pannikin of water from the well. The shopkeeper’s boy of no account had
come into the manor after her, and brought her out alive. She had mattered as
much as that to him. A little shopkeeper’s girl…
“Her
eyes are open,” said Philip in an eager whisper. “She’s smiling.”
Cadfael
stooped to her. “How is it with you now, daughter?”
“I
am alive,” she said, almost inaudibly, but with great joy.
“So
you are, God be thanked, and Philip here next after God. But lie still, we’ll
find you a cloak to wrap you in, for you’ll be feeling the cold that comes
after danger. There’ll be pain, too, my poor child.” She already knew about the
pain. “You’ve a badly burned hand, and I’ve no salves here, I can do no more
than cover it from the air, until we get back to town. Leave your hand lie
quiet, if you can, the stiller the better. How did it come that you escaped
clean, but for the one hand so badly burned?”
“I
put it into the brazier,” said Emma, remembering. She saw with what startled
eyes Philip received this, and realised what she had said; and suddenly the
most important thing of all seemed to her that Philip should not know
everything, that his candid clarity should not be made to explore the use of
lies, deceptions and subterfuges, no matter how right the cause they served.
Some day she might tell someone, but it would not be Philip. “I was afraid of
him,” she said, carefully amending, “and I tipped over the brazier. I never
meant to start such a fire…”
Somewhere
curiously distant from the corner of peace where she lay, Hugh Beringar and the
sergeant and officers who had followed him from Shrewsbury were mustering the distracted servants in salvage, and damping down all the outhouses
that were still in danger from flying sparks and debris, so that the beasts
could be housed, and a roof, at least, provided for the men and maids. The fire
had burned so fiercely that it was already dying down, but not for some days
would the heat have subsided enough for them to sift through the embers for Ivo
Corbiиre’s body.
“Lift
me,” entreated Emma. “Let me see!”
Philip
raised her to sit beside him in the clean, green grass. They were in a corner
of the court, their backs against the stockade. Round the perimeter the barns
and byres steamed in the early evening sun from the buckets of water which had
been thrown over them. Close to the solar end, men were still at work carrying
buckets in a chain from the well. There would be roofs enough left to shelter
horses, cattle and people, until better could be done for them. They had the
equipment of the kitchen, the stores in the undercroft might be damaged, but
would not all be spoiled. In this summer weather they would do well enough, and
someone must make shift to have the manor restored before the winter. All that
terror, in the end, had taken but one life.
“He
is dead,” she said, staring at the ruin from which she, though not he, had
emerged alive.
“No
other possibility,” said Cadfael simply.
He
surmised, but she knew. “And the other one?”
“Turstan
Fowler? He’s prisoner. The sergeant has him in charge. It was he, I believe,”
said Cadfael gently, “who killed your uncle.”
She
had expected that at the approach of Beringar and the law he would have helped
himself to a horse and taken to his heels, but after all, he had known of no
reason why he should. No one had been accusing him when he left Shrewsbury.
Everyone at the abbey ought to have taken it for granted that Emma had been
duly conducted home to Bristol. Why should they question it? Why had they
questioned it? She had much to learn, as well as much to tell. There would be
time, later. Now there was no time for anything but living, and exulting in
living, and being glad and grateful, and perhaps, gradually and with
unpractised pleasure, loving.
“What
will become of him?” she asked.
“He’ll
surely tell all he knows, and lay the worst blame where it
belongs, on his lord.” Cadfael doubted, all the same, whether Turstan could
hope to evade the gallows, and doubted whether he should, but he did not say so
to her. She was deeply preoccupied at this moment with life and death, and
willed mercy even to the lowest and worst in the largeness of the mercy shown
to her. And that was good, God forbid he should say any word to deface it.
“Are
you cold?” asked Philip tenderly, feeling her shiver in his arm.
“No,”
she said at once, and turned her head a little in the hollow of his shoulder,
resting her forehead against his grimy cheek. He felt the soft curving of her
lips in the hollow of his throat as she smiled, and was filled with so secure a
sense of possession that no one would ever be able to take her away from him.
Hugh
Beringar came to them across the trampled grass of the court, even his neatness
smoked and odorous.
“What
can be done’s done,” he said, wiping his face. “We had better get her back to
Shrewsbury, there’s no provision here. I’m leaving my sergeant and most of the
men here for the time being, but the place for you,” he said, smiling somewhat
wearily at Emma, “is in a comfortable bed, with your hurt properly dressed, and
no need for you to think or stir until you’re restored. Bristol will have to
wait for you. We’ll take you to Aline at the abbey, you’ll be easy there.”
“No,”
said Philip, with large assurance. “I am taking Emma to my mother in
Shrewsbury.”
“Very
well, so you shall,” agreed Hugh, “it’s hardly a step further. But give Cadfael
time at the abbey to hunt out the salves and potions he wants from his
workshop, and let Aline see for herself that we’ve not let Emma come to any
great harm. And don’t forget, friend, you owe Aline something for entertaining
the fellow you robbed of his horse, and guarding your back for you until you
can restore him.”
Beneath
his coating of soot Philip could still blush. “True enough, I’m likely to end
in gaol again for theft, but not until I’ve seen Emma safe lodged in my
mother’s care.”
Hugh
laughed, and clapped him amiably on the shoulder. “Nor then nor ever, while I’m
in office—not unless you choose to kick the law in the teeth on some other
occasion. We’ll satisfy the merchant, Aline will have sweetened him into complacency, you’ll find. And his horse has been rubbed down
and watered and rested, while you’ve been otherwise occupied, and we’ll take
him back with us unloaded, none the worse for his adventures. There are horses
enough here, I’ll find you the pick of them, a steady ride fit to bear two.” He
had had one eye on Emma while he had been mustering water-carriers and
husbanding household effects, he knew better than to try to wrest her out of
Philip’s arms, or send for a horse-litter to carry her back. There were two
here so joined together that only a fool would attempt to part them even for a
few hours; and Hugh was no fool.
They
wrapped her gently in a brychan borrowed from the salvaged bedding, rather for
comfortable padding than for warmth, for the evening was still serene and mild,
though she might yet suffer the cold that comes after effort is all over. She
accepted everything with serenity, like one in a dream, though the pain of her
hand must, they reasoned, be acute. She seemed to feel nothing but a supreme
inner peace that made everything else of no account. They mounted Philip on a
great, broad-backed, steady-paced gelding, and then lifted Emma up to him in
her swathing blanket, and she settled into the cradle of his lap and arms and
braced shoulder as though God had made her to fit there.
“And
perhaps so he did,” said Brother Cadfael, riding behind with Hugh Beringar
close beside him.
“So
he did what?” wondered Hugh, starting out of very different considerations, for
two officers brought a bound Turstan Fowler behind them.
“Direct
all,” said Cadfael. “It is, after all, a way he has.”
Halfway
back towards Shrewsbury she fell asleep in his arms, nestled on his breast. For
the fall of her black, smoke-scented hair he could see only the lower part of
her face, but the mouth was soft and moist and smiling, and all her weight
melted and moulded into the cradle of his loving body as into a marriage-bed.
In her dream she had gone somewhere beyond the pain of her burned hand. It was
as if she had thrust her hand into the future, and found it worth the price.
The left hand, the unmarked one, lay clasped warmly round him, inside his coat,
holding him close to her in her dream.
Chapter
Five
THE
SUMMER DARKNESS OF FINE NIGHTS, which is never quite dark, showed a horse-fair
deserted, no trace of the past three days but the trampled patches and the
marks of trestles in the grass. All over for another year. The abbey stewards
had gathered in the profits of rent and toll and tax, delivered their accounts,
and gone to their beds. So had the monks of the abbey, the lay servants, the
novices and the pupils. A sleepy porter opened the gate for them; and
mysteriously, at the sounds of their arrival, though circumspect and subdued,
the great court awoke to life. Aline came running from the guest-hall with the
aggrieved merchant, now remarkably complacent, at her back, Brother Mark from
the dortoir, and Abbot Radulfus’s own clerk from the abbot’s lodging, with a
bidding to Brother Cadfael to attend there as soon as he arrived, however late
the hour.
“I
sent him word what was toward,” said Hugh, “as we left. It was right he should
know. He’ll be anxious to hear how it ended.”
While
Aline took Emma and Philip, half awake and dazedly docile, to rest and refresh
themselves in the guest-hall, and Brother Mark ran to the herbarium to collect
the paste of mulberry leaves and the unguent of Our Lady’s mantle, known
specifics for burns, and the men-at-arms went on to the castle with their
prisoner, Brother Cadfael duly attended Radulfus in his study. Whether at midday
or midnight, the abbot was equally wide-awake. By the single candle burning he
surveyed Cadfael and asked simply: “Well?”
“It is well, Father. We are returned with
Mistress Vernold safe and little the worse, and the murderer of her uncle is in
the sheriff’s hands. One murderer—the man Turstan Fowler.”
“There
is another?” asked Radulfus.
“There
was another. He is dead. Not by any man’s hand, Father, none of us has killed
or done violence. He is dead by fire.”
“Tell
me,” said the abbot.
Cadfael
told him the whole story, so far as he knew it, and briefly. How much more Emma
knew was a matter for conjecture.
“And
what,” the abbot wished to know, “can this communication have been, to cause
any man to commit such crimes in pursuit of it?”
“That
we do not know, and no man now will know, for it is burned with him. But where
there are two warring factions in a land,” said Cadfael, “men without scruples
can turn controversy to gain, sell men for profit, take revenge on their
rivals, hope to be awarded the lands of those they betray. Whatever evil was
intended, now will never come to fruit.”
“A
better ending than I began to fear,” said Radulfus, and drew a thankful sigh.
“Then all danger is now over, and the guests of our house are come to no harm.”
He pondered for a moment. “This young man who did so well for us and for the
girl—you say he is son to the provost?”
“He
is, Father. I am going with them now, with your permission, to see them safely
home and dress their burns. They are not too grave, but they should be cleansed
and tended at once.”
“Go
with God’s blessing!” said the abbot. “It is convenient, for I have a message
to the provost, which you may deliver for me, if you will. Ask Master Corviser,
with my compliments, if he will be kind enough to attend here tomorrow morning,
about the end of chapter. I have some business to transact with him.”
Mistress
Corviser had undoubtedly been fulminating for hours about her errant son, a
good-for-nothing who was no sooner bailed out of prison than he was off in
mischief somewhere else until midnight and past. Probably she had said at least
a dozen times that she washed her hands of him, that he was past
praying for, and she no longer cared, let him go to the devil his own way. But
for all that, her husband could not get her to go to bed, and at every least
sound that might be a footstep at the door or in the street, steady or
staggering, she flew to look out, with her mouth full of abuse but her heart
full of hope.
And
then, when he did come, it was with a great-eyed girl in his arm, a thick
handful of his curls singed off at one temple, the smell of smoke in his coat,
his shirt in tatters, a monk of Saint Peter’s at his heels, and a look of
roused authority and maturity about him that quite overcame his draggled and
soiled state. And instead of either scolding or embracing him, she took both
him and the girl by the hand and drew them inside together, and went about
seating, feeding, tending them, with only few words, and those practical and
concerned. Tomorrow Philip might be brought to tell the whole story. Tonight it
was Cadfael who told the merest skeleton of it, as he cleansed and dressed
Emma’s hand, and the superficial burns on Philip’s brow and arm. Better not
make too much of what the boy had done. Emma would take care of that, later;
his mother would value it most of all from her.
Emma
herself said almost nothing, islanded in her exhaustion and bliss, but her eyes
seldom left Philip, and when they did, it was to take in with deep content the
solid, dark furnishings and warm panelling of this burgess house, so familiar
to her that being accepted here was like coming home. Her rapt, secret smile
was eloquent; mothers are quick to notice such looks. Emma had already
conquered, even before she was led gently away to the bed prepared for her, and
settled there by Mistress Corviser with all the clucking solicitude of a hen
with one chick, with a posset laced with Brother Cadfael’s poppy syrup to make
sure that she slept, and forgot her pain.
“As
pretty a thing as ever I saw,” said Mistress Corviser, coming back softly into
the room, and closing the door between. She cast a fond look at her son, and
found him asleep in his chair. “And to think that’s what he was about, while I
was thinking all manner of bad things about him, who should have known him
better!”
“He
knows himself a deal better than he did a few days ago,” said
Cadfael, repacking his scrip. “I’ll leave you these pastes and ointments, you
know how to use them. But I’ll come and take a look at her later tomorrow. Now
I’ll take my leave, I confess I’m more than ready for my own bed. I doubt if I
shall hear the bell for Prime tomorrow.”
In
the yard Geoffrey Corviser was himself stabling the horse from Stanton Cobbold
with his own. Cadfael gave him the abbot’s message. The provost raised
sceptical eyebrows. “Now what can the lord abbot want with me? The last time I
came cap in hand to chapter, I got a dusty answer.”
“All
the same,” advised Cadfael, scrubbing thoughtfully at his blunt brown nose, “in
your shoes I think I’d be curious enough to come and see. Who knows but the
dust may have settled elsewhere by this time!”
It
was no wonder if Brother Cadfael, though he did manage to rise for Prime, took
advantage of his carefully chosen place behind a pillar to doze his way through
chapter. He was so sound asleep, indeed, that for once he was in danger of
snoring, and at the first melodious horn-call Brother Mark took fright, and
nudged him awake.
The
provost had obeyed the abbot’s invitation to the latter, and arrived only at
the very end of chapter. The steward of the grange court had just announced
that he was in attendance when Cadfael opened his eyes.
“What
can the provost be here for?” whispered Mark.
“He
was asked to come. Do I know why? Hush!”
Geoffrey
Corviser came in in his best, and made his reverence respectfully but coolly.
He had no solid cohort at his back this time, and to tell the truth, though he
may have felt some curiosity, he was attaching very little importance to this
encounter. His mind was on other things. True, the problems of the town
remained, and at any other time would have taken foremost place in his concern,
but today he was proof against public cares by reason of private elation in a
son vindicated and praised, a son to be proud of.
“You
sent for me, Father Abbot. I am here.”
“I
thank you for your courtesy in attending,” said the abbot mildly. “Some days
ago, Master Provost, before the fair, you came with a request to me which I
could not meet.”
The provost said not a word; there was
none due, and he felt no need to speak at a loss.
“The
fair is now over,” said the abbot equably. “All the rents, tolls and taxes have
been collected, and all have been delivered into the abbey treasury, as is due
by charter. Do you endorse that?”
“It
is the law,” said Corviser, “to the letter.”
“Good!
We are agreed. Right has therefore been done, and the privilege of this house
is maintained. That I could not infringe by any prior concession. Abbots who
follow me would have blamed me, and with good reason. Their rights are
sacrosanct. But now they have been met in full. And as abbot of this house, it
is for me to determine what use shall be made of the monies in our hold. What I
could not grant away in imperilment of charter,” said Radulfus with
deliberation, “I can give freely as a gift from this house. Of the fruits of
this year’s fair, I give a tenth to the town of Shrewsbury, for the repair of
me walls and repaving of the streets.”
The
provost, enlarged in his family content, flushed into startled and delighted
acknowledgement, a generous man accepting generosity. “My lord, I take your
tenth with pleasure and gratitude, and I will see that it is used worthily. And
I make public here and now that no part of the abbey’s right is thereby changed.
Saint Peter’s Fair is your fair. Whether and when your neighbour town should
also benefit, when it is in dire need, that rests with your judgment.”
“Our
steward will convey you the money,” said Radulfus, and rose to conclude a
satisfactory encounter. “This chapter is concluded,” he said.
Chapter
Six
AUGUST
CONTINUED BLESSEDLY FINE, and all hands turned gladly to making sure of the
harvest. Hugh Beringar and Aline set off with their hopes and purchases for
Maesbury, as did the merchant of Worcester for his home town, a day late, but
well compensated with a fee for the hire of his horse in an emergency, on the
sheriff’s business, and a fine story which he would retail on suitable
occasions for the rest of his life. The provost and council of Shrewsbury drafted
a dignified acknowledgement to the abbey for its gift, warm enough to give
proper expression to their appreciation of the gesture, canny enough not to
compromise any of their own just claims for the future. The sheriff put on
record the closure of a criminal affair, as related to him by the young woman
who had been lured away on false pretences, with the apparent design of
stealing from her a letter left in her possession, but of the contents of which
she was ignorant. There was some suspicion of a conspiracy involved, but as
Mistress Vernold had never seen nor been told the significance of what she
held, and as in any case it was now irrevocably lost by fire, no further action
was necessary or possible. The malefactor was dead, his servant, self-confessed
a murderer at his master’s orders, awaited trial, and would plead that he had
been forced to obey, being villein-born and at his lord’s mercy. The dead man’s
overlord had been informed. Someone else, at the discretion of the earl of
Chester, would take seisin of the manor of Stanton Cobbold.
Everyone drew breath, dusted his hands,
and went back to work.
Brother
Cadfael went up into the town on the second day, to tend Emma’s hand. The
provost and his son were at work together, in strong content with each other
and the world. Mistress Corviser returned to her kitchen, and left leech and
patient together.
“I
have wanted to talk to you,” said Emma, looking up earnestly into his face as
he renewed the dressing. “There must be one person who hears the truth from me,
and I would rather it should be you.”
“I
don’t believe,” said Cadfael equably, “that you told the sheriff a single thing
that was false.”
“No,
but I did not tell him all the truth. I said that I had no knowledge of what
was in the letter, or even for whom it was intended, or by whom it was sent.
That was true, I had no such knowledge of my own, though I did know who brought
it to my uncle, and that it was to be handed to the glover for delivery. But
when Ivo demanded the letter of me, and I span out the time asking what could
be so important about a letter, he told me what he believed to be in it. King
Stephen’s kingdom stood at stake, he said, and the gain to the man who provided
him the means to wipe out his enemies would stretch as wide as an earldom. He
said the empress’s friends were pressing the earl of Chester to join them, and
he would not move unless he had word of all the other powers her cause could
muster, and this was the promised despatch, to convince him his interest lay
with them. As many as fifty names there might be, he said, of those secretly
bound to the empress, perhaps even the date when Robert of Gloucester hopes to
bring her to England, even the port where they plan to land. All these sold in
advance to the king’s vengeance, life and limb and lands, he said, and the earl
of Chester with them, who had gone so far as to permit this approach! All these
offered up bound and condemned, and he would get his own price for them. This
is what he told me. This is what I do not know of my own knowledge, and yet in
my heart and soul I do know it, for I am sure what he said was true.” She
moistened her lips, and said carefully: “I do not know King Stephen well enough
to know what he would do, but I remember what he did here, last
summer. I saw all those men, as honest in their allegiance as those who hold
with the king, thrown into prison, their lives forfeit, their families stripped
of land and living, some forced into exile… I saw deaths and revenges and still
more bitterness if the tide should turn again. So I did what I did.”
“I
know what you did,” said Brother Cadfael gently. He was bandaging the healing
proof of it.
“But
still, you see,” she persisted gravely, “I am not sure if I did right, and for
right reasons. King Stephen at least keeps a kind of peace where his writ runs.
My uncle was absolute for the empress, but if she comes, if all these who hold
with her rise and join her, there will be no peace anywhere. Whichever way I
look I see deaths. But all I could think of, then, was preventing him from
gaining by his treachery and murders. And there was only one way, by destroying
the letter. Since then I have wondered… But I think now that I must stand by
what I did. If there must be fighting, if there must be deaths, let it happen
as God wills, not as ambitious and evil men contrive. Those lives we cannot
save, at least let us not help to destroy. Do you think I was right? I have
wanted someone’s word, I should like it to be yours.”
“Since
you ask what I think,” said Cadfael, “I think my child, that if you carry scars
on the fingers of this hand lifelong, you should wear them like jewels.”
Her
lips parted in a startled smile. She shook her head over the persistent tremor
of doubt. “But you must never tell Philip,” she said with sudden urgency,
holding him by the sleeve with her good hand. “As I never shall. Let him
believe me as innocent as he is himself…” She frowned over the word, which did
not seem to her quite what she had wanted, but she could not find one fitter
for her purpose. If it was not innocence she meant—for of what was she
guilty?—was it simplicity, clarity, purity? None of them would do. Perhaps
Brother Cadfael would understand, none the less. “I felt somehow mired,” she
said. “He should never set foot in intrigue, it is not for him.”
Brother Cadfael gave her his promise, and walked
back through the town in a muse, reflecting on the complexity of women. She was
perfectly right. Philip, for all his two years advantage, his intelligence, and
his new and masterful maturity, would always be the younger,
and the simpler, and—yes, she had the just word, after all!—the more innocent.
In Cadfael’s experience, it made for very good marriage prospects, where the
woman was fully aware of her responsibilities.
On
the thirtieth of September, just two months after Saint Peter’s Fair, the
Empress Maud and her half-brother Robert of Gloucester landed near Arundel and
entered into the castle there. But Earl Ranulf of Chester sat cannily in his
own palatine, minded his own business, and stirred neither hand nor foot in her
cause.
About
the Author
ELLIS PETERS is
the nom-de-crime of English novelist Edith Pargeter, author of scores of
books under her own name. She is the recipient of the Silver Dagger Award,
conferred by the Crime Writers Association in Britain, as well as the coveted
Edgar, awarded by the Mystery Writers of America. Miss Pargeter is also well
known as a translator of poetry and prose from the Czech and has been awarded
the Gold Medal and Ribbon of the Czechoslovak Society for Foreign Relations for
her services to Czech literature. She passed away in 1995, at the age of 82, at
home in her beloved Shropshire.
|